9541 lines
571 KiB
Plaintext
9541 lines
571 KiB
Plaintext
Title: Gulliver's Travels into Several Remote Nations of the World
|
||
Author: Jonathan Swift
|
||
|
||
GULLIVER’S TRAVELS
|
||
|
||
into several
|
||
|
||
REMOTE NATIONS OF THE WORLD
|
||
|
||
|
||
BY JONATHAN SWIFT, D.D.,
|
||
|
||
dean of st. patrick’s, dublin.
|
||
|
||
[_First published in_ 1726–7.]
|
||
|
||
cover
|
||
|
||
Contents
|
||
|
||
|
||
THE PUBLISHER TO THE READER.
|
||
A LETTER FROM CAPTAIN GULLIVER TO HIS COUSIN SYMPSON.
|
||
PART I. A VOYAGE TO LILLIPUT.
|
||
PART II. A VOYAGE TO BROBDINGNAG.
|
||
PART III. A VOYAGE TO LAPUTA, BALNIBARBI, GLUBBDUBDRIB, LUGGNAGG AND JAPAN.
|
||
PART IV. A VOYAGE TO THE COUNTRY OF THE HOUYHNHNMS.
|
||
|
||
|
||
THE PUBLISHER TO THE READER.
|
||
|
||
[_As given in the original edition_.]
|
||
|
||
|
||
The author of these Travels, Mr. Lemuel Gulliver, is my ancient and
|
||
intimate friend; there is likewise some relation between us on the
|
||
mother’s side. About three years ago, Mr. Gulliver growing weary of the
|
||
concourse of curious people coming to him at his house in Redriff, made
|
||
a small purchase of land, with a convenient house, near Newark, in
|
||
Nottinghamshire, his native country; where he now lives retired, yet in
|
||
good esteem among his neighbours.
|
||
|
||
Although Mr. Gulliver was born in Nottinghamshire, where his father
|
||
dwelt, yet I have heard him say his family came from Oxfordshire; to
|
||
confirm which, I have observed in the churchyard at Banbury in that
|
||
county, several tombs and monuments of the Gullivers.
|
||
|
||
Before he quitted Redriff, he left the custody of the following papers
|
||
in my hands, with the liberty to dispose of them as I should think fit.
|
||
I have carefully perused them three times. The style is very plain and
|
||
simple; and the only fault I find is, that the author, after the manner
|
||
of travellers, is a little too circumstantial. There is an air of truth
|
||
apparent through the whole; and indeed the author was so distinguished
|
||
for his veracity, that it became a sort of proverb among his neighbours
|
||
at Redriff, when any one affirmed a thing, to say, it was as true as if
|
||
Mr. Gulliver had spoken it.
|
||
|
||
By the advice of several worthy persons, to whom, with the author’s
|
||
permission, I communicated these papers, I now venture to send them
|
||
into the world, hoping they may be, at least for some time, a better
|
||
entertainment to our young noblemen, than the common scribbles of
|
||
politics and party.
|
||
|
||
This volume would have been at least twice as large, if I had not made
|
||
bold to strike out innumerable passages relating to the winds and
|
||
tides, as well as to the variations and bearings in the several
|
||
voyages, together with the minute descriptions of the management of the
|
||
ship in storms, in the style of sailors; likewise the account of
|
||
longitudes and latitudes; wherein I have reason to apprehend, that Mr.
|
||
Gulliver may be a little dissatisfied. But I was resolved to fit the
|
||
work as much as possible to the general capacity of readers. However,
|
||
if my own ignorance in sea affairs shall have led me to commit some
|
||
mistakes, I alone am answerable for them. And if any traveller hath a
|
||
curiosity to see the whole work at large, as it came from the hands of
|
||
the author, I will be ready to gratify him.
|
||
|
||
As for any further particulars relating to the author, the reader will
|
||
receive satisfaction from the first pages of the book.
|
||
|
||
|
||
RICHARD SYMPSON.
|
||
|
||
|
||
A LETTER FROM CAPTAIN GULLIVER TO HIS COUSIN SYMPSON.
|
||
|
||
Written in the Year 1727.
|
||
|
||
I hope you will be ready to own publicly, whenever you shall be called
|
||
to it, that by your great and frequent urgency you prevailed on me to
|
||
publish a very loose and uncorrect account of my travels, with
|
||
directions to hire some young gentleman of either university to put
|
||
them in order, and correct the style, as my cousin Dampier did, by my
|
||
advice, in his book called “A Voyage round the world.” But I do not
|
||
remember I gave you power to consent that any thing should be omitted,
|
||
and much less that any thing should be inserted; therefore, as to the
|
||
latter, I do here renounce every thing of that kind; particularly a
|
||
paragraph about her majesty Queen Anne, of most pious and glorious
|
||
memory; although I did reverence and esteem her more than any of human
|
||
species. But you, or your interpolator, ought to have considered, that
|
||
it was not my inclination, so was it not decent to praise any animal of
|
||
our composition before my master _Houyhnhnm_: And besides, the fact was
|
||
altogether false; for to my knowledge, being in England during some
|
||
part of her majesty’s reign, she did govern by a chief minister; nay
|
||
even by two successively, the first whereof was the lord of Godolphin,
|
||
and the second the lord of Oxford; so that you have made me say the
|
||
thing that was not. Likewise in the account of the academy of
|
||
projectors, and several passages of my discourse to my master
|
||
_Houyhnhnm_, you have either omitted some material circumstances, or
|
||
minced or changed them in such a manner, that I do hardly know my own
|
||
work. When I formerly hinted to you something of this in a letter, you
|
||
were pleased to answer that you were afraid of giving offence; that
|
||
people in power were very watchful over the press, and apt not only to
|
||
interpret, but to punish every thing which looked like an _innuendo_
|
||
(as I think you call it). But, pray how could that which I spoke so
|
||
many years ago, and at about five thousand leagues distance, in another
|
||
reign, be applied to any of the _Yahoos_, who now are said to govern
|
||
the herd; especially at a time when I little thought, or feared, the
|
||
unhappiness of living under them? Have not I the most reason to
|
||
complain, when I see these very _Yahoos_ carried by _Houyhnhnms_ in a
|
||
vehicle, as if they were brutes, and those the rational creatures? And
|
||
indeed to avoid so monstrous and detestable a sight was one principal
|
||
motive of my retirement hither.
|
||
|
||
Thus much I thought proper to tell you in relation to yourself, and to
|
||
the trust I reposed in you.
|
||
|
||
I do, in the next place, complain of my own great want of judgment, in
|
||
being prevailed upon by the entreaties and false reasoning of you and
|
||
some others, very much against my own opinion, to suffer my travels to
|
||
be published. Pray bring to your mind how often I desired you to
|
||
consider, when you insisted on the motive of public good, that the
|
||
_Yahoos_ were a species of animals utterly incapable of amendment by
|
||
precept or example: and so it has proved; for, instead of seeing a full
|
||
stop put to all abuses and corruptions, at least in this little island,
|
||
as I had reason to expect; behold, after above six months warning, I
|
||
cannot learn that my book has produced one single effect according to
|
||
my intentions. I desired you would let me know, by a letter, when party
|
||
and faction were extinguished; judges learned and upright; pleaders
|
||
honest and modest, with some tincture of common sense, and Smithfield
|
||
blazing with pyramids of law books; the young nobility’s education
|
||
entirely changed; the physicians banished; the female _Yahoos_
|
||
abounding in virtue, honour, truth, and good sense; courts and levees
|
||
of great ministers thoroughly weeded and swept; wit, merit, and
|
||
learning rewarded; all disgracers of the press in prose and verse
|
||
condemned to eat nothing but their own cotton, and quench their thirst
|
||
with their own ink. These, and a thousand other reformations, I firmly
|
||
counted upon by your encouragement; as indeed they were plainly
|
||
deducible from the precepts delivered in my book. And it must be owned,
|
||
that seven months were a sufficient time to correct every vice and
|
||
folly to which _Yahoos_ are subject, if their natures had been capable
|
||
of the least disposition to virtue or wisdom. Yet, so far have you been
|
||
from answering my expectation in any of your letters; that on the
|
||
contrary you are loading our carrier every week with libels, and keys,
|
||
and reflections, and memoirs, and second parts; wherein I see myself
|
||
accused of reflecting upon great state folk; of degrading human nature
|
||
(for so they have still the confidence to style it), and of abusing the
|
||
female sex. I find likewise that the writers of those bundles are not
|
||
agreed among themselves; for some of them will not allow me to be the
|
||
author of my own travels; and others make me author of books to which I
|
||
am wholly a stranger.
|
||
|
||
I find likewise that your printer has been so careless as to confound
|
||
the times, and mistake the dates, of my several voyages and returns;
|
||
neither assigning the true year, nor the true month, nor day of the
|
||
month: and I hear the original manuscript is all destroyed since the
|
||
publication of my book; neither have I any copy left: however, I have
|
||
sent you some corrections, which you may insert, if ever there should
|
||
be a second edition: and yet I cannot stand to them; but shall leave
|
||
that matter to my judicious and candid readers to adjust it as they
|
||
please.
|
||
|
||
I hear some of our sea _Yahoos_ find fault with my sea-language, as not
|
||
proper in many parts, nor now in use. I cannot help it. In my first
|
||
voyages, while I was young, I was instructed by the oldest mariners,
|
||
and learned to speak as they did. But I have since found that the sea
|
||
_Yahoos_ are apt, like the land ones, to become new-fangled in their
|
||
words, which the latter change every year; insomuch, as I remember upon
|
||
each return to my own country their old dialect was so altered, that I
|
||
could hardly understand the new. And I observe, when any _Yahoo_ comes
|
||
from London out of curiosity to visit me at my house, we neither of us
|
||
are able to deliver our conceptions in a manner intelligible to the
|
||
other.
|
||
|
||
If the censure of the _Yahoos_ could any way affect me, I should have
|
||
great reason to complain, that some of them are so bold as to think my
|
||
book of travels a mere fiction out of mine own brain, and have gone so
|
||
far as to drop hints, that the _Houyhnhnms_ and _Yahoos_ have no more
|
||
existence than the inhabitants of Utopia.
|
||
|
||
Indeed I must confess, that as to the people of _Lilliput_,
|
||
_Brobdingrag_ (for so the word should have been spelt, and not
|
||
erroneously _Brobdingnag_), and _Laputa_, I have never yet heard of any
|
||
_Yahoo_ so presumptuous as to dispute their being, or the facts I have
|
||
related concerning them; because the truth immediately strikes every
|
||
reader with conviction. And is there less probability in my account of
|
||
the _Houyhnhnms_ or _Yahoos_, when it is manifest as to the latter,
|
||
there are so many thousands even in this country, who only differ from
|
||
their brother brutes in _Houyhnhnmland_, because they use a sort of
|
||
jabber, and do not go naked? I wrote for their amendment, and not their
|
||
approbation. The united praise of the whole race would be of less
|
||
consequence to me, than the neighing of those two degenerate
|
||
_Houyhnhnms_ I keep in my stable; because from these, degenerate as
|
||
they are, I still improve in some virtues without any mixture of vice.
|
||
|
||
Do these miserable animals presume to think, that I am so degenerated
|
||
as to defend my veracity? _Yahoo_ as I am, it is well known through all
|
||
_Houyhnhnmland_, that, by the instructions and example of my
|
||
illustrious master, I was able in the compass of two years (although I
|
||
confess with the utmost difficulty) to remove that infernal habit of
|
||
lying, shuffling, deceiving, and equivocating, so deeply rooted in the
|
||
very souls of all my species; especially the Europeans.
|
||
|
||
I have other complaints to make upon this vexatious occasion; but I
|
||
forbear troubling myself or you any further. I must freely confess,
|
||
that since my last return, some corruptions of my _Yahoo_ nature have
|
||
revived in me by conversing with a few of your species, and
|
||
particularly those of my own family, by an unavoidable necessity; else
|
||
I should never have attempted so absurd a project as that of reforming
|
||
the _Yahoo_ race in this kingdom; but I have now done with all such
|
||
visionary schemes for ever.
|
||
|
||
_April_ 2, 1727
|
||
|
||
|
||
PART I. A VOYAGE TO LILLIPUT.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER I.
|
||
|
||
The author gives some account of himself and family. His first
|
||
inducements to travel. He is shipwrecked, and swims for his life, gets
|
||
safe on shore in the country of Lilliput; is made a prisoner, and
|
||
carried up the country.
|
||
|
||
|
||
My father had a small estate in Nottinghamshire; I was the third of
|
||
five sons. He sent me to Emanuel College in Cambridge at fourteen years
|
||
old, where I resided three years, and applied myself close to my
|
||
studies; but the charge of maintaining me, although I had a very scanty
|
||
allowance, being too great for a narrow fortune, I was bound apprentice
|
||
to Mr. James Bates, an eminent surgeon in London, with whom I continued
|
||
four years. My father now and then sending me small sums of money, I
|
||
laid them out in learning navigation, and other parts of the
|
||
mathematics, useful to those who intend to travel, as I always believed
|
||
it would be, some time or other, my fortune to do. When I left Mr.
|
||
Bates, I went down to my father: where, by the assistance of him and my
|
||
uncle John, and some other relations, I got forty pounds, and a promise
|
||
of thirty pounds a year to maintain me at Leyden: there I studied
|
||
physic two years and seven months, knowing it would be useful in long
|
||
voyages.
|
||
|
||
Soon after my return from Leyden, I was recommended by my good master,
|
||
Mr. Bates, to be surgeon to the Swallow, Captain Abraham Pannel,
|
||
commander; with whom I continued three years and a half, making a
|
||
voyage or two into the Levant, and some other parts. When I came back I
|
||
resolved to settle in London; to which Mr. Bates, my master, encouraged
|
||
me, and by him I was recommended to several patients. I took part of a
|
||
small house in the Old Jewry; and being advised to alter my condition,
|
||
I married Mrs. Mary Burton, second daughter to Mr. Edmund Burton,
|
||
hosier, in Newgate-street, with whom I received four hundred pounds for
|
||
a portion.
|
||
|
||
But my good master Bates dying in two years after, and I having few
|
||
friends, my business began to fail; for my conscience would not suffer
|
||
me to imitate the bad practice of too many among my brethren. Having
|
||
therefore consulted with my wife, and some of my acquaintance, I
|
||
determined to go again to sea. I was surgeon successively in two ships,
|
||
and made several voyages, for six years, to the East and West Indies,
|
||
by which I got some addition to my fortune. My hours of leisure I spent
|
||
in reading the best authors, ancient and modern, being always provided
|
||
with a good number of books; and when I was ashore, in observing the
|
||
manners and dispositions of the people, as well as learning their
|
||
language; wherein I had a great facility, by the strength of my memory.
|
||
|
||
The last of these voyages not proving very fortunate, I grew weary of
|
||
the sea, and intended to stay at home with my wife and family. I
|
||
removed from the Old Jewry to Fetter Lane, and from thence to Wapping,
|
||
hoping to get business among the sailors; but it would not turn to
|
||
account. After three years expectation that things would mend, I
|
||
accepted an advantageous offer from Captain William Prichard, master of
|
||
the Antelope, who was making a voyage to the South Sea. We set sail
|
||
from Bristol, May 4, 1699, and our voyage was at first very prosperous.
|
||
|
||
It would not be proper, for some reasons, to trouble the reader with
|
||
the particulars of our adventures in those seas; let it suffice to
|
||
inform him, that in our passage from thence to the East Indies, we were
|
||
driven by a violent storm to the north-west of Van Diemen’s Land. By an
|
||
observation, we found ourselves in the latitude of 30 degrees 2 minutes
|
||
south. Twelve of our crew were dead by immoderate labour and ill food;
|
||
the rest were in a very weak condition. On the 5th of November, which
|
||
was the beginning of summer in those parts, the weather being very
|
||
hazy, the seamen spied a rock within half a cable’s length of the ship;
|
||
but the wind was so strong, that we were driven directly upon it, and
|
||
immediately split. Six of the crew, of whom I was one, having let down
|
||
the boat into the sea, made a shift to get clear of the ship and the
|
||
rock. We rowed, by my computation, about three leagues, till we were
|
||
able to work no longer, being already spent with labour while we were
|
||
in the ship. We therefore trusted ourselves to the mercy of the waves,
|
||
and in about half an hour the boat was overset by a sudden flurry from
|
||
the north. What became of my companions in the boat, as well as of
|
||
those who escaped on the rock, or were left in the vessel, I cannot
|
||
tell; but conclude they were all lost. For my own part, I swam as
|
||
fortune directed me, and was pushed forward by wind and tide. I often
|
||
let my legs drop, and could feel no bottom; but when I was almost gone,
|
||
and able to struggle no longer, I found myself within my depth; and by
|
||
this time the storm was much abated. The declivity was so small, that I
|
||
walked near a mile before I got to the shore, which I conjectured was
|
||
about eight o’clock in the evening. I then advanced forward near half a
|
||
mile, but could not discover any sign of houses or inhabitants; at
|
||
least I was in so weak a condition, that I did not observe them. I was
|
||
extremely tired, and with that, and the heat of the weather, and about
|
||
half a pint of brandy that I drank as I left the ship, I found myself
|
||
much inclined to sleep. I lay down on the grass, which was very short
|
||
and soft, where I slept sounder than ever I remembered to have done in
|
||
my life, and, as I reckoned, about nine hours; for when I awaked, it
|
||
was just day-light. I attempted to rise, but was not able to stir: for,
|
||
as I happened to lie on my back, I found my arms and legs were strongly
|
||
fastened on each side to the ground; and my hair, which was long and
|
||
thick, tied down in the same manner. I likewise felt several slender
|
||
ligatures across my body, from my arm-pits to my thighs. I could only
|
||
look upwards; the sun began to grow hot, and the light offended my
|
||
eyes. I heard a confused noise about me; but in the posture I lay,
|
||
could see nothing except the sky. In a little time I felt something
|
||
alive moving on my left leg, which advancing gently forward over my
|
||
breast, came almost up to my chin; when, bending my eyes downwards as
|
||
much as I could, I perceived it to be a human creature not six inches
|
||
high, with a bow and arrow in his hands, and a quiver at his back. In
|
||
the mean time, I felt at least forty more of the same kind (as I
|
||
conjectured) following the first. I was in the utmost astonishment, and
|
||
roared so loud, that they all ran back in a fright; and some of them,
|
||
as I was afterwards told, were hurt with the falls they got by leaping
|
||
from my sides upon the ground. However, they soon returned, and one of
|
||
them, who ventured so far as to get a full sight of my face, lifting up
|
||
his hands and eyes by way of admiration, cried out in a shrill but
|
||
distinct voice, _Hekinah degul_: the others repeated the same words
|
||
several times, but then I knew not what they meant. I lay all this
|
||
while, as the reader may believe, in great uneasiness. At length,
|
||
struggling to get loose, I had the fortune to break the strings, and
|
||
wrench out the pegs that fastened my left arm to the ground; for, by
|
||
lifting it up to my face, I discovered the methods they had taken to
|
||
bind me, and at the same time with a violent pull, which gave me
|
||
excessive pain, I a little loosened the strings that tied down my hair
|
||
on the left side, so that I was just able to turn my head about two
|
||
inches. But the creatures ran off a second time, before I could seize
|
||
them; whereupon there was a great shout in a very shrill accent, and
|
||
after it ceased I heard one of them cry aloud _Tolgo phonac_; when in
|
||
an instant I felt above a hundred arrows discharged on my left hand,
|
||
which, pricked me like so many needles; and besides, they shot another
|
||
flight into the air, as we do bombs in Europe, whereof many, I suppose,
|
||
fell on my body, (though I felt them not), and some on my face, which I
|
||
immediately covered with my left hand. When this shower of arrows was
|
||
over, I fell a groaning with grief and pain; and then striving again to
|
||
get loose, they discharged another volley larger than the first, and
|
||
some of them attempted with spears to stick me in the sides; but by
|
||
good luck I had on a buff jerkin, which they could not pierce. I
|
||
thought it the most prudent method to lie still, and my design was to
|
||
continue so till night, when, my left hand being already loose, I could
|
||
easily free myself: and as for the inhabitants, I had reason to believe
|
||
I might be a match for the greatest army they could bring against me,
|
||
if they were all of the same size with him that I saw. But fortune
|
||
disposed otherwise of me. When the people observed I was quiet, they
|
||
discharged no more arrows; but, by the noise I heard, I knew their
|
||
numbers increased; and about four yards from me, over against my right
|
||
ear, I heard a knocking for above an hour, like that of people at work;
|
||
when turning my head that way, as well as the pegs and strings would
|
||
permit me, I saw a stage erected about a foot and a half from the
|
||
ground, capable of holding four of the inhabitants, with two or three
|
||
ladders to mount it: from whence one of them, who seemed to be a person
|
||
of quality, made me a long speech, whereof I understood not one
|
||
syllable. But I should have mentioned, that before the principal person
|
||
began his oration, he cried out three times, _Langro dehul san_ (these
|
||
words and the former were afterwards repeated and explained to me);
|
||
whereupon, immediately, about fifty of the inhabitants came and cut the
|
||
strings that fastened the left side of my head, which gave me the
|
||
liberty of turning it to the right, and of observing the person and
|
||
gesture of him that was to speak. He appeared to be of a middle age,
|
||
and taller than any of the other three who attended him, whereof one
|
||
was a page that held up his train, and seemed to be somewhat longer
|
||
than my middle finger; the other two stood one on each side to support
|
||
him. He acted every part of an orator, and I could observe many periods
|
||
of threatenings, and others of promises, pity, and kindness. I answered
|
||
in a few words, but in the most submissive manner, lifting up my left
|
||
hand, and both my eyes to the sun, as calling him for a witness; and
|
||
being almost famished with hunger, having not eaten a morsel for some
|
||
hours before I left the ship, I found the demands of nature so strong
|
||
upon me, that I could not forbear showing my impatience (perhaps
|
||
against the strict rules of decency) by putting my finger frequently to
|
||
my mouth, to signify that I wanted food. The _hurgo_ (for so they call
|
||
a great lord, as I afterwards learnt) understood me very well. He
|
||
descended from the stage, and commanded that several ladders should be
|
||
applied to my sides, on which above a hundred of the inhabitants
|
||
mounted and walked towards my mouth, laden with baskets full of meat,
|
||
which had been provided and sent thither by the king’s orders, upon the
|
||
first intelligence he received of me. I observed there was the flesh of
|
||
several animals, but could not distinguish them by the taste. There
|
||
were shoulders, legs, and loins, shaped like those of mutton, and very
|
||
well dressed, but smaller than the wings of a lark. I ate them by two
|
||
or three at a mouthful, and took three loaves at a time, about the
|
||
bigness of musket bullets. They supplied me as fast as they could,
|
||
showing a thousand marks of wonder and astonishment at my bulk and
|
||
appetite. I then made another sign, that I wanted drink. They found by
|
||
my eating that a small quantity would not suffice me; and being a most
|
||
ingenious people, they slung up, with great dexterity, one of their
|
||
largest hogsheads, then rolled it towards my hand, and beat out the
|
||
top; I drank it off at a draught, which I might well do, for it did not
|
||
hold half a pint, and tasted like a small wine of Burgundy, but much
|
||
more delicious. They brought me a second hogshead, which I drank in the
|
||
same manner, and made signs for more; but they had none to give me.
|
||
When I had performed these wonders, they shouted for joy, and danced
|
||
upon my breast, repeating several times as they did at first, _Hekinah
|
||
degul_. They made me a sign that I should throw down the two hogsheads,
|
||
but first warning the people below to stand out of the way, crying
|
||
aloud, _Borach mevolah_; and when they saw the vessels in the air,
|
||
there was a universal shout of _Hekinah degul_. I confess I was often
|
||
tempted, while they were passing backwards and forwards on my body, to
|
||
seize forty or fifty of the first that came in my reach, and dash them
|
||
against the ground. But the remembrance of what I had felt, which
|
||
probably might not be the worst they could do, and the promise of
|
||
honour I made them—for so I interpreted my submissive behaviour—soon
|
||
drove out these imaginations. Besides, I now considered myself as bound
|
||
by the laws of hospitality, to a people who had treated me with so much
|
||
expense and magnificence. However, in my thoughts I could not
|
||
sufficiently wonder at the intrepidity of these diminutive mortals, who
|
||
durst venture to mount and walk upon my body, while one of my hands was
|
||
at liberty, without trembling at the very sight of so prodigious a
|
||
creature as I must appear to them. After some time, when they observed
|
||
that I made no more demands for meat, there appeared before me a person
|
||
of high rank from his imperial majesty. His excellency, having mounted
|
||
on the small of my right leg, advanced forwards up to my face, with
|
||
about a dozen of his retinue; and producing his credentials under the
|
||
signet royal, which he applied close to my eyes, spoke about ten
|
||
minutes without any signs of anger, but with a kind of determinate
|
||
resolution, often pointing forwards, which, as I afterwards found, was
|
||
towards the capital city, about half a mile distant; whither it was
|
||
agreed by his majesty in council that I must be conveyed. I answered in
|
||
few words, but to no purpose, and made a sign with my hand that was
|
||
loose, putting it to the other (but over his excellency’s head for fear
|
||
of hurting him or his train) and then to my own head and body, to
|
||
signify that I desired my liberty. It appeared that he understood me
|
||
well enough, for he shook his head by way of disapprobation, and held
|
||
his hand in a posture to show that I must be carried as a prisoner.
|
||
However, he made other signs to let me understand that I should have
|
||
meat and drink enough, and very good treatment. Whereupon I once more
|
||
thought of attempting to break my bonds; but again, when I felt the
|
||
smart of their arrows upon my face and hands, which were all in
|
||
blisters, and many of the darts still sticking in them, and observing
|
||
likewise that the number of my enemies increased, I gave tokens to let
|
||
them know that they might do with me what they pleased. Upon this, the
|
||
_hurgo_ and his train withdrew, with much civility and cheerful
|
||
countenances. Soon after I heard a general shout, with frequent
|
||
repetitions of the words _Peplom selan_; and I felt great numbers of
|
||
people on my left side relaxing the cords to such a degree, that I was
|
||
able to turn upon my right, and to ease myself with making water; which
|
||
I very plentifully did, to the great astonishment of the people; who,
|
||
conjecturing by my motion what I was going to do, immediately opened to
|
||
the right and left on that side, to avoid the torrent, which fell with
|
||
such noise and violence from me. But before this, they had daubed my
|
||
face and both my hands with a sort of ointment, very pleasant to the
|
||
smell, which, in a few minutes, removed all the smart of their arrows.
|
||
These circumstances, added to the refreshment I had received by their
|
||
victuals and drink, which were very nourishing, disposed me to sleep. I
|
||
slept about eight hours, as I was afterwards assured; and it was no
|
||
wonder, for the physicians, by the emperor’s order, had mingled a
|
||
sleepy potion in the hogsheads of wine.
|
||
|
||
It seems, that upon the first moment I was discovered sleeping on the
|
||
ground, after my landing, the emperor had early notice of it by an
|
||
express; and determined in council, that I should be tied in the manner
|
||
I have related, (which was done in the night while I slept;) that
|
||
plenty of meat and drink should be sent to me, and a machine prepared
|
||
to carry me to the capital city.
|
||
|
||
This resolution perhaps may appear very bold and dangerous, and I am
|
||
confident would not be imitated by any prince in Europe on the like
|
||
occasion. However, in my opinion, it was extremely prudent, as well as
|
||
generous: for, supposing these people had endeavoured to kill me with
|
||
their spears and arrows, while I was asleep, I should certainly have
|
||
awaked with the first sense of smart, which might so far have roused my
|
||
rage and strength, as to have enabled me to break the strings wherewith
|
||
I was tied; after which, as they were not able to make resistance, so
|
||
they could expect no mercy.
|
||
|
||
These people are most excellent mathematicians, and arrived to a great
|
||
perfection in mechanics, by the countenance and encouragement of the
|
||
emperor, who is a renowned patron of learning. This prince has several
|
||
machines fixed on wheels, for the carriage of trees and other great
|
||
weights. He often builds his largest men of war, whereof some are nine
|
||
feet long, in the woods where the timber grows, and has them carried on
|
||
these engines three or four hundred yards to the sea. Five hundred
|
||
carpenters and engineers were immediately set at work to prepare the
|
||
greatest engine they had. It was a frame of wood raised three inches
|
||
from the ground, about seven feet long, and four wide, moving upon
|
||
twenty-two wheels. The shout I heard was upon the arrival of this
|
||
engine, which, it seems, set out in four hours after my landing. It was
|
||
brought parallel to me, as I lay. But the principal difficulty was to
|
||
raise and place me in this vehicle. Eighty poles, each of one foot
|
||
high, were erected for this purpose, and very strong cords, of the
|
||
bigness of packthread, were fastened by hooks to many bandages, which
|
||
the workmen had girt round my neck, my hands, my body, and my legs.
|
||
Nine hundred of the strongest men were employed to draw up these cords,
|
||
by many pulleys fastened on the poles; and thus, in less than three
|
||
hours, I was raised and slung into the engine, and there tied fast. All
|
||
this I was told; for, while the operation was performing, I lay in a
|
||
profound sleep, by the force of that soporiferous medicine infused into
|
||
my liquor. Fifteen hundred of the emperor’s largest horses, each about
|
||
four inches and a half high, were employed to draw me towards the
|
||
metropolis, which, as I said, was half a mile distant.
|
||
|
||
About four hours after we began our journey, I awaked by a very
|
||
ridiculous accident; for the carriage being stopped a while, to adjust
|
||
something that was out of order, two or three of the young natives had
|
||
the curiosity to see how I looked when I was asleep; they climbed up
|
||
into the engine, and advancing very softly to my face, one of them, an
|
||
officer in the guards, put the sharp end of his half-pike a good way up
|
||
into my left nostril, which tickled my nose like a straw, and made me
|
||
sneeze violently; whereupon they stole off unperceived, and it was
|
||
three weeks before I knew the cause of my waking so suddenly. We made a
|
||
long march the remaining part of the day, and, rested at night with
|
||
five hundred guards on each side of me, half with torches, and half
|
||
with bows and arrows, ready to shoot me if I should offer to stir. The
|
||
next morning at sunrise we continued our march, and arrived within two
|
||
hundred yards of the city gates about noon. The emperor, and all his
|
||
court, came out to meet us; but his great officers would by no means
|
||
suffer his majesty to endanger his person by mounting on my body.
|
||
|
||
At the place where the carriage stopped there stood an ancient temple,
|
||
esteemed to be the largest in the whole kingdom; which, having been
|
||
polluted some years before by an unnatural murder, was, according to
|
||
the zeal of those people, looked upon as profane, and therefore had
|
||
been applied to common use, and all the ornaments and furniture carried
|
||
away. In this edifice it was determined I should lodge. The great gate
|
||
fronting to the north was about four feet high, and almost two feet
|
||
wide, through which I could easily creep. On each side of the gate was
|
||
a small window, not above six inches from the ground: into that on the
|
||
left side, the king’s smith conveyed fourscore and eleven chains, like
|
||
those that hang to a lady’s watch in Europe, and almost as large, which
|
||
were locked to my left leg with six-and-thirty padlocks. Over against
|
||
this temple, on the other side of the great highway, at twenty feet
|
||
distance, there was a turret at least five feet high. Here the emperor
|
||
ascended, with many principal lords of his court, to have an
|
||
opportunity of viewing me, as I was told, for I could not see them. It
|
||
was reckoned that above a hundred thousand inhabitants came out of the
|
||
town upon the same errand; and, in spite of my guards, I believe there
|
||
could not be fewer than ten thousand at several times, who mounted my
|
||
body by the help of ladders. But a proclamation was soon issued, to
|
||
forbid it upon pain of death. When the workmen found it was impossible
|
||
for me to break loose, they cut all the strings that bound me;
|
||
whereupon I rose up, with as melancholy a disposition as ever I had in
|
||
my life. But the noise and astonishment of the people, at seeing me
|
||
rise and walk, are not to be expressed. The chains that held my left
|
||
leg were about two yards long, and gave me not only the liberty of
|
||
walking backwards and forwards in a semicircle, but, being fixed within
|
||
four inches of the gate, allowed me to creep in, and lie at my full
|
||
length in the temple.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER II.
|
||
|
||
The emperor of Lilliput, attended by several of the nobility, comes to
|
||
see the author in his confinement. The emperor’s person and habit
|
||
described. Learned men appointed to teach the author their language. He
|
||
gains favour by his mild disposition. His pockets are searched, and his
|
||
sword and pistols taken from him.
|
||
|
||
|
||
When I found myself on my feet, I looked about me, and must confess I
|
||
never beheld a more entertaining prospect. The country around appeared
|
||
like a continued garden, and the enclosed fields, which were generally
|
||
forty feet square, resembled so many beds of flowers. These fields were
|
||
intermingled with woods of half a stang, [301] and the tallest trees,
|
||
as I could judge, appeared to be seven feet high. I viewed the town on
|
||
my left hand, which looked like the painted scene of a city in a
|
||
theatre.
|
||
|
||
I had been for some hours extremely pressed by the necessities of
|
||
nature; which was no wonder, it being almost two days since I had last
|
||
disburdened myself. I was under great difficulties between urgency and
|
||
shame. The best expedient I could think of, was to creep into my house,
|
||
which I accordingly did; and shutting the gate after me, I went as far
|
||
as the length of my chain would suffer, and discharged my body of that
|
||
uneasy load. But this was the only time I was ever guilty of so
|
||
uncleanly an action; for which I cannot but hope the candid reader will
|
||
give some allowance, after he has maturely and impartially considered
|
||
my case, and the distress I was in. From this time my constant practice
|
||
was, as soon as I rose, to perform that business in open air, at the
|
||
full extent of my chain; and due care was taken every morning before
|
||
company came, that the offensive matter should be carried off in
|
||
wheel-barrows, by two servants appointed for that purpose. I would not
|
||
have dwelt so long upon a circumstance that, perhaps, at first sight,
|
||
may appear not very momentous, if I had not thought it necessary to
|
||
justify my character, in point of cleanliness, to the world; which, I
|
||
am told, some of my maligners have been pleased, upon this and other
|
||
occasions, to call in question.
|
||
|
||
When this adventure was at an end, I came back out of my house, having
|
||
occasion for fresh air. The emperor was already descended from the
|
||
tower, and advancing on horseback towards me, which had like to have
|
||
cost him dear; for the beast, though very well trained, yet wholly
|
||
unused to such a sight, which appeared as if a mountain moved before
|
||
him, reared up on its hinder feet: but that prince, who is an excellent
|
||
horseman, kept his seat, till his attendants ran in, and held the
|
||
bridle, while his majesty had time to dismount. When he alighted, he
|
||
surveyed me round with great admiration; but kept beyond the length of
|
||
my chain. He ordered his cooks and butlers, who were already prepared,
|
||
to give me victuals and drink, which they pushed forward in a sort of
|
||
vehicles upon wheels, till I could reach them. I took these vehicles
|
||
and soon emptied them all; twenty of them were filled with meat, and
|
||
ten with liquor; each of the former afforded me two or three good
|
||
mouthfuls; and I emptied the liquor of ten vessels, which was contained
|
||
in earthen vials, into one vehicle, drinking it off at a draught; and
|
||
so I did with the rest. The empress, and young princes of the blood of
|
||
both sexes, attended by many ladies, sat at some distance in their
|
||
chairs; but upon the accident that happened to the emperor’s horse,
|
||
they alighted, and came near his person, which I am now going to
|
||
describe. He is taller by almost the breadth of my nail, than any of
|
||
his court; which alone is enough to strike an awe into the beholders.
|
||
His features are strong and masculine, with an Austrian lip and arched
|
||
nose, his complexion olive, his countenance erect, his body and limbs
|
||
well proportioned, all his motions graceful, and his deportment
|
||
majestic. He was then past his prime, being twenty-eight years and
|
||
three quarters old, of which he had reigned about seven in great
|
||
felicity, and generally victorious. For the better convenience of
|
||
beholding him, I lay on my side, so that my face was parallel to his,
|
||
and he stood but three yards off: however, I have had him since many
|
||
times in my hand, and therefore cannot be deceived in the description.
|
||
His dress was very plain and simple, and the fashion of it between the
|
||
Asiatic and the European; but he had on his head a light helmet of
|
||
gold, adorned with jewels, and a plume on the crest. He held his sword
|
||
drawn in his hand to defend himself, if I should happen to break loose;
|
||
it was almost three inches long; the hilt and scabbard were gold
|
||
enriched with diamonds. His voice was shrill, but very clear and
|
||
articulate; and I could distinctly hear it when I stood up. The ladies
|
||
and courtiers were all most magnificently clad; so that the spot they
|
||
stood upon seemed to resemble a petticoat spread upon the ground,
|
||
embroidered with figures of gold and silver. His imperial majesty spoke
|
||
often to me, and I returned answers: but neither of us could understand
|
||
a syllable. There were several of his priests and lawyers present (as I
|
||
conjectured by their habits), who were commanded to address themselves
|
||
to me; and I spoke to them in as many languages as I had the least
|
||
smattering of, which were High and Low Dutch, Latin, French, Spanish,
|
||
Italian, and Lingua Franca, but all to no purpose. After about two
|
||
hours the court retired, and I was left with a strong guard, to prevent
|
||
the impertinence, and probably the malice of the rabble, who were very
|
||
impatient to crowd about me as near as they durst; and some of them had
|
||
the impudence to shoot their arrows at me, as I sat on the ground by
|
||
the door of my house, whereof one very narrowly missed my left eye. But
|
||
the colonel ordered six of the ringleaders to be seized, and thought no
|
||
punishment so proper as to deliver them bound into my hands; which some
|
||
of his soldiers accordingly did, pushing them forward with the
|
||
butt-ends of their pikes into my reach. I took them all in my right
|
||
hand, put five of them into my coat-pocket; and as to the sixth, I made
|
||
a countenance as if I would eat him alive. The poor man squalled
|
||
terribly, and the colonel and his officers were in much pain,
|
||
especially when they saw me take out my penknife: but I soon put them
|
||
out of fear; for, looking mildly, and immediately cutting the strings
|
||
he was bound with, I set him gently on the ground, and away he ran. I
|
||
treated the rest in the same manner, taking them one by one out of my
|
||
pocket; and I observed both the soldiers and people were highly
|
||
delighted at this mark of my clemency, which was represented very much
|
||
to my advantage at court.
|
||
|
||
Towards night I got with some difficulty into my house, where I lay on
|
||
the ground, and continued to do so about a fortnight; during which
|
||
time, the emperor gave orders to have a bed prepared for me. Six
|
||
hundred beds of the common measure were brought in carriages, and
|
||
worked up in my house; a hundred and fifty of their beds, sewn
|
||
together, made up the breadth and length; and these were four double:
|
||
which, however, kept me but very indifferently from the hardness of the
|
||
floor, that was of smooth stone. By the same computation, they provided
|
||
me with sheets, blankets, and coverlets, tolerable enough for one who
|
||
had been so long inured to hardships.
|
||
|
||
As the news of my arrival spread through the kingdom, it brought
|
||
prodigious numbers of rich, idle, and curious people to see me; so that
|
||
the villages were almost emptied; and great neglect of tillage and
|
||
household affairs must have ensued, if his imperial majesty had not
|
||
provided, by several proclamations and orders of state, against this
|
||
inconveniency. He directed that those who had already beheld me should
|
||
return home, and not presume to come within fifty yards of my house,
|
||
without license from the court; whereby the secretaries of state got
|
||
considerable fees.
|
||
|
||
In the mean time the emperor held frequent councils, to debate what
|
||
course should be taken with me; and I was afterwards assured by a
|
||
particular friend, a person of great quality, who was as much in the
|
||
secret as any, that the court was under many difficulties concerning
|
||
me. They apprehended my breaking loose; that my diet would be very
|
||
expensive, and might cause a famine. Sometimes they determined to
|
||
starve me; or at least to shoot me in the face and hands with poisoned
|
||
arrows, which would soon despatch me; but again they considered, that
|
||
the stench of so large a carcass might produce a plague in the
|
||
metropolis, and probably spread through the whole kingdom. In the midst
|
||
of these consultations, several officers of the army went to the door
|
||
of the great council-chamber, and two of them being admitted, gave an
|
||
account of my behaviour to the six criminals above-mentioned; which
|
||
made so favourable an impression in the breast of his majesty and the
|
||
whole board, in my behalf, that an imperial commission was issued out,
|
||
obliging all the villages, nine hundred yards round the city, to
|
||
deliver in every morning six beeves, forty sheep, and other victuals
|
||
for my sustenance; together with a proportionable quantity of bread,
|
||
and wine, and other liquors; for the due payment of which, his majesty
|
||
gave assignments upon his treasury:—for this prince lives chiefly upon
|
||
his own demesnes; seldom, except upon great occasions, raising any
|
||
subsidies upon his subjects, who are bound to attend him in his wars at
|
||
their own expense. An establishment was also made of six hundred
|
||
persons to be my domestics, who had board-wages allowed for their
|
||
maintenance, and tents built for them very conveniently on each side of
|
||
my door. It was likewise ordered, that three hundred tailors should
|
||
make me a suit of clothes, after the fashion of the country; that six
|
||
of his majesty’s greatest scholars should be employed to instruct me in
|
||
their language; and lastly, that the emperor’s horses, and those of the
|
||
nobility and troops of guards, should be frequently exercised in my
|
||
sight, to accustom themselves to me. All these orders were duly put in
|
||
execution; and in about three weeks I made a great progress in learning
|
||
their language; during which time the emperor frequently honoured me
|
||
with his visits, and was pleased to assist my masters in teaching me.
|
||
We began already to converse together in some sort; and the first words
|
||
I learnt, were to express my desire “that he would please give me my
|
||
liberty;” which I every day repeated on my knees. His answer, as I
|
||
could comprehend it, was, “that this must be a work of time, not to be
|
||
thought on without the advice of his council, and that first I must
|
||
_lumos kelmin pesso desmar lon emposo_;” that is, swear a peace with
|
||
him and his kingdom. However, that I should be used with all kindness.
|
||
And he advised me to “acquire, by my patience and discreet behaviour,
|
||
the good opinion of himself and his subjects.” He desired “I would not
|
||
take it ill, if he gave orders to certain proper officers to search me;
|
||
for probably I might carry about me several weapons, which must needs
|
||
be dangerous things, if they answered the bulk of so prodigious a
|
||
person.” I said, “His majesty should be satisfied; for I was ready to
|
||
strip myself, and turn up my pockets before him.” This I delivered part
|
||
in words, and part in signs. He replied, “that, by the laws of the
|
||
kingdom, I must be searched by two of his officers; that he knew this
|
||
could not be done without my consent and assistance; and he had so good
|
||
an opinion of my generosity and justice, as to trust their persons in
|
||
my hands; that whatever they took from me, should be returned when I
|
||
left the country, or paid for at the rate which I would set upon them.”
|
||
I took up the two officers in my hands, put them first into my
|
||
coat-pockets, and then into every other pocket about me, except my two
|
||
fobs, and another secret pocket, which I had no mind should be
|
||
searched, wherein I had some little necessaries that were of no
|
||
consequence to any but myself. In one of my fobs there was a silver
|
||
watch, and in the other a small quantity of gold in a purse. These
|
||
gentlemen, having pen, ink, and paper, about them, made an exact
|
||
inventory of every thing they saw; and when they had done, desired I
|
||
would set them down, that they might deliver it to the emperor. This
|
||
inventory I afterwards translated into English, and is, word for word,
|
||
as follows:
|
||
|
||
|
||
“_Imprimis_: In the right coat-pocket of the great man-mountain” (for
|
||
so I interpret the words _quinbus flestrin_,) “after the strictest
|
||
search, we found only one great piece of coarse-cloth, large enough to
|
||
be a foot-cloth for your majesty’s chief room of state. In the left
|
||
pocket we saw a huge silver chest, with a cover of the same metal,
|
||
which we, the searchers, were not able to lift. We desired it should be
|
||
opened, and one of us stepping into it, found himself up to the mid leg
|
||
in a sort of dust, some part whereof flying up to our faces set us both
|
||
a sneezing for several times together. In his right waistcoat-pocket we
|
||
found a prodigious bundle of white thin substances, folded one over
|
||
another, about the bigness of three men, tied with a strong cable, and
|
||
marked with black figures; which we humbly conceive to be writings,
|
||
every letter almost half as large as the palm of our hands. In the left
|
||
there was a sort of engine, from the back of which were extended twenty
|
||
long poles, resembling the pallisados before your majesty’s court:
|
||
wherewith we conjecture the man-mountain combs his head; for we did not
|
||
always trouble him with questions, because we found it a great
|
||
difficulty to make him understand us. In the large pocket, on the right
|
||
side of his middle cover” (so I translate the word _ranfulo_, by which
|
||
they meant my breeches,) “we saw a hollow pillar of iron, about the
|
||
length of a man, fastened to a strong piece of timber larger than the
|
||
pillar; and upon one side of the pillar, were huge pieces of iron
|
||
sticking out, cut into strange figures, which we know not what to make
|
||
of. In the left pocket, another engine of the same kind. In the smaller
|
||
pocket on the right side, were several round flat pieces of white and
|
||
red metal, of different bulk; some of the white, which seemed to be
|
||
silver, were so large and heavy, that my comrade and I could hardly
|
||
lift them. In the left pocket were two black pillars irregularly
|
||
shaped: we could not, without difficulty, reach the top of them, as we
|
||
stood at the bottom of his pocket. One of them was covered, and seemed
|
||
all of a piece: but at the upper end of the other there appeared a
|
||
white round substance, about twice the bigness of our heads. Within
|
||
each of these was enclosed a prodigious plate of steel; which, by our
|
||
orders, we obliged him to show us, because we apprehended they might be
|
||
dangerous engines. He took them out of their cases, and told us, that
|
||
in his own country his practice was to shave his beard with one of
|
||
these, and cut his meat with the other. There were two pockets which we
|
||
could not enter: these he called his fobs; they were two large slits
|
||
cut into the top of his middle cover, but squeezed close by the
|
||
pressure of his belly. Out of the right fob hung a great silver chain,
|
||
with a wonderful kind of engine at the bottom. We directed him to draw
|
||
out whatever was at the end of that chain; which appeared to be a
|
||
globe, half silver, and half of some transparent metal; for, on the
|
||
transparent side, we saw certain strange figures circularly drawn, and
|
||
thought we could touch them, till we found our fingers stopped by the
|
||
lucid substance. He put this engine into our ears, which made an
|
||
incessant noise, like that of a water-mill: and we conjecture it is
|
||
either some unknown animal, or the god that he worships; but we are
|
||
more inclined to the latter opinion, because he assured us, (if we
|
||
understood him right, for he expressed himself very imperfectly) that
|
||
he seldom did any thing without consulting it. He called it his oracle,
|
||
and said, it pointed out the time for every action of his life. From
|
||
the left fob he took out a net almost large enough for a fisherman, but
|
||
contrived to open and shut like a purse, and served him for the same
|
||
use: we found therein several massy pieces of yellow metal, which, if
|
||
they be real gold, must be of immense value.
|
||
|
||
“Having thus, in obedience to your majesty’s commands, diligently
|
||
searched all his pockets, we observed a girdle about his waist made of
|
||
the hide of some prodigious animal, from which, on the left side, hung
|
||
a sword of the length of five men; and on the right, a bag or pouch
|
||
divided into two cells, each cell capable of holding three of your
|
||
majesty’s subjects. In one of these cells were several globes, or
|
||
balls, of a most ponderous metal, about the bigness of our heads, and
|
||
requiring a strong hand to lift them: the other cell contained a heap
|
||
of certain black grains, but of no great bulk or weight, for we could
|
||
hold above fifty of them in the palms of our hands.
|
||
|
||
“This is an exact inventory of what we found about the body of the
|
||
man-mountain, who used us with great civility, and due respect to your
|
||
majesty’s commission. Signed and sealed on the fourth day of the
|
||
eighty-ninth moon of your majesty’s auspicious reign.
|
||
|
||
|
||
Clefrin Frelock, Marsi Frelock.”
|
||
|
||
When this inventory was read over to the emperor, he directed me,
|
||
although in very gentle terms, to deliver up the several particulars.
|
||
He first called for my scimitar, which I took out, scabbard and all. In
|
||
the mean time he ordered three thousand of his choicest troops (who
|
||
then attended him) to surround me at a distance, with their bows and
|
||
arrows just ready to discharge; but I did not observe it, for my eyes
|
||
were wholly fixed upon his majesty. He then desired me to draw my
|
||
scimitar, which, although it had got some rust by the sea water, was,
|
||
in most parts, exceeding bright. I did so, and immediately all the
|
||
troops gave a shout between terror and surprise; for the sun shone
|
||
clear, and the reflection dazzled their eyes, as I waved the scimitar
|
||
to and fro in my hand. His majesty, who is a most magnanimous prince,
|
||
was less daunted than I could expect: he ordered me to return it into
|
||
the scabbard, and cast it on the ground as gently as I could, about six
|
||
feet from the end of my chain. The next thing he demanded was one of
|
||
the hollow iron pillars; by which he meant my pocket pistols. I drew it
|
||
out, and at his desire, as well as I could, expressed to him the use of
|
||
it; and charging it only with powder, which, by the closeness of my
|
||
pouch, happened to escape wetting in the sea (an inconvenience against
|
||
which all prudent mariners take special care to provide,) I first
|
||
cautioned the emperor not to be afraid, and then I let it off in the
|
||
air. The astonishment here was much greater than at the sight of my
|
||
scimitar. Hundreds fell down as if they had been struck dead; and even
|
||
the emperor, although he stood his ground, could not recover himself
|
||
for some time. I delivered up both my pistols in the same manner as I
|
||
had done my scimitar, and then my pouch of powder and bullets; begging
|
||
him that the former might be kept from fire, for it would kindle with
|
||
the smallest spark, and blow up his imperial palace into the air. I
|
||
likewise delivered up my watch, which the emperor was very curious to
|
||
see, and commanded two of his tallest yeomen of the guards to bear it
|
||
on a pole upon their shoulders, as draymen in England do a barrel of
|
||
ale. He was amazed at the continual noise it made, and the motion of
|
||
the minute-hand, which he could easily discern; for their sight is much
|
||
more acute than ours: he asked the opinions of his learned men about
|
||
it, which were various and remote, as the reader may well imagine
|
||
without my repeating; although indeed I could not very perfectly
|
||
understand them. I then gave up my silver and copper money, my purse,
|
||
with nine large pieces of gold, and some smaller ones; my knife and
|
||
razor, my comb and silver snuff-box, my handkerchief and journal-book.
|
||
My scimitar, pistols, and pouch, were conveyed in carriages to his
|
||
majesty’s stores; but the rest of my goods were returned me.
|
||
|
||
I had as I before observed, one private pocket, which escaped their
|
||
search, wherein there was a pair of spectacles (which I sometimes use
|
||
for the weakness of my eyes,) a pocket perspective, and some other
|
||
little conveniences; which, being of no consequence to the emperor, I
|
||
did not think myself bound in honour to discover, and I apprehended
|
||
they might be lost or spoiled if I ventured them out of my possession.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER III.
|
||
|
||
The author diverts the emperor, and his nobility of both sexes, in a
|
||
very uncommon manner. The diversions of the court of Lilliput
|
||
described. The author has his liberty granted him upon certain
|
||
conditions.
|
||
|
||
|
||
My gentleness and good behaviour had gained so far on the emperor and
|
||
his court, and indeed upon the army and people in general, that I began
|
||
to conceive hopes of getting my liberty in a short time. I took all
|
||
possible methods to cultivate this favourable disposition. The natives
|
||
came, by degrees, to be less apprehensive of any danger from me. I
|
||
would sometimes lie down, and let five or six of them dance on my hand;
|
||
and at last the boys and girls would venture to come and play at
|
||
hide-and-seek in my hair. I had now made a good progress in
|
||
understanding and speaking the language. The emperor had a mind one day
|
||
to entertain me with several of the country shows, wherein they exceed
|
||
all nations I have known, both for dexterity and magnificence. I was
|
||
diverted with none so much as that of the rope-dancers, performed upon
|
||
a slender white thread, extended about two feet, and twelve inches from
|
||
the ground. Upon which I shall desire liberty, with the reader’s
|
||
patience, to enlarge a little.
|
||
|
||
This diversion is only practised by those persons who are candidates
|
||
for great employments, and high favour at court. They are trained in
|
||
this art from their youth, and are not always of noble birth, or
|
||
liberal education. When a great office is vacant, either by death or
|
||
disgrace (which often happens) five or six of those candidates
|
||
petition the emperor to entertain his majesty and the court with a
|
||
dance on the rope; and whoever jumps the highest, without falling,
|
||
succeeds in the office. Very often the chief ministers themselves are
|
||
commanded to show their skill, and to convince the emperor that they
|
||
have not lost their faculty. Flimnap, the treasurer, is allowed to cut
|
||
a caper on the straight rope, at least an inch higher than any other
|
||
lord in the whole empire. I have seen him do the summerset several
|
||
times together, upon a trencher fixed on a rope which is no thicker
|
||
than a common packthread in England. My friend Reldresal, principal
|
||
secretary for private affairs, is, in my opinion, if I am not partial,
|
||
the second after the treasurer; the rest of the great officers are much
|
||
upon a par.
|
||
|
||
These diversions are often attended with fatal accidents, whereof great
|
||
numbers are on record. I myself have seen two or three candidates break
|
||
a limb. But the danger is much greater, when the ministers themselves
|
||
are commanded to show their dexterity; for, by contending to excel
|
||
themselves and their fellows, they strain so far that there is hardly
|
||
one of them who has not received a fall, and some of them two or three.
|
||
I was assured that, a year or two before my arrival, Flimnap would
|
||
infallibly have broke his neck, if one of the king’s cushions, that
|
||
accidentally lay on the ground, had not weakened the force of his fall.
|
||
|
||
There is likewise another diversion, which is only shown before the
|
||
emperor and empress, and first minister, upon particular occasions. The
|
||
emperor lays on the table three fine silken threads of six inches long;
|
||
one is blue, the other red, and the third green. These threads are
|
||
proposed as prizes for those persons whom the emperor has a mind to
|
||
distinguish by a peculiar mark of his favour. The ceremony is performed
|
||
in his majesty’s great chamber of state, where the candidates are to
|
||
undergo a trial of dexterity very different from the former, and such
|
||
as I have not observed the least resemblance of in any other country of
|
||
the new or old world. The emperor holds a stick in his hands, both ends
|
||
parallel to the horizon, while the candidates advancing, one by one,
|
||
sometimes leap over the stick, sometimes creep under it, backward and
|
||
forward, several times, according as the stick is advanced or
|
||
depressed. Sometimes the emperor holds one end of the stick, and his
|
||
first minister the other; sometimes the minister has it entirely to
|
||
himself. Whoever performs his part with most agility, and holds out the
|
||
longest in leaping and creeping, is rewarded with the blue-coloured
|
||
silk; the red is given to the next, and the green to the third, which
|
||
they all wear girt twice round about the middle; and you see few great
|
||
persons about this court who are not adorned with one of these girdles.
|
||
|
||
The horses of the army, and those of the royal stables, having been
|
||
daily led before me, were no longer shy, but would come up to my very
|
||
feet without starting. The riders would leap them over my hand, as I
|
||
held it on the ground; and one of the emperor’s huntsmen, upon a large
|
||
courser, took my foot, shoe and all; which was indeed a prodigious
|
||
leap. I had the good fortune to divert the emperor one day after a very
|
||
extraordinary manner. I desired he would order several sticks of two
|
||
feet high, and the thickness of an ordinary cane, to be brought me;
|
||
whereupon his majesty commanded the master of his woods to give
|
||
directions accordingly; and the next morning six woodmen arrived with
|
||
as many carriages, drawn by eight horses to each. I took nine of these
|
||
sticks, and fixing them firmly in the ground in a quadrangular figure,
|
||
two feet and a half square, I took four other sticks, and tied them
|
||
parallel at each corner, about two feet from the ground; then I
|
||
fastened my handkerchief to the nine sticks that stood erect; and
|
||
extended it on all sides, till it was tight as the top of a drum; and
|
||
the four parallel sticks, rising about five inches higher than the
|
||
handkerchief, served as ledges on each side. When I had finished my
|
||
work, I desired the emperor to let a troop of his best horses
|
||
twenty-four in number, come and exercise upon this plain. His majesty
|
||
approved of the proposal, and I took them up, one by one, in my hands,
|
||
ready mounted and armed, with the proper officers to exercise them. As
|
||
soon as they got into order they divided into two parties, performed
|
||
mock skirmishes, discharged blunt arrows, drew their swords, fled and
|
||
pursued, attacked and retired, and in short discovered the best
|
||
military discipline I ever beheld. The parallel sticks secured them and
|
||
their horses from falling over the stage; and the emperor was so much
|
||
delighted, that he ordered this entertainment to be repeated several
|
||
days, and once was pleased to be lifted up and give the word of
|
||
command; and with great difficulty persuaded even the empress herself
|
||
to let me hold her in her close chair within two yards of the stage,
|
||
when she was able to take a full view of the whole performance. It was
|
||
my good fortune, that no ill accident happened in these entertainments;
|
||
only once a fiery horse, that belonged to one of the captains, pawing
|
||
with his hoof, struck a hole in my handkerchief, and his foot slipping,
|
||
he overthrew his rider and himself; but I immediately relieved them
|
||
both, and covering the hole with one hand, I set down the troop with
|
||
the other, in the same manner as I took them up. The horse that fell
|
||
was strained in the left shoulder, but the rider got no hurt; and I
|
||
repaired my handkerchief as well as I could: however, I would not trust
|
||
to the strength of it any more, in such dangerous enterprises.
|
||
|
||
About two or three days before I was set at liberty, as I was
|
||
entertaining the court with this kind of feat, there arrived an express
|
||
to inform his majesty, that some of his subjects, riding near the place
|
||
where I was first taken up, had seen a great black substance lying on
|
||
the ground, very oddly shaped, extending its edges round, as wide as
|
||
his majesty’s bedchamber, and rising up in the middle as high as a man;
|
||
that it was no living creature, as they at first apprehended, for it
|
||
lay on the grass without motion; and some of them had walked round it
|
||
several times; that, by mounting upon each other’s shoulders, they had
|
||
got to the top, which was flat and even, and, stamping upon it, they
|
||
found that it was hollow within; that they humbly conceived it might be
|
||
something belonging to the man-mountain; and if his majesty pleased,
|
||
they would undertake to bring it with only five horses. I presently
|
||
knew what they meant, and was glad at heart to receive this
|
||
intelligence. It seems, upon my first reaching the shore after our
|
||
shipwreck, I was in such confusion, that before I came to the place
|
||
where I went to sleep, my hat, which I had fastened with a string to my
|
||
head while I was rowing, and had stuck on all the time I was swimming,
|
||
fell off after I came to land; the string, as I conjecture, breaking by
|
||
some accident, which I never observed, but thought my hat had been lost
|
||
at sea. I entreated his imperial majesty to give orders it might be
|
||
brought to me as soon as possible, describing to him the use and the
|
||
nature of it: and the next day the waggoners arrived with it, but not
|
||
in a very good condition; they had bored two holes in the brim, within
|
||
an inch and half of the edge, and fastened two hooks in the holes;
|
||
these hooks were tied by a long cord to the harness, and thus my hat
|
||
was dragged along for above half an English mile; but, the ground in
|
||
that country being extremely smooth and level, it received less damage
|
||
than I expected.
|
||
|
||
Two days after this adventure, the emperor, having ordered that part of
|
||
his army which quarters in and about his metropolis, to be in
|
||
readiness, took a fancy of diverting himself in a very singular manner.
|
||
He desired I would stand like a Colossus, with my legs as far asunder
|
||
as I conveniently could. He then commanded his general (who was an old
|
||
experienced leader, and a great patron of mine) to draw up the troops
|
||
in close order, and march them under me; the foot by twenty-four
|
||
abreast, and the horse by sixteen, with drums beating, colours flying,
|
||
and pikes advanced. This body consisted of three thousand foot, and a
|
||
thousand horse. His majesty gave orders, upon pain of death, that every
|
||
soldier in his march should observe the strictest decency with regard
|
||
to my person; which however could not prevent some of the younger
|
||
officers from turning up their eyes as they passed under me: and, to
|
||
confess the truth, my breeches were at that time in so ill a condition,
|
||
that they afforded some opportunities for laughter and admiration.
|
||
|
||
I had sent so many memorials and petitions for my liberty, that his
|
||
majesty at length mentioned the matter, first in the cabinet, and then
|
||
in a full council; where it was opposed by none, except Skyresh
|
||
Bolgolam, who was pleased, without any provocation, to be my mortal
|
||
enemy. But it was carried against him by the whole board, and confirmed
|
||
by the emperor. That minister was _galbet_, or admiral of the realm,
|
||
very much in his master’s confidence, and a person well versed in
|
||
affairs, but of a morose and sour complexion. However, he was at length
|
||
persuaded to comply; but prevailed that the articles and conditions
|
||
upon which I should be set free, and to which I must swear, should be
|
||
drawn up by himself. These articles were brought to me by Skyresh
|
||
Bolgolam in person attended by two under-secretaries, and several
|
||
persons of distinction. After they were read, I was demanded to swear
|
||
to the performance of them; first in the manner of my own country, and
|
||
afterwards in the method prescribed by their laws; which was, to hold
|
||
my right foot in my left hand, and to place the middle finger of my
|
||
right hand on the crown of my head, and my thumb on the tip of my right
|
||
ear. But because the reader may be curious to have some idea of the
|
||
style and manner of expression peculiar to that people, as well as to
|
||
know the article upon which I recovered my liberty, I have made a
|
||
translation of the whole instrument, word for word, as near as I was
|
||
able, which I here offer to the public.
|
||
|
||
|
||
“Golbasto Momarem Evlame Gurdilo Shefin Mully Ully Gue, most mighty
|
||
Emperor of Lilliput, delight and terror of the universe, whose
|
||
dominions extend five thousand _blustrugs_ (about twelve miles in
|
||
circumference) to the extremities of the globe; monarch of all
|
||
monarchs, taller than the sons of men; whose feet press down to the
|
||
centre, and whose head strikes against the sun; at whose nod the
|
||
princes of the earth shake their knees; pleasant as the spring,
|
||
comfortable as the summer, fruitful as autumn, dreadful as winter: his
|
||
most sublime majesty proposes to the man-mountain, lately arrived at
|
||
our celestial dominions, the following articles, which, by a solemn
|
||
oath, he shall be obliged to perform:—
|
||
|
||
“1st, The man-mountain shall not depart from our dominions, without our
|
||
license under our great seal.
|
||
|
||
“2d, He shall not presume to come into our metropolis, without our
|
||
express order; at which time, the inhabitants shall have two hours
|
||
warning to keep within doors.
|
||
|
||
“3d, The said man-mountain shall confine his walks to our principal
|
||
high roads, and not offer to walk, or lie down, in a meadow or field of
|
||
corn.
|
||
|
||
“4th, As he walks the said roads, he shall take the utmost care not to
|
||
trample upon the bodies of any of our loving subjects, their horses, or
|
||
carriages, nor take any of our subjects into his hands without their
|
||
own consent.
|
||
|
||
“5th, If an express requires extraordinary despatch, the man-mountain
|
||
shall be obliged to carry, in his pocket, the messenger and horse a six
|
||
days journey, once in every moon, and return the said messenger back
|
||
(if so required) safe to our imperial presence.
|
||
|
||
“6th, He shall be our ally against our enemies in the island of
|
||
Blefuscu, and do his utmost to destroy their fleet, which is now
|
||
preparing to invade us.
|
||
|
||
“7th, That the said man-mountain shall, at his times of leisure, be
|
||
aiding and assisting to our workmen, in helping to raise certain great
|
||
stones, towards covering the wall of the principal park, and other our
|
||
royal buildings.
|
||
|
||
“8th, That the said man-mountain shall, in two moons’ time, deliver in
|
||
an exact survey of the circumference of our dominions, by a computation
|
||
of his own paces round the coast.
|
||
|
||
“Lastly, That, upon his solemn oath to observe all the above articles,
|
||
the said man-mountain shall have a daily allowance of meat and drink
|
||
sufficient for the support of 1724 of our subjects, with free access to
|
||
our royal person, and other marks of our favour. Given at our palace at
|
||
Belfaborac, the twelfth day of the ninety-first moon of our reign.”
|
||
|
||
|
||
I swore and subscribed to these articles with great cheerfulness and
|
||
content, although some of them were not so honourable as I could have
|
||
wished; which proceeded wholly from the malice of Skyresh Bolgolam, the
|
||
high-admiral: whereupon my chains were immediately unlocked, and I was
|
||
at full liberty. The emperor himself, in person, did me the honour to
|
||
be by at the whole ceremony. I made my acknowledgements by prostrating
|
||
myself at his majesty’s feet: but he commanded me to rise; and after
|
||
many gracious expressions, which, to avoid the censure of vanity, I
|
||
shall not repeat, he added, “that he hoped I should prove a useful
|
||
servant, and well deserve all the favours he had already conferred upon
|
||
me, or might do for the future.”
|
||
|
||
The reader may please to observe, that, in the last article of the
|
||
recovery of my liberty, the emperor stipulates to allow me a quantity
|
||
of meat and drink sufficient for the support of 1724 Lilliputians. Some
|
||
time after, asking a friend at court how they came to fix on that
|
||
determinate number, he told me that his majesty’s mathematicians,
|
||
having taken the height of my body by the help of a quadrant, and
|
||
finding it to exceed theirs in the proportion of twelve to one, they
|
||
concluded from the similarity of their bodies, that mine must contain
|
||
at least 1724 of theirs, and consequently would require as much food as
|
||
was necessary to support that number of Lilliputians. By which the
|
||
reader may conceive an idea of the ingenuity of that people, as well as
|
||
the prudent and exact economy of so great a prince.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER IV.
|
||
|
||
Mildendo, the metropolis of Lilliput, described, together with the
|
||
emperor’s palace. A conversation between the author and a principal
|
||
secretary, concerning the affairs of that empire. The author’s offers
|
||
to serve the emperor in his wars.
|
||
|
||
|
||
The first request I made, after I had obtained my liberty, was, that I
|
||
might have license to see Mildendo, the metropolis; which the emperor
|
||
easily granted me, but with a special charge to do no hurt either to
|
||
the inhabitants or their houses. The people had notice, by
|
||
proclamation, of my design to visit the town. The wall which
|
||
encompassed it is two feet and a half high, and at least eleven inches
|
||
broad, so that a coach and horses may be driven very safely round it;
|
||
and it is flanked with strong towers at ten feet distance. I stepped
|
||
over the great western gate, and passed very gently, and sidling,
|
||
through the two principal streets, only in my short waistcoat, for fear
|
||
of damaging the roofs and eaves of the houses with the skirts of my
|
||
coat. I walked with the utmost circumspection, to avoid treading on any
|
||
stragglers who might remain in the streets, although the orders were
|
||
very strict, that all people should keep in their houses, at their own
|
||
peril. The garret windows and tops of houses were so crowded with
|
||
spectators, that I thought in all my travels I had not seen a more
|
||
populous place. The city is an exact square, each side of the wall
|
||
being five hundred feet long. The two great streets, which run across
|
||
and divide it into four quarters, are five feet wide. The lanes and
|
||
alleys, which I could not enter, but only view them as I passed, are
|
||
from twelve to eighteen inches. The town is capable of holding five
|
||
hundred thousand souls: the houses are from three to five stories: the
|
||
shops and markets well provided.
|
||
|
||
The emperor’s palace is in the centre of the city where the two great
|
||
streets meet. It is enclosed by a wall of two feet high, and twenty
|
||
feet distance from the buildings. I had his majesty’s permission to
|
||
step over this wall; and, the space being so wide between that and the
|
||
palace, I could easily view it on every side. The outward court is a
|
||
square of forty feet, and includes two other courts: in the inmost are
|
||
the royal apartments, which I was very desirous to see, but found it
|
||
extremely difficult; for the great gates, from one square into another,
|
||
were but eighteen inches high, and seven inches wide. Now the buildings
|
||
of the outer court were at least five feet high, and it was impossible
|
||
for me to stride over them without infinite damage to the pile, though
|
||
the walls were strongly built of hewn stone, and four inches thick. At
|
||
the same time the emperor had a great desire that I should see the
|
||
magnificence of his palace; but this I was not able to do till three
|
||
days after, which I spent in cutting down with my knife some of the
|
||
largest trees in the royal park, about a hundred yards distant from the
|
||
city. Of these trees I made two stools, each about three feet high, and
|
||
strong enough to bear my weight. The people having received notice a
|
||
second time, I went again through the city to the palace with my two
|
||
stools in my hands. When I came to the side of the outer court, I stood
|
||
upon one stool, and took the other in my hand; this I lifted over the
|
||
roof, and gently set it down on the space between the first and second
|
||
court, which was eight feet wide. I then stept over the building very
|
||
conveniently from one stool to the other, and drew up the first after
|
||
me with a hooked stick. By this contrivance I got into the inmost
|
||
court; and, lying down upon my side, I applied my face to the windows
|
||
of the middle stories, which were left open on purpose, and discovered
|
||
the most splendid apartments that can be imagined. There I saw the
|
||
empress and the young princes, in their several lodgings, with their
|
||
chief attendants about them. Her imperial majesty was pleased to smile
|
||
very graciously upon me, and gave me out of the window her hand to
|
||
kiss.
|
||
|
||
But I shall not anticipate the reader with further descriptions of this
|
||
kind, because I reserve them for a greater work, which is now almost
|
||
ready for the press; containing a general description of this empire,
|
||
from its first erection, through a long series of princes; with a
|
||
particular account of their wars and politics, laws, learning, and
|
||
religion; their plants and animals; their peculiar manners and customs,
|
||
with other matters very curious and useful; my chief design at present
|
||
being only to relate such events and transactions as happened to the
|
||
public or to myself during a residence of about nine months in that
|
||
empire.
|
||
|
||
One morning, about a fortnight after I had obtained my liberty,
|
||
Reldresal, principal secretary (as they style him) for private affairs,
|
||
came to my house attended only by one servant. He ordered his coach to
|
||
wait at a distance, and desired I would give him an hour’s audience;
|
||
which I readily consented to, on account of his quality and personal
|
||
merits, as well as of the many good offices he had done me during my
|
||
solicitations at court. I offered to lie down that he might the more
|
||
conveniently reach my ear, but he chose rather to let me hold him in my
|
||
hand during our conversation. He began with compliments on my liberty;
|
||
said “he might pretend to some merit in it;” but, however, added, “that
|
||
if it had not been for the present situation of things at court,
|
||
perhaps I might not have obtained it so soon. For,” said he, “as
|
||
flourishing a condition as we may appear to be in to foreigners, we
|
||
labour under two mighty evils: a violent faction at home, and the
|
||
danger of an invasion, by a most potent enemy, from abroad. As to the
|
||
first, you are to understand, that for about seventy moons past there
|
||
have been two struggling parties in this empire, under the names of
|
||
_Tramecksan_ and _Slamecksan_, from the high and low heels of their
|
||
shoes, by which they distinguish themselves. It is alleged, indeed,
|
||
that the high heels are most agreeable to our ancient constitution;
|
||
but, however this be, his majesty has determined to make use only of
|
||
low heels in the administration of the government, and all offices in
|
||
the gift of the crown, as you cannot but observe; and particularly that
|
||
his majesty’s imperial heels are lower at least by a _drurr_ than any
|
||
of his court (_drurr_ is a measure about the fourteenth part of an
|
||
inch). The animosities between these two parties run so high, that they
|
||
will neither eat, nor drink, nor talk with each other. We compute the
|
||
_Tramecksan_, or high heels, to exceed us in number; but the power is
|
||
wholly on our side. We apprehend his imperial highness, the heir to the
|
||
crown, to have some tendency towards the high heels; at least we can
|
||
plainly discover that one of his heels is higher than the other, which
|
||
gives him a hobble in his gait. Now, in the midst of these intestine
|
||
disquiets, we are threatened with an invasion from the island of
|
||
Blefuscu, which is the other great empire of the universe, almost as
|
||
large and powerful as this of his majesty. For as to what we have heard
|
||
you affirm, that there are other kingdoms and states in the world
|
||
inhabited by human creatures as large as yourself, our philosophers are
|
||
in much doubt, and would rather conjecture that you dropped from the
|
||
moon, or one of the stars; because it is certain, that a hundred
|
||
mortals of your bulk would in a short time destroy all the fruits and
|
||
cattle of his majesty’s dominions: besides, our histories of six
|
||
thousand moons make no mention of any other regions than the two great
|
||
empires of Lilliput and Blefuscu. Which two mighty powers have, as I
|
||
was going to tell you, been engaged in a most obstinate war for
|
||
six-and-thirty moons past. It began upon the following occasion. It is
|
||
allowed on all hands, that the primitive way of breaking eggs, before
|
||
we eat them, was upon the larger end; but his present majesty’s
|
||
grandfather, while he was a boy, going to eat an egg, and breaking it
|
||
according to the ancient practice, happened to cut one of his fingers.
|
||
Whereupon the emperor his father published an edict, commanding all his
|
||
subjects, upon great penalties, to break the smaller end of their eggs.
|
||
The people so highly resented this law, that our histories tell us,
|
||
there have been six rebellions raised on that account; wherein one
|
||
emperor lost his life, and another his crown. These civil commotions
|
||
were constantly fomented by the monarchs of Blefuscu; and when they
|
||
were quelled, the exiles always fled for refuge to that empire. It is
|
||
computed that eleven thousand persons have at several times suffered
|
||
death, rather than submit to break their eggs at the smaller end. Many
|
||
hundred large volumes have been published upon this controversy: but
|
||
the books of the Big-endians have been long forbidden, and the whole
|
||
party rendered incapable by law of holding employments. During the
|
||
course of these troubles, the emperors of Blefuscu did frequently
|
||
expostulate by their ambassadors, accusing us of making a schism in
|
||
religion, by offending against a fundamental doctrine of our great
|
||
prophet Lustrog, in the fifty-fourth chapter of the Blundecral (which
|
||
is their Alcoran). This, however, is thought to be a mere strain upon
|
||
the text; for the words are these: ‘that all true believers break their
|
||
eggs at the convenient end.’ And which is the convenient end, seems, in
|
||
my humble opinion to be left to every man’s conscience, or at least in
|
||
the power of the chief magistrate to determine. Now, the Big-endian
|
||
exiles have found so much credit in the emperor of Blefuscu’s court,
|
||
and so much private assistance and encouragement from their party here
|
||
at home, that a bloody war has been carried on between the two empires
|
||
for six-and-thirty moons, with various success; during which time we
|
||
have lost forty capital ships, and a much greater number of smaller
|
||
vessels, together with thirty thousand of our best seamen and soldiers;
|
||
and the damage received by the enemy is reckoned to be somewhat greater
|
||
than ours. However, they have now equipped a numerous fleet, and are
|
||
just preparing to make a descent upon us; and his imperial majesty,
|
||
placing great confidence in your valour and strength, has commanded me
|
||
to lay this account of his affairs before you.”
|
||
|
||
I desired the secretary to present my humble duty to the emperor; and
|
||
to let him know, “that I thought it would not become me, who was a
|
||
foreigner, to interfere with parties; but I was ready, with the hazard
|
||
of my life, to defend his person and state against all invaders.”
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER V.
|
||
|
||
The author, by an extraordinary stratagem, prevents an invasion. A high
|
||
title of honour is conferred upon him. Ambassadors arrive from the
|
||
emperor of Blefuscu, and sue for peace. The empress’s apartment on fire
|
||
by an accident; the author instrumental in saving the rest of the
|
||
palace.
|
||
|
||
|
||
The empire of Blefuscu is an island situated to the north-east of
|
||
Lilliput, from which it is parted only by a channel of eight hundred
|
||
yards wide. I had not yet seen it, and upon this notice of an intended
|
||
invasion, I avoided appearing on that side of the coast, for fear of
|
||
being discovered, by some of the enemy’s ships, who had received no
|
||
intelligence of me; all intercourse between the two empires having been
|
||
strictly forbidden during the war, upon pain of death, and an embargo
|
||
laid by our emperor upon all vessels whatsoever. I communicated to his
|
||
majesty a project I had formed of seizing the enemy’s whole fleet;
|
||
which, as our scouts assured us, lay at anchor in the harbour, ready to
|
||
sail with the first fair wind. I consulted the most experienced seamen
|
||
upon the depth of the channel, which they had often plumbed; who told
|
||
me, that in the middle, at high-water, it was seventy _glumgluffs_
|
||
deep, which is about six feet of European measure; and the rest of it
|
||
fifty _glumgluffs_ at most. I walked towards the north-east coast, over
|
||
against Blefuscu, where, lying down behind a hillock, I took out my
|
||
small perspective glass, and viewed the enemy’s fleet at anchor,
|
||
consisting of about fifty men of war, and a great number of transports:
|
||
I then came back to my house, and gave orders (for which I had a
|
||
warrant) for a great quantity of the strongest cable and bars of iron.
|
||
The cable was about as thick as packthread and the bars of the length
|
||
and size of a knitting-needle. I trebled the cable to make it stronger,
|
||
and for the same reason I twisted three of the iron bars together,
|
||
bending the extremities into a hook. Having thus fixed fifty hooks to
|
||
as many cables, I went back to the north-east coast, and putting off my
|
||
coat, shoes, and stockings, walked into the sea, in my leathern jerkin,
|
||
about half an hour before high water. I waded with what haste I could,
|
||
and swam in the middle about thirty yards, till I felt ground. I
|
||
arrived at the fleet in less than half an hour. The enemy was so
|
||
frightened when they saw me, that they leaped out of their ships, and
|
||
swam to shore, where there could not be fewer than thirty thousand
|
||
souls. I then took my tackling, and, fastening a hook to the hole at
|
||
the prow of each, I tied all the cords together at the end. While I was
|
||
thus employed, the enemy discharged several thousand arrows, many of
|
||
which stuck in my hands and face, and, beside the excessive smart, gave
|
||
me much disturbance in my work. My greatest apprehension was for my
|
||
eyes, which I should have infallibly lost, if I had not suddenly
|
||
thought of an expedient. I kept, among other little necessaries, a pair
|
||
of spectacles in a private pocket, which, as I observed before, had
|
||
escaped the emperor’s searchers. These I took out and fastened as
|
||
strongly as I could upon my nose, and thus armed, went on boldly with
|
||
my work, in spite of the enemy’s arrows, many of which struck against
|
||
the glasses of my spectacles, but without any other effect, further
|
||
than a little to discompose them. I had now fastened all the hooks,
|
||
and, taking the knot in my hand, began to pull; but not a ship would
|
||
stir, for they were all too fast held by their anchors, so that the
|
||
boldest part of my enterprise remained. I therefore let go the cord,
|
||
and leaving the hooks fixed to the ships, I resolutely cut with my
|
||
knife the cables that fastened the anchors, receiving about two hundred
|
||
shots in my face and hands; then I took up the knotted end of the
|
||
cables, to which my hooks were tied, and with great ease drew fifty of
|
||
the enemy’s largest men of war after me.
|
||
|
||
The Blefuscudians, who had not the least imagination of what I
|
||
intended, were at first confounded with astonishment. They had seen me
|
||
cut the cables, and thought my design was only to let the ships run
|
||
adrift or fall foul on each other: but when they perceived the whole
|
||
fleet moving in order, and saw me pulling at the end, they set up such
|
||
a scream of grief and despair as it is almost impossible to describe or
|
||
conceive. When I had got out of danger, I stopped awhile to pick out
|
||
the arrows that stuck in my hands and face; and rubbed on some of the
|
||
same ointment that was given me at my first arrival, as I have formerly
|
||
mentioned. I then took off my spectacles, and waiting about an hour,
|
||
till the tide was a little fallen, I waded through the middle with my
|
||
cargo, and arrived safe at the royal port of Lilliput.
|
||
|
||
The emperor and his whole court stood on the shore, expecting the issue
|
||
of this great adventure. They saw the ships move forward in a large
|
||
half-moon, but could not discern me, who was up to my breast in water.
|
||
When I advanced to the middle of the channel, they were yet more in
|
||
pain, because I was under water to my neck. The emperor concluded me to
|
||
be drowned, and that the enemy’s fleet was approaching in a hostile
|
||
manner: but he was soon eased of his fears; for the channel growing
|
||
shallower every step I made, I came in a short time within hearing, and
|
||
holding up the end of the cable, by which the fleet was fastened, I
|
||
cried in a loud voice, “Long live the most puissant king of Lilliput!”
|
||
This great prince received me at my landing with all possible
|
||
encomiums, and created me a _nardac_ upon the spot, which is the
|
||
highest title of honour among them.
|
||
|
||
His majesty desired I would take some other opportunity of bringing all
|
||
the rest of his enemy’s ships into his ports. And so unmeasureable is
|
||
the ambition of princes, that he seemed to think of nothing less than
|
||
reducing the whole empire of Blefuscu into a province, and governing
|
||
it, by a viceroy; of destroying the Big-endian exiles, and compelling
|
||
that people to break the smaller end of their eggs, by which he would
|
||
remain the sole monarch of the whole world. But I endeavoured to divert
|
||
him from this design, by many arguments drawn from the topics of policy
|
||
as well as justice; and I plainly protested, “that I would never be an
|
||
instrument of bringing a free and brave people into slavery.” And, when
|
||
the matter was debated in council, the wisest part of the ministry were
|
||
of my opinion.
|
||
|
||
This open bold declaration of mine was so opposite to the schemes and
|
||
politics of his imperial majesty, that he could never forgive me. He
|
||
mentioned it in a very artful manner at council, where I was told that
|
||
some of the wisest appeared, at least by their silence, to be of my
|
||
opinion; but others, who were my secret enemies, could not forbear some
|
||
expressions which, by a side-wind, reflected on me. And from this time
|
||
began an intrigue between his majesty and a junto of ministers,
|
||
maliciously bent against me, which broke out in less than two months,
|
||
and had like to have ended in my utter destruction. Of so little weight
|
||
are the greatest services to princes, when put into the balance with a
|
||
refusal to gratify their passions.
|
||
|
||
About three weeks after this exploit, there arrived a solemn embassy
|
||
from Blefuscu, with humble offers of a peace, which was soon concluded,
|
||
upon conditions very advantageous to our emperor, wherewith I shall not
|
||
trouble the reader. There were six ambassadors, with a train of about
|
||
five hundred persons, and their entry was very magnificent, suitable to
|
||
the grandeur of their master, and the importance of their business.
|
||
When their treaty was finished, wherein I did them several good offices
|
||
by the credit I now had, or at least appeared to have, at court, their
|
||
excellencies, who were privately told how much I had been their friend,
|
||
made me a visit in form. They began with many compliments upon my
|
||
valour and generosity, invited me to that kingdom in the emperor their
|
||
master’s name, and desired me to show them some proofs of my prodigious
|
||
strength, of which they had heard so many wonders; wherein I readily
|
||
obliged them, but shall not trouble the reader with the particulars.
|
||
|
||
When I had for some time entertained their excellencies, to their
|
||
infinite satisfaction and surprise, I desired they would do me the
|
||
honour to present my most humble respects to the emperor their master,
|
||
the renown of whose virtues had so justly filled the whole world with
|
||
admiration, and whose royal person I resolved to attend, before I
|
||
returned to my own country. Accordingly, the next time I had the honour
|
||
to see our emperor, I desired his general license to wait on the
|
||
Blefuscudian monarch, which he was pleased to grant me, as I could
|
||
perceive, in a very cold manner; but could not guess the reason, till I
|
||
had a whisper from a certain person, “that Flimnap and Bolgolam had
|
||
represented my intercourse with those ambassadors as a mark of
|
||
disaffection;” from which I am sure my heart was wholly free. And this
|
||
was the first time I began to conceive some imperfect idea of courts
|
||
and ministers.
|
||
|
||
It is to be observed, that these ambassadors spoke to me, by an
|
||
interpreter, the languages of both empires differing as much from each
|
||
other as any two in Europe, and each nation priding itself upon the
|
||
antiquity, beauty, and energy of their own tongue, with an avowed
|
||
contempt for that of their neighbour; yet our emperor, standing upon
|
||
the advantage he had got by the seizure of their fleet, obliged them to
|
||
deliver their credentials, and make their speech, in the Lilliputian
|
||
tongue. And it must be confessed, that from the great intercourse of
|
||
trade and commerce between both realms, from the continual reception of
|
||
exiles which is mutual among them, and from the custom, in each empire,
|
||
to send their young nobility and richer gentry to the other, in order
|
||
to polish themselves by seeing the world, and understanding men and
|
||
manners; there are few persons of distinction, or merchants, or seamen,
|
||
who dwell in the maritime parts, but what can hold conversation in both
|
||
tongues; as I found some weeks after, when I went to pay my respects to
|
||
the emperor of Blefuscu, which, in the midst of great misfortunes,
|
||
through the malice of my enemies, proved a very happy adventure to me,
|
||
as I shall relate in its proper place.
|
||
|
||
The reader may remember, that when I signed those articles upon which I
|
||
recovered my liberty, there were some which I disliked, upon account of
|
||
their being too servile; neither could anything but an extreme
|
||
necessity have forced me to submit. But being now a _nardac_ of the
|
||
highest rank in that empire, such offices were looked upon as below my
|
||
dignity, and the emperor (to do him justice), never once mentioned them
|
||
to me. However, it was not long before I had an opportunity of doing
|
||
his majesty, at least as I then thought, a most signal service. I was
|
||
alarmed at midnight with the cries of many hundred people at my door;
|
||
by which, being suddenly awaked, I was in some kind of terror. I heard
|
||
the word _Burglum_ repeated incessantly: several of the emperor’s
|
||
court, making their way through the crowd, entreated me to come
|
||
immediately to the palace, where her imperial majesty’s apartment was
|
||
on fire, by the carelessness of a maid of honour, who fell asleep while
|
||
she was reading a romance. I got up in an instant; and orders being
|
||
given to clear the way before me, and it being likewise a moonshine
|
||
night, I made a shift to get to the palace without trampling on any of
|
||
the people. I found they had already applied ladders to the walls of
|
||
the apartment, and were well provided with buckets, but the water was
|
||
at some distance. These buckets were about the size of large thimbles,
|
||
and the poor people supplied me with them as fast as they could: but
|
||
the flame was so violent that they did little good. I might easily have
|
||
stifled it with my coat, which I unfortunately left behind me for
|
||
haste, and came away only in my leathern jerkin. The case seemed wholly
|
||
desperate and deplorable; and this magnificent palace would have
|
||
infallibly been burnt down to the ground, if, by a presence of mind
|
||
unusual to me, I had not suddenly thought of an expedient. I had, the
|
||
evening before, drunk plentifully of a most delicious wine called
|
||
_glimigrim_, (the Blefuscudians call it _flunec_, but ours is esteemed
|
||
the better sort,) which is very diuretic. By the luckiest chance in the
|
||
world, I had not discharged myself of any part of it. The heat I had
|
||
contracted by coming very near the flames, and by labouring to quench
|
||
them, made the wine begin to operate by urine; which I voided in such a
|
||
quantity, and applied so well to the proper places, that in three
|
||
minutes the fire was wholly extinguished, and the rest of that noble
|
||
pile, which had cost so many ages in erecting, preserved from
|
||
destruction.
|
||
|
||
It was now day-light, and I returned to my house without waiting to
|
||
congratulate with the emperor: because, although I had done a very
|
||
eminent piece of service, yet I could not tell how his majesty might
|
||
resent the manner by which I had performed it: for, by the fundamental
|
||
laws of the realm, it is capital in any person, of what quality soever,
|
||
to make water within the precincts of the palace. But I was a little
|
||
comforted by a message from his majesty, “that he would give orders to
|
||
the grand justiciary for passing my pardon in form:” which, however, I
|
||
could not obtain; and I was privately assured, “that the empress,
|
||
conceiving the greatest abhorrence of what I had done, removed to the
|
||
most distant side of the court, firmly resolved that those buildings
|
||
should never be repaired for her use: and, in the presence of her chief
|
||
confidents could not forbear vowing revenge.”
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VI.
|
||
|
||
Of the inhabitants of Lilliput; their learning, laws, and customs; the
|
||
manner of educating their children. The author’s way of living in that
|
||
country. His vindication of a great lady.
|
||
|
||
|
||
Although I intend to leave the description of this empire to a
|
||
particular treatise, yet, in the mean time, I am content to gratify the
|
||
curious reader with some general ideas. As the common size of the
|
||
natives is somewhat under six inches high, so there is an exact
|
||
proportion in all other animals, as well as plants and trees: for
|
||
instance, the tallest horses and oxen are between four and five inches
|
||
in height, the sheep an inch and half, more or less: their geese about
|
||
the bigness of a sparrow, and so the several gradations downwards till
|
||
you come to the smallest, which to my sight, were almost invisible; but
|
||
nature has adapted the eyes of the Lilliputians to all objects proper
|
||
for their view: they see with great exactness, but at no great
|
||
distance. And, to show the sharpness of their sight towards objects
|
||
that are near, I have been much pleased with observing a cook pulling a
|
||
lark, which was not so large as a common fly; and a young girl
|
||
threading an invisible needle with invisible silk. Their tallest trees
|
||
are about seven feet high: I mean some of those in the great royal
|
||
park, the tops whereof I could but just reach with my fist clenched.
|
||
The other vegetables are in the same proportion; but this I leave to
|
||
the reader’s imagination.
|
||
|
||
I shall say but little at present of their learning, which, for many
|
||
ages, has flourished in all its branches among them: but their manner
|
||
of writing is very peculiar, being neither from the left to the right,
|
||
like the Europeans, nor from the right to the left, like the Arabians,
|
||
nor from up to down, like the Chinese, but aslant, from one corner of
|
||
the paper to the other, like ladies in England.
|
||
|
||
They bury their dead with their heads directly downward, because they
|
||
hold an opinion, that in eleven thousand moons they are all to rise
|
||
again; in which period the earth (which they conceive to be flat) will
|
||
turn upside down, and by this means they shall, at their resurrection,
|
||
be found ready standing on their feet. The learned among them confess
|
||
the absurdity of this doctrine; but the practice still continues, in
|
||
compliance to the vulgar.
|
||
|
||
There are some laws and customs in this empire very peculiar; and if
|
||
they were not so directly contrary to those of my own dear country, I
|
||
should be tempted to say a little in their justification. It is only to
|
||
be wished they were as well executed. The first I shall mention,
|
||
relates to informers. All crimes against the state, are punished here
|
||
with the utmost severity; but, if the person accused makes his
|
||
innocence plainly to appear upon his trial, the accuser is immediately
|
||
put to an ignominious death; and out of his goods or lands the innocent
|
||
person is quadruply recompensed for the loss of his time, for the
|
||
danger he underwent, for the hardship of his imprisonment, and for all
|
||
the charges he has been at in making his defence; or, if that fund be
|
||
deficient, it is largely supplied by the crown. The emperor also
|
||
confers on him some public mark of his favour, and proclamation is made
|
||
of his innocence through the whole city.
|
||
|
||
They look upon fraud as a greater crime than theft, and therefore
|
||
seldom fail to punish it with death; for they allege, that care and
|
||
vigilance, with a very common understanding, may preserve a man’s goods
|
||
from thieves, but honesty has no defence against superior cunning; and,
|
||
since it is necessary that there should be a perpetual intercourse of
|
||
buying and selling, and dealing upon credit, where fraud is permitted
|
||
and connived at, or has no law to punish it, the honest dealer is
|
||
always undone, and the knave gets the advantage. I remember, when I was
|
||
once interceding with the emperor for a criminal who had wronged his
|
||
master of a great sum of money, which he had received by order and ran
|
||
away with; and happening to tell his majesty, by way of extenuation,
|
||
that it was only a breach of trust, the emperor thought it monstrous in
|
||
me to offer as a defence the greatest aggravation of the crime; and
|
||
truly I had little to say in return, farther than the common answer,
|
||
that different nations had different customs; for, I confess, I was
|
||
heartily ashamed. [330]
|
||
|
||
Although we usually call reward and punishment the two hinges upon
|
||
which all government turns, yet I could never observe this maxim to be
|
||
put in practice by any nation except that of Lilliput. Whoever can
|
||
there bring sufficient proof, that he has strictly observed the laws of
|
||
his country for seventy-three moons, has a claim to certain privileges,
|
||
according to his quality or condition of life, with a proportionable
|
||
sum of money out of a fund appropriated for that use: he likewise
|
||
acquires the title of _snilpall_, or legal, which is added to his name,
|
||
but does not descend to his posterity. And these people thought it a
|
||
prodigious defect of policy among us, when I told them that our laws
|
||
were enforced only by penalties, without any mention of reward. It is
|
||
upon this account that the image of Justice, in their courts of
|
||
judicature, is formed with six eyes, two before, as many behind, and on
|
||
each side one, to signify circumspection; with a bag of gold open in
|
||
her right hand, and a sword sheathed in her left, to show she is more
|
||
disposed to reward than to punish.
|
||
|
||
In choosing persons for all employments, they have more regard to good
|
||
morals than to great abilities; for, since government is necessary to
|
||
mankind, they believe, that the common size of human understanding is
|
||
fitted to some station or other; and that Providence never intended to
|
||
make the management of public affairs a mystery to be comprehended only
|
||
by a few persons of sublime genius, of which there seldom are three
|
||
born in an age: but they suppose truth, justice, temperance, and the
|
||
like, to be in every man’s power; the practice of which virtues,
|
||
assisted by experience and a good intention, would qualify any man for
|
||
the service of his country, except where a course of study is required.
|
||
But they thought the want of moral virtues was so far from being
|
||
supplied by superior endowments of the mind, that employments could
|
||
never be put into such dangerous hands as those of persons so
|
||
qualified; and, at least, that the mistakes committed by ignorance, in
|
||
a virtuous disposition, would never be of such fatal consequence to the
|
||
public weal, as the practices of a man, whose inclinations led him to
|
||
be corrupt, and who had great abilities to manage, to multiply, and
|
||
defend his corruptions.
|
||
|
||
In like manner, the disbelief of a Divine Providence renders a man
|
||
incapable of holding any public station; for, since kings avow
|
||
themselves to be the deputies of Providence, the Lilliputians think
|
||
nothing can be more absurd than for a prince to employ such men as
|
||
disown the authority under which he acts.
|
||
|
||
In relating these and the following laws, I would only be understood to
|
||
mean the original institutions, and not the most scandalous
|
||
corruptions, into which these people are fallen by the degenerate
|
||
nature of man. For, as to that infamous practice of acquiring great
|
||
employments by dancing on the ropes, or badges of favour and
|
||
distinction by leaping over sticks and creeping under them, the reader
|
||
is to observe, that they were first introduced by the grandfather of
|
||
the emperor now reigning, and grew to the present height by the gradual
|
||
increase of party and faction.
|
||
|
||
Ingratitude is among them a capital crime, as we read it to have been
|
||
in some other countries: for they reason thus; that whoever makes ill
|
||
returns to his benefactor, must needs be a common enemy to the rest of
|
||
mankind, from whom he has received no obligation, and therefore such a
|
||
man is not fit to live.
|
||
|
||
Their notions relating to the duties of parents and children differ
|
||
extremely from ours. For, since the conjunction of male and female is
|
||
founded upon the great law of nature, in order to propagate and
|
||
continue the species, the Lilliputians will needs have it, that men and
|
||
women are joined together, like other animals, by the motives of
|
||
concupiscence; and that their tenderness towards their young proceeds
|
||
from the like natural principle: for which reason they will never allow
|
||
that a child is under any obligation to his father for begetting him,
|
||
or to his mother for bringing him into the world; which, considering
|
||
the miseries of human life, was neither a benefit in itself, nor
|
||
intended so by his parents, whose thoughts, in their love encounters,
|
||
were otherwise employed. Upon these, and the like reasonings, their
|
||
opinion is, that parents are the last of all others to be trusted with
|
||
the education of their own children; and therefore they have in every
|
||
town public nurseries, where all parents, except cottagers and
|
||
labourers, are obliged to send their infants of both sexes to be reared
|
||
and educated, when they come to the age of twenty moons, at which time
|
||
they are supposed to have some rudiments of docility. These schools are
|
||
of several kinds, suited to different qualities, and both sexes. They
|
||
have certain professors well skilled in preparing children for such a
|
||
condition of life as befits the rank of their parents, and their own
|
||
capacities, as well as inclinations. I shall first say something of the
|
||
male nurseries, and then of the female.
|
||
|
||
The nurseries for males of noble or eminent birth, are provided with
|
||
grave and learned professors, and their several deputies. The clothes
|
||
and food of the children are plain and simple. They are bred up in the
|
||
principles of honour, justice, courage, modesty, clemency, religion,
|
||
and love of their country; they are always employed in some business,
|
||
except in the times of eating and sleeping, which are very short, and
|
||
two hours for diversions consisting of bodily exercises. They are
|
||
dressed by men till four years of age, and then are obliged to dress
|
||
themselves, although their quality be ever so great; and the women
|
||
attendant, who are aged proportionably to ours at fifty, perform only
|
||
the most menial offices. They are never suffered to converse with
|
||
servants, but go together in smaller or greater numbers to take their
|
||
diversions, and always in the presence of a professor, or one of his
|
||
deputies; whereby they avoid those early bad impressions of folly and
|
||
vice, to which our children are subject. Their parents are suffered to
|
||
see them only twice a year; the visit is to last but an hour; they are
|
||
allowed to kiss the child at meeting and parting; but a professor, who
|
||
always stands by on those occasions, will not suffer them to whisper,
|
||
or use any fondling expressions, or bring any presents of toys,
|
||
sweetmeats, and the like.
|
||
|
||
The pension from each family for the education and entertainment of a
|
||
child, upon failure of due payment, is levied by the emperor’s
|
||
officers.
|
||
|
||
The nurseries for children of ordinary gentlemen, merchants, traders,
|
||
and handicrafts, are managed proportionably after the same manner; only
|
||
those designed for trades are put out apprentices at eleven years old,
|
||
whereas those of persons of quality continue in their exercises till
|
||
fifteen, which answers to twenty-one with us: but the confinement is
|
||
gradually lessened for the last three years.
|
||
|
||
In the female nurseries, the young girls of quality are educated much
|
||
like the males, only they are dressed by orderly servants of their own
|
||
sex; but always in the presence of a professor or deputy, till they
|
||
come to dress themselves, which is at five years old. And if it be
|
||
found that these nurses ever presume to entertain the girls with
|
||
frightful or foolish stories, or the common follies practised by
|
||
chambermaids among us, they are publicly whipped thrice about the city,
|
||
imprisoned for a year, and banished for life to the most desolate part
|
||
of the country. Thus the young ladies are as much ashamed of being
|
||
cowards and fools as the men, and despise all personal ornaments,
|
||
beyond decency and cleanliness: neither did I perceive any difference
|
||
in their education made by their difference of sex, only that the
|
||
exercises of the females were not altogether so robust; and that some
|
||
rules were given them relating to domestic life, and a smaller compass
|
||
of learning was enjoined them: for their maxim is, that among peoples
|
||
of quality, a wife should be always a reasonable and agreeable
|
||
companion, because she cannot always be young. When the girls are
|
||
twelve years old, which among them is the marriageable age, their
|
||
parents or guardians take them home, with great expressions of
|
||
gratitude to the professors, and seldom without tears of the young lady
|
||
and her companions.
|
||
|
||
In the nurseries of females of the meaner sort, the children are
|
||
instructed in all kinds of works proper for their sex, and their
|
||
several degrees: those intended for apprentices are dismissed at seven
|
||
years old, the rest are kept to eleven.
|
||
|
||
The meaner families who have children at these nurseries, are obliged,
|
||
besides their annual pension, which is as low as possible, to return to
|
||
the steward of the nursery a small monthly share of their gettings, to
|
||
be a portion for the child; and therefore all parents are limited in
|
||
their expenses by the law. For the Lilliputians think nothing can be
|
||
more unjust, than for people, in subservience to their own appetites,
|
||
to bring children into the world, and leave the burthen of supporting
|
||
them on the public. As to persons of quality, they give security to
|
||
appropriate a certain sum for each child, suitable to their condition;
|
||
and these funds are always managed with good husbandry and the most
|
||
exact justice.
|
||
|
||
The cottagers and labourers keep their children at home, their business
|
||
being only to till and cultivate the earth, and therefore their
|
||
education is of little consequence to the public: but the old and
|
||
diseased among them are supported by hospitals; for begging is a trade
|
||
unknown in this empire.
|
||
|
||
And here it may, perhaps, divert the curious reader, to give some
|
||
account of my domestics, and my manner of living in this country,
|
||
during a residence of nine months, and thirteen days. Having a head
|
||
mechanically turned, and being likewise forced by necessity, I had made
|
||
for myself a table and chair convenient enough, out of the largest
|
||
trees in the royal park. Two hundred sempstresses were employed to make
|
||
me shirts, and linen for my bed and table, all of the strongest and
|
||
coarsest kind they could get; which, however, they were forced to quilt
|
||
together in several folds, for the thickest was some degrees finer than
|
||
lawn. Their linen is usually three inches wide, and three feet make a
|
||
piece. The sempstresses took my measure as I lay on the ground, one
|
||
standing at my neck, and another at my mid-leg, with a strong cord
|
||
extended, that each held by the end, while a third measured the length
|
||
of the cord with a rule of an inch long. Then they measured my right
|
||
thumb, and desired no more; for by a mathematical computation, that
|
||
twice round the thumb is once round the wrist, and so on to the neck
|
||
and the waist, and by the help of my old shirt, which I displayed on
|
||
the ground before them for a pattern, they fitted me exactly. Three
|
||
hundred tailors were employed in the same manner to make me clothes;
|
||
but they had another contrivance for taking my measure. I kneeled down,
|
||
and they raised a ladder from the ground to my neck; upon this ladder
|
||
one of them mounted, and let fall a plumb-line from my collar to the
|
||
floor, which just answered the length of my coat: but my waist and arms
|
||
I measured myself. When my clothes were finished, which was done in my
|
||
house (for the largest of theirs would not have been able to hold
|
||
them), they looked like the patch-work made by the ladies in England,
|
||
only that mine were all of a colour.
|
||
|
||
I had three hundred cooks to dress my victuals, in little convenient
|
||
huts built about my house, where they and their families lived, and
|
||
prepared me two dishes a-piece. I took up twenty waiters in my hand,
|
||
and placed them on the table: a hundred more attended below on the
|
||
ground, some with dishes of meat, and some with barrels of wine and
|
||
other liquors slung on their shoulders; all which the waiters above
|
||
drew up, as I wanted, in a very ingenious manner, by certain cords, as
|
||
we draw the bucket up a well in Europe. A dish of their meat was a good
|
||
mouthful, and a barrel of their liquor a reasonable draught. Their
|
||
mutton yields to ours, but their beef is excellent. I have had a
|
||
sirloin so large, that I have been forced to make three bites of it;
|
||
but this is rare. My servants were astonished to see me eat it, bones
|
||
and all, as in our country we do the leg of a lark. Their geese and
|
||
turkeys I usually ate at a mouthful, and I confess they far exceed
|
||
ours. Of their smaller fowl I could take up twenty or thirty at the end
|
||
of my knife.
|
||
|
||
One day his imperial majesty, being informed of my way of living,
|
||
desired “that himself and his royal consort, with the young princes of
|
||
the blood of both sexes, might have the happiness,” as he was pleased
|
||
to call it, “of dining with me.” They came accordingly, and I placed
|
||
them in chairs of state, upon my table, just over against me, with
|
||
their guards about them. Flimnap, the lord high treasurer, attended
|
||
there likewise with his white staff; and I observed he often looked on
|
||
me with a sour countenance, which I would not seem to regard, but ate
|
||
more than usual, in honour to my dear country, as well as to fill the
|
||
court with admiration. I have some private reasons to believe, that
|
||
this visit from his majesty gave Flimnap an opportunity of doing me ill
|
||
offices to his master. That minister had always been my secret enemy,
|
||
though he outwardly caressed me more than was usual to the moroseness
|
||
of his nature. He represented to the emperor “the low condition of his
|
||
treasury; that he was forced to take up money at a great discount; that
|
||
exchequer bills would not circulate under nine per cent. below par;
|
||
that I had cost his majesty above a million and a half of _sprugs_”
|
||
(their greatest gold coin, about the bigness of a spangle) “and, upon
|
||
the whole, that it would be advisable in the emperor to take the first
|
||
fair occasion of dismissing me.”
|
||
|
||
I am here obliged to vindicate the reputation of an excellent lady, who
|
||
was an innocent sufferer upon my account. The treasurer took a fancy to
|
||
be jealous of his wife, from the malice of some evil tongues, who
|
||
informed him that her grace had taken a violent affection for my
|
||
person; and the court scandal ran for some time, that she once came
|
||
privately to my lodging. This I solemnly declare to be a most infamous
|
||
falsehood, without any grounds, further than that her grace was pleased
|
||
to treat me with all innocent marks of freedom and friendship. I own
|
||
she came often to my house, but always publicly, nor ever without three
|
||
more in the coach, who were usually her sister and young daughter, and
|
||
some particular acquaintance; but this was common to many other ladies
|
||
of the court. And I still appeal to my servants round, whether they at
|
||
any time saw a coach at my door, without knowing what persons were in
|
||
it. On those occasions, when a servant had given me notice, my custom
|
||
was to go immediately to the door, and, after paying my respects, to
|
||
take up the coach and two horses very carefully in my hands (for, if
|
||
there were six horses, the postillion always unharnessed four,) and
|
||
place them on a table, where I had fixed a movable rim quite round, of
|
||
five inches high, to prevent accidents. And I have often had four
|
||
coaches and horses at once on my table, full of company, while I sat in
|
||
my chair, leaning my face towards them; and when I was engaged with one
|
||
set, the coachmen would gently drive the others round my table. I have
|
||
passed many an afternoon very agreeably in these conversations. But I
|
||
defy the treasurer, or his two informers (I will name them, and let
|
||
them make the best of it) Clustril and Drunlo, to prove that any person
|
||
ever came to me _incognito_, except the secretary Reldresal, who was
|
||
sent by express command of his imperial majesty, as I have before
|
||
related. I should not have dwelt so long upon this particular, if it
|
||
had not been a point wherein the reputation of a great lady is so
|
||
nearly concerned, to say nothing of my own; though I then had the
|
||
honour to be a _nardac_, which the treasurer himself is not; for all
|
||
the world knows, that he is only a _glumglum_, a title inferior by one
|
||
degree, as that of a marquis is to a duke in England; yet I allow he
|
||
preceded me in right of his post. These false informations, which I
|
||
afterwards came to the knowledge of by an accident not proper to
|
||
mention, made the treasurer show his lady for some time an ill
|
||
countenance, and me a worse; and although he was at last undeceived and
|
||
reconciled to her, yet I lost all credit with him, and found my
|
||
interest decline very fast with the emperor himself, who was, indeed,
|
||
too much governed by that favourite.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VII.
|
||
|
||
The author, being informed of a design to accuse him of high-treason,
|
||
makes his escape to Blefuscu. His reception there.
|
||
|
||
|
||
Before I proceed to give an account of my leaving this kingdom, it may
|
||
be proper to inform the reader of a private intrigue which had been for
|
||
two months forming against me.
|
||
|
||
I had been hitherto, all my life, a stranger to courts, for which I was
|
||
unqualified by the meanness of my condition. I had indeed heard and
|
||
read enough of the dispositions of great princes and ministers, but
|
||
never expected to have found such terrible effects of them, in so
|
||
remote a country, governed, as I thought, by very different maxims from
|
||
those in Europe.
|
||
|
||
When I was just preparing to pay my attendance on the emperor of
|
||
Blefuscu, a considerable person at court (to whom I had been very
|
||
serviceable, at a time when he lay under the highest displeasure of his
|
||
imperial majesty) came to my house very privately at night, in a close
|
||
chair, and, without sending his name, desired admittance. The chairmen
|
||
were dismissed; I put the chair, with his lordship in it, into my
|
||
coat-pocket: and, giving orders to a trusty servant, to say I was
|
||
indisposed and gone to sleep, I fastened the door of my house, placed
|
||
the chair on the table, according to my usual custom, and sat down by
|
||
it. After the common salutations were over, observing his lordship’s
|
||
countenance full of concern, and inquiring into the reason, he desired
|
||
“I would hear him with patience, in a matter that highly concerned my
|
||
honour and my life.” His speech was to the following effect, for I took
|
||
notes of it as soon as he left me:—
|
||
|
||
“You are to know,” said he, “that several committees of council have
|
||
been lately called, in the most private manner, on your account; and it
|
||
is but two days since his majesty came to a full resolution.
|
||
|
||
“You are very sensible that Skyresh Bolgolam” (_galbet_, or
|
||
high-admiral) “has been your mortal enemy, almost ever since your
|
||
arrival. His original reasons I know not; but his hatred is increased
|
||
since your great success against Blefuscu, by which his glory as
|
||
admiral is much obscured. This lord, in conjunction with Flimnap the
|
||
high-treasurer, whose enmity against you is notorious on account of his
|
||
lady, Limtoc the general, Lalcon the chamberlain, and Balmuff the grand
|
||
justiciary, have prepared articles of impeachment against you, for
|
||
treason and other capital crimes.”
|
||
|
||
This preface made me so impatient, being conscious of my own merits and
|
||
innocence, that I was going to interrupt him; when he entreated me to
|
||
be silent, and thus proceeded:—
|
||
|
||
“Out of gratitude for the favours you have done me, I procured
|
||
information of the whole proceedings, and a copy of the articles;
|
||
wherein I venture my head for your service.
|
||
|
||
|
||
“‘_Articles of Impeachment against_ QUINBUS FLESTRIN, (_the
|
||
Man-Mountain_.)
|
||
|
||
Article I.
|
||
|
||
|
||
“‘Whereas, by a statute made in the reign of his imperial majesty Calin
|
||
Deffar Plune, it is enacted, that, whoever shall make water within the
|
||
precincts of the royal palace, shall be liable to the pains and
|
||
penalties of high-treason; notwithstanding, the said Quinbus Flestrin,
|
||
in open breach of the said law, under colour of extinguishing the fire
|
||
kindled in the apartment of his majesty’s most dear imperial consort,
|
||
did maliciously, traitorously, and devilishly, by discharge of his
|
||
urine, put out the said fire kindled in the said apartment, lying and
|
||
being within the precincts of the said royal palace, against the
|
||
statute in that case provided, etc. against the duty, etc.
|
||
|
||
Article II.
|
||
|
||
|
||
“‘That the said Quinbus Flestrin, having brought the imperial fleet of
|
||
Blefuscu into the royal port, and being afterwards commanded by his
|
||
imperial majesty to seize all the other ships of the said empire of
|
||
Blefuscu, and reduce that empire to a province, to be governed by a
|
||
viceroy from hence, and to destroy and put to death, not only all the
|
||
Big-endian exiles, but likewise all the people of that empire who would
|
||
not immediately forsake the Big-endian heresy, he, the said Flestrin,
|
||
like a false traitor against his most auspicious, serene, imperial
|
||
majesty, did petition to be excused from the said service, upon
|
||
pretence of unwillingness to force the consciences, or destroy the
|
||
liberties and lives of an innocent people.
|
||
|
||
Article III.
|
||
|
||
|
||
“‘That, whereas certain ambassadors arrived from the Court of Blefuscu,
|
||
to sue for peace in his majesty’s court, he, the said Flestrin, did,
|
||
like a false traitor, aid, abet, comfort, and divert, the said
|
||
ambassadors, although he knew them to be servants to a prince who was
|
||
lately an open enemy to his imperial majesty, and in an open war
|
||
against his said majesty.
|
||
|
||
Article IV.
|
||
|
||
|
||
“‘That the said Quinbus Flestrin, contrary to the duty of a faithful
|
||
subject, is now preparing to make a voyage to the court and empire of
|
||
Blefuscu, for which he has received only verbal license from his
|
||
imperial majesty; and, under colour of the said license, does falsely
|
||
and traitorously intend to take the said voyage, and thereby to aid,
|
||
comfort, and abet the emperor of Blefuscu, so lately an enemy, and in
|
||
open war with his imperial majesty aforesaid.’
|
||
|
||
|
||
“There are some other articles; but these are the most important, of
|
||
which I have read you an abstract.
|
||
|
||
“In the several debates upon this impeachment, it must be confessed
|
||
that his majesty gave many marks of his great lenity; often urging the
|
||
services you had done him, and endeavouring to extenuate your crimes.
|
||
The treasurer and admiral insisted that you should be put to the most
|
||
painful and ignominious death, by setting fire to your house at night,
|
||
and the general was to attend with twenty thousand men, armed with
|
||
poisoned arrows, to shoot you on the face and hands. Some of your
|
||
servants were to have private orders to strew a poisonous juice on your
|
||
shirts and sheets, which would soon make you tear your own flesh, and
|
||
die in the utmost torture. The general came into the same opinion; so
|
||
that for a long time there was a majority against you; but his majesty
|
||
resolving, if possible, to spare your life, at last brought off the
|
||
chamberlain.
|
||
|
||
“Upon this incident, Reldresal, principal secretary for private
|
||
affairs, who always approved himself your true friend, was commanded by
|
||
the emperor to deliver his opinion, which he accordingly did; and
|
||
therein justified the good thoughts you have of him. He allowed your
|
||
crimes to be great, but that still there was room for mercy, the most
|
||
commendable virtue in a prince, and for which his majesty was so justly
|
||
celebrated. He said, the friendship between you and him was so well
|
||
known to the world, that perhaps the most honourable board might think
|
||
him partial; however, in obedience to the command he had received, he
|
||
would freely offer his sentiments. That if his majesty, in
|
||
consideration of your services, and pursuant to his own merciful
|
||
disposition, would please to spare your life, and only give orders to
|
||
put out both your eyes, he humbly conceived, that by this expedient
|
||
justice might in some measure be satisfied, and all the world would
|
||
applaud the lenity of the emperor, as well as the fair and generous
|
||
proceedings of those who have the honour to be his counsellors. That
|
||
the loss of your eyes would be no impediment to your bodily strength,
|
||
by which you might still be useful to his majesty; that blindness is an
|
||
addition to courage, by concealing dangers from us; that the fear you
|
||
had for your eyes, was the greatest difficulty in bringing over the
|
||
enemy’s fleet, and it would be sufficient for you to see by the eyes of
|
||
the ministers, since the greatest princes do no more.
|
||
|
||
“This proposal was received with the utmost disapprobation by the whole
|
||
board. Bolgolam, the admiral, could not preserve his temper, but,
|
||
rising up in fury, said, he wondered how the secretary durst presume to
|
||
give his opinion for preserving the life of a traitor; that the
|
||
services you had performed were, by all true reasons of state, the
|
||
great aggravation of your crimes; that you, who were able to extinguish
|
||
the fire by discharge of urine in her majesty’s apartment (which he
|
||
mentioned with horror), might, at another time, raise an inundation by
|
||
the same means, to drown the whole palace; and the same strength which
|
||
enabled you to bring over the enemy’s fleet, might serve, upon the
|
||
first discontent, to carry it back; that he had good reasons to think
|
||
you were a Big-endian in your heart; and, as treason begins in the
|
||
heart, before it appears in overt acts, so he accused you as a traitor
|
||
on that account, and therefore insisted you should be put to death.
|
||
|
||
“The treasurer was of the same opinion: he showed to what straits his
|
||
majesty’s revenue was reduced, by the charge of maintaining you, which
|
||
would soon grow insupportable; that the secretary’s expedient of
|
||
putting out your eyes, was so far from being a remedy against this
|
||
evil, that it would probably increase it, as is manifest from the
|
||
common practice of blinding some kind of fowls, after which they fed
|
||
the faster, and grew sooner fat; that his sacred majesty and the
|
||
council, who are your judges, were, in their own consciences, fully
|
||
convinced of your guilt, which was a sufficient argument to condemn you
|
||
to death, without the formal proofs required by the strict letter of
|
||
the law.
|
||
|
||
“But his imperial majesty, fully determined against capital punishment,
|
||
was graciously pleased to say, that since the council thought the loss
|
||
of your eyes too easy a censure, some other way may be inflicted
|
||
hereafter. And your friend the secretary, humbly desiring to be heard
|
||
again, in answer to what the treasurer had objected, concerning the
|
||
great charge his majesty was at in maintaining you, said, that his
|
||
excellency, who had the sole disposal of the emperor’s revenue, might
|
||
easily provide against that evil, by gradually lessening your
|
||
establishment; by which, for want of sufficient food, you would grow
|
||
weak and faint, and lose your appetite, and consequently, decay, and
|
||
consume in a few months; neither would the stench of your carcass be
|
||
then so dangerous, when it should become more than half diminished; and
|
||
immediately upon your death five or six thousand of his majesty’s
|
||
subjects might, in two or three days, cut your flesh from your bones,
|
||
take it away by cart-loads, and bury it in distant parts, to prevent
|
||
infection, leaving the skeleton as a monument of admiration to
|
||
posterity.
|
||
|
||
“Thus, by the great friendship of the secretary, the whole affair was
|
||
compromised. It was strictly enjoined, that the project of starving you
|
||
by degrees should be kept a secret; but the sentence of putting out
|
||
your eyes was entered on the books; none dissenting, except Bolgolam
|
||
the admiral, who, being a creature of the empress, was perpetually
|
||
instigated by her majesty to insist upon your death, she having borne
|
||
perpetual malice against you, on account of that infamous and illegal
|
||
method you took to extinguish the fire in her apartment.
|
||
|
||
“In three days your friend the secretary will be directed to come to
|
||
your house, and read before you the articles of impeachment; and then
|
||
to signify the great lenity and favour of his majesty and council,
|
||
whereby you are only condemned to the loss of your eyes, which his
|
||
majesty does not question you will gratefully and humbly submit to; and
|
||
twenty of his majesty’s surgeons will attend, in order to see the
|
||
operation well performed, by discharging very sharp-pointed arrows into
|
||
the balls of your eyes, as you lie on the ground.
|
||
|
||
“I leave to your prudence what measures you will take; and to avoid
|
||
suspicion, I must immediately return in as private a manner as I came.”
|
||
|
||
His lordship did so; and I remained alone, under many doubts and
|
||
perplexities of mind.
|
||
|
||
It was a custom introduced by this prince and his ministry (very
|
||
different, as I have been assured, from the practice of former times,)
|
||
that after the court had decreed any cruel execution, either to gratify
|
||
the monarch’s resentment, or the malice of a favourite, the emperor
|
||
always made a speech to his whole council, expressing his great lenity
|
||
and tenderness, as qualities known and confessed by all the world. This
|
||
speech was immediately published throughout the kingdom; nor did any
|
||
thing terrify the people so much as those encomiums on his majesty’s
|
||
mercy; because it was observed, that the more these praises were
|
||
enlarged and insisted on, the more inhuman was the punishment, and the
|
||
sufferer more innocent. Yet, as to myself, I must confess, having never
|
||
been designed for a courtier, either by my birth or education, I was so
|
||
ill a judge of things, that I could not discover the lenity and favour
|
||
of this sentence, but conceived it (perhaps erroneously) rather to be
|
||
rigorous than gentle. I sometimes thought of standing my trial, for,
|
||
although I could not deny the facts alleged in the several articles,
|
||
yet I hoped they would admit of some extenuation. But having in my life
|
||
perused many state-trials, which I ever observed to terminate as the
|
||
judges thought fit to direct, I durst not rely on so dangerous a
|
||
decision, in so critical a juncture, and against such powerful enemies.
|
||
Once I was strongly bent upon resistance, for, while I had liberty the
|
||
whole strength of that empire could hardly subdue me, and I might
|
||
easily with stones pelt the metropolis to pieces; but I soon rejected
|
||
that project with horror, by remembering the oath I had made to the
|
||
emperor, the favours I received from him, and the high title of
|
||
_nardac_ he conferred upon me. Neither had I so soon learned the
|
||
gratitude of courtiers, to persuade myself, that his majesty’s present
|
||
severities acquitted me of all past obligations.
|
||
|
||
At last, I fixed upon a resolution, for which it is probable I may
|
||
incur some censure, and not unjustly; for I confess I owe the
|
||
preserving of my eyes, and consequently my liberty, to my own great
|
||
rashness and want of experience; because, if I had then known the
|
||
nature of princes and ministers, which I have since observed in many
|
||
other courts, and their methods of treating criminals less obnoxious
|
||
than myself, I should, with great alacrity and readiness, have
|
||
submitted to so easy a punishment. But hurried on by the precipitancy
|
||
of youth, and having his imperial majesty’s license to pay my
|
||
attendance upon the emperor of Blefuscu, I took this opportunity,
|
||
before the three days were elapsed, to send a letter to my friend the
|
||
secretary, signifying my resolution of setting out that morning for
|
||
Blefuscu, pursuant to the leave I had got; and, without waiting for an
|
||
answer, I went to that side of the island where our fleet lay. I seized
|
||
a large man of war, tied a cable to the prow, and, lifting up the
|
||
anchors, I stripped myself, put my clothes (together with my coverlet,
|
||
which I carried under my arm) into the vessel, and, drawing it after
|
||
me, between wading and swimming arrived at the royal port of Blefuscu,
|
||
where the people had long expected me: they lent me two guides to
|
||
direct me to the capital city, which is of the same name. I held them
|
||
in my hands, till I came within two hundred yards of the gate, and
|
||
desired them “to signify my arrival to one of the secretaries, and let
|
||
him know, I there waited his majesty’s command.” I had an answer in
|
||
about an hour, “that his majesty, attended by the royal family, and
|
||
great officers of the court, was coming out to receive me.” I advanced
|
||
a hundred yards. The emperor and his train alighted from their horses,
|
||
the empress and ladies from their coaches, and I did not perceive they
|
||
were in any fright or concern. I lay on the ground to kiss his
|
||
majesty’s and the empress’s hands. I told his majesty, “that I was come
|
||
according to my promise, and with the license of the emperor my master,
|
||
to have the honour of seeing so mighty a monarch, and to offer him any
|
||
service in my power, consistent with my duty to my own prince;” not
|
||
mentioning a word of my disgrace, because I had hitherto no regular
|
||
information of it, and might suppose myself wholly ignorant of any such
|
||
design; neither could I reasonably conceive that the emperor would
|
||
discover the secret, while I was out of his power; wherein, however, it
|
||
soon appeared I was deceived.
|
||
|
||
I shall not trouble the reader with the particular account of my
|
||
reception at this court, which was suitable to the generosity of so
|
||
great a prince; nor of the difficulties I was in for want of a house
|
||
and bed, being forced to lie on the ground, wrapped up in my coverlet.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VIII.
|
||
|
||
The author, by a lucky accident, finds means to leave Blefuscu; and,
|
||
after some difficulties, returns safe to his native country.
|
||
|
||
|
||
Three days after my arrival, walking out of curiosity to the north-east
|
||
coast of the island, I observed, about half a league off in the sea,
|
||
somewhat that looked like a boat overturned. I pulled off my shoes and
|
||
stockings, and, wading two or three hundred yards, I found the object
|
||
to approach nearer by force of the tide; and then plainly saw it to be
|
||
a real boat, which I supposed might by some tempest have been driven
|
||
from a ship. Whereupon, I returned immediately towards the city, and
|
||
desired his imperial majesty to lend me twenty of the tallest vessels
|
||
he had left, after the loss of his fleet, and three thousand seamen,
|
||
under the command of his vice-admiral. This fleet sailed round, while I
|
||
went back the shortest way to the coast, where I first discovered the
|
||
boat. I found the tide had driven it still nearer. The seamen were all
|
||
provided with cordage, which I had beforehand twisted to a sufficient
|
||
strength. When the ships came up, I stripped myself, and waded till I
|
||
came within a hundred yards of the boat, after which I was forced to
|
||
swim till I got up to it. The seamen threw me the end of the cord,
|
||
which I fastened to a hole in the fore-part of the boat, and the other
|
||
end to a man of war; but I found all my labour to little purpose; for,
|
||
being out of my depth, I was not able to work. In this necessity I was
|
||
forced to swim behind, and push the boat forward, as often as I could,
|
||
with one of my hands; and the tide favouring me, I advanced so far that
|
||
I could just hold up my chin and feel the ground. I rested two or three
|
||
minutes, and then gave the boat another shove, and so on, till the sea
|
||
was no higher than my arm-pits; and now, the most laborious part being
|
||
over, I took out my other cables, which were stowed in one of the
|
||
ships, and fastened them first to the boat, and then to nine of the
|
||
vessels which attended me; the wind being favourable, the seamen towed,
|
||
and I shoved, until we arrived within forty yards of the shore; and,
|
||
waiting till the tide was out, I got dry to the boat, and by the
|
||
assistance of two thousand men, with ropes and engines, I made a shift
|
||
to turn it on its bottom, and found it was but little damaged.
|
||
|
||
I shall not trouble the reader with the difficulties I was under, by
|
||
the help of certain paddles, which cost me ten days making, to get my
|
||
boat to the royal port of Blefuscu, where a mighty concourse of people
|
||
appeared upon my arrival, full of wonder at the sight of so prodigious
|
||
a vessel. I told the emperor “that my good fortune had thrown this boat
|
||
in my way, to carry me to some place whence I might return into my
|
||
native country; and begged his majesty’s orders for getting materials
|
||
to fit it up, together with his license to depart;” which, after some
|
||
kind expostulations, he was pleased to grant.
|
||
|
||
I did very much wonder, in all this time, not to have heard of any
|
||
express relating to me from our emperor to the court of Blefuscu. But I
|
||
was afterward given privately to understand, that his imperial majesty,
|
||
never imagining I had the least notice of his designs, believed I was
|
||
only gone to Blefuscu in performance of my promise, according to the
|
||
license he had given me, which was well known at our court, and would
|
||
return in a few days, when the ceremony was ended. But he was at last
|
||
in pain at my long absence; and after consulting with the treasurer and
|
||
the rest of that cabal, a person of quality was dispatched with the
|
||
copy of the articles against me. This envoy had instructions to
|
||
represent to the monarch of Blefuscu, “the great lenity of his master,
|
||
who was content to punish me no farther than with the loss of my eyes;
|
||
that I had fled from justice; and if I did not return in two hours, I
|
||
should be deprived of my title of _nardac_, and declared a traitor.”
|
||
The envoy further added, “that in order to maintain the peace and amity
|
||
between both empires, his master expected that his brother of Blefuscu
|
||
would give orders to have me sent back to Lilliput, bound hand and
|
||
foot, to be punished as a traitor.”
|
||
|
||
The emperor of Blefuscu, having taken three days to consult, returned
|
||
an answer consisting of many civilities and excuses. He said, “that as
|
||
for sending me bound, his brother knew it was impossible; that,
|
||
although I had deprived him of his fleet, yet he owed great obligations
|
||
to me for many good offices I had done him in making the peace. That,
|
||
however, both their majesties would soon be made easy; for I had found
|
||
a prodigious vessel on the shore, able to carry me on the sea, which he
|
||
had given orders to fit up, with my own assistance and direction; and
|
||
he hoped, in a few weeks, both empires would be freed from so
|
||
insupportable an encumbrance.”
|
||
|
||
With this answer the envoy returned to Lilliput; and the monarch of
|
||
Blefuscu related to me all that had passed; offering me at the same
|
||
time (but under the strictest confidence) his gracious protection, if I
|
||
would continue in his service; wherein, although I believed him
|
||
sincere, yet I resolved never more to put any confidence in princes or
|
||
ministers, where I could possibly avoid it; and therefore, with all due
|
||
acknowledgments for his favourable intentions, I humbly begged to be
|
||
excused. I told him, “that since fortune, whether good or evil, had
|
||
thrown a vessel in my way, I was resolved to venture myself on the
|
||
ocean, rather than be an occasion of difference between two such mighty
|
||
monarchs.” Neither did I find the emperor at all displeased; and I
|
||
discovered, by a certain accident, that he was very glad of my
|
||
resolution, and so were most of his ministers.
|
||
|
||
These considerations moved me to hasten my departure somewhat sooner
|
||
than I intended; to which the court, impatient to have me gone, very
|
||
readily contributed. Five hundred workmen were employed to make two
|
||
sails to my boat, according to my directions, by quilting thirteen
|
||
folds of their strongest linen together. I was at the pains of making
|
||
ropes and cables, by twisting ten, twenty, or thirty of the thickest
|
||
and strongest of theirs. A great stone that I happened to find, after a
|
||
long search, by the sea-shore, served me for an anchor. I had the
|
||
tallow of three hundred cows, for greasing my boat, and other uses. I
|
||
was at incredible pains in cutting down some of the largest
|
||
timber-trees, for oars and masts, wherein I was, however, much assisted
|
||
by his majesty’s ship-carpenters, who helped me in smoothing them,
|
||
after I had done the rough work.
|
||
|
||
In about a month, when all was prepared, I sent to receive his
|
||
majesty’s commands, and to take my leave. The emperor and royal family
|
||
came out of the palace; I lay down on my face to kiss his hand, which
|
||
he very graciously gave me: so did the empress and young princes of the
|
||
blood. His majesty presented me with fifty purses of two hundred
|
||
_sprugs_ a-piece, together with his picture at full length, which I put
|
||
immediately into one of my gloves, to keep it from being hurt. The
|
||
ceremonies at my departure were too many to trouble the reader with at
|
||
this time.
|
||
|
||
I stored the boat with the carcases of a hundred oxen, and three
|
||
hundred sheep, with bread and drink proportionable, and as much meat
|
||
ready dressed as four hundred cooks could provide. I took with me six
|
||
cows and two bulls alive, with as many ewes and rams, intending to
|
||
carry them into my own country, and propagate the breed. And to feed
|
||
them on board, I had a good bundle of hay, and a bag of corn. I would
|
||
gladly have taken a dozen of the natives, but this was a thing the
|
||
emperor would by no means permit; and, besides a diligent search into
|
||
my pockets, his majesty engaged my honour “not to carry away any of his
|
||
subjects, although with their own consent and desire.”
|
||
|
||
Having thus prepared all things as well as I was able, I set sail on
|
||
the twenty-fourth day of September 1701, at six in the morning; and
|
||
when I had gone about four leagues to the northward, the wind being at
|
||
south-east, at six in the evening I descried a small island, about half
|
||
a league to the north-west. I advanced forward, and cast anchor on the
|
||
lee-side of the island, which seemed to be uninhabited. I then took
|
||
some refreshment, and went to my rest. I slept well, and as I
|
||
conjectured at least six hours, for I found the day broke in two hours
|
||
after I awaked. It was a clear night. I ate my breakfast before the sun
|
||
was up; and heaving anchor, the wind being favourable, I steered the
|
||
same course that I had done the day before, wherein I was directed by
|
||
my pocket compass. My intention was to reach, if possible, one of those
|
||
islands which I had reason to believe lay to the north-east of Van
|
||
Diemen’s Land. I discovered nothing all that day; but upon the next,
|
||
about three in the afternoon, when I had by my computation made
|
||
twenty-four leagues from Blefuscu, I descried a sail steering to the
|
||
south-east; my course was due east. I hailed her, but could get no
|
||
answer; yet I found I gained upon her, for the wind slackened. I made
|
||
all the sail I could, and in half an hour she spied me, then hung out
|
||
her ancient, and discharged a gun. It is not easy to express the joy I
|
||
was in, upon the unexpected hope of once more seeing my beloved
|
||
country, and the dear pledges I left in it. The ship slackened her
|
||
sails, and I came up with her between five and six in the evening,
|
||
September 26th; but my heart leaped within me to see her English
|
||
colours. I put my cows and sheep into my coat-pockets, and got on board
|
||
with all my little cargo of provisions. The vessel was an English
|
||
merchantman, returning from Japan by the North and South seas; the
|
||
captain, Mr. John Biddel, of Deptford, a very civil man, and an
|
||
excellent sailor.
|
||
|
||
We were now in the latitude of 30 degrees south; there were about fifty
|
||
men in the ship; and here I met an old comrade of mine, one Peter
|
||
Williams, who gave me a good character to the captain. This gentleman
|
||
treated me with kindness, and desired I would let him know what place I
|
||
came from last, and whither I was bound; which I did in a few words,
|
||
but he thought I was raving, and that the dangers I underwent had
|
||
disturbed my head; whereupon I took my black cattle and sheep out of my
|
||
pocket, which, after great astonishment, clearly convinced him of my
|
||
veracity. I then showed him the gold given me by the emperor of
|
||
Blefuscu, together with his majesty’s picture at full length, and some
|
||
other rarities of that country. I gave him two purses of two hundreds
|
||
_sprugs_ each, and promised, when we arrived in England, to make him a
|
||
present of a cow and a sheep big with young.
|
||
|
||
I shall not trouble the reader with a particular account of this
|
||
voyage, which was very prosperous for the most part. We arrived in the
|
||
Downs on the 13th of April, 1702. I had only one misfortune, that the
|
||
rats on board carried away one of my sheep; I found her bones in a
|
||
hole, picked clean from the flesh. The rest of my cattle I got safe
|
||
ashore, and set them a-grazing in a bowling-green at Greenwich, where
|
||
the fineness of the grass made them feed very heartily, though I had
|
||
always feared the contrary: neither could I possibly have preserved
|
||
them in so long a voyage, if the captain had not allowed me some of his
|
||
best biscuit, which, rubbed to powder, and mingled with water, was
|
||
their constant food. The short time I continued in England, I made a
|
||
considerable profit by showing my cattle to many persons of quality and
|
||
others: and before I began my second voyage, I sold them for six
|
||
hundred pounds. Since my last return I find the breed is considerably
|
||
increased, especially the sheep, which I hope will prove much to the
|
||
advantage of the woollen manufacture, by the fineness of the fleeces.
|
||
|
||
I stayed but two months with my wife and family, for my insatiable
|
||
desire of seeing foreign countries, would suffer me to continue no
|
||
longer. I left fifteen hundred pounds with my wife, and fixed her in a
|
||
good house at Redriff. My remaining stock I carried with me, part in
|
||
money and part in goods, in hopes to improve my fortunes. My eldest
|
||
uncle John had left me an estate in land, near Epping, of about thirty
|
||
pounds a year; and I had a long lease of the Black Bull in Fetter Lane,
|
||
which yielded me as much more; so that I was not in any danger of
|
||
leaving my family upon the parish. My son Johnny, named so after his
|
||
uncle, was at the grammar school, and a towardly child. My daughter
|
||
Betty (who is now well married, and has children) was then at her
|
||
needlework. I took leave of my wife, and boy and girl, with tears on
|
||
both sides, and went on board the Adventure, a merchant ship of three
|
||
hundred tons, bound for Surat, captain John Nicholas, of Liverpool,
|
||
commander. But my account of this voyage must be referred to the Second
|
||
Part of my Travels.
|
||
|
||
|
||
PART II. A VOYAGE TO BROBDINGNAG.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER I.
|
||
|
||
A great storm described; the long boat sent to fetch water; the author
|
||
goes with it to discover the country. He is left on shore, is seized by
|
||
one of the natives, and carried to a farmer’s house. His reception,
|
||
with several accidents that happened there. A description of the
|
||
inhabitants.
|
||
|
||
|
||
Having been condemned, by nature and fortune, to active and restless
|
||
life, in two months after my return, I again left my native country,
|
||
and took shipping in the Downs, on the 20th day of June, 1702, in the
|
||
Adventure, Captain John Nicholas, a Cornish man, commander, bound for
|
||
Surat. We had a very prosperous gale, till we arrived at the Cape of
|
||
Good Hope, where we landed for fresh water; but discovering a leak, we
|
||
unshipped our goods and wintered there; for the captain falling sick of
|
||
an ague, we could not leave the Cape till the end of March. We then set
|
||
sail, and had a good voyage till we passed the Straits of Madagascar;
|
||
but having got northward of that island, and to about five degrees
|
||
south latitude, the winds, which in those seas are observed to blow a
|
||
constant equal gale between the north and west, from the beginning of
|
||
December to the beginning of May, on the 19th of April began to blow
|
||
with much greater violence, and more westerly than usual, continuing so
|
||
for twenty days together: during which time, we were driven a little to
|
||
the east of the Molucca Islands, and about three degrees northward of
|
||
the line, as our captain found by an observation he took the 2nd of
|
||
May, at which time the wind ceased, and it was a perfect calm, whereat
|
||
I was not a little rejoiced. But he, being a man well experienced in
|
||
the navigation of those seas, bid us all prepare against a storm, which
|
||
accordingly happened the day following: for the southern wind, called
|
||
the southern monsoon, began to set in.
|
||
|
||
Finding it was likely to overblow, we took in our sprit-sail, and stood
|
||
by to hand the fore-sail; but making foul weather, we looked the guns
|
||
were all fast, and handed the mizen. The ship lay very broad off, so we
|
||
thought it better spooning before the sea, than trying or hulling. We
|
||
reefed the fore-sail and set him, and hauled aft the fore-sheet; the
|
||
helm was hard a-weather. The ship wore bravely. We belayed the fore
|
||
down-haul; but the sail was split, and we hauled down the yard, and got
|
||
the sail into the ship, and unbound all the things clear of it. It was
|
||
a very fierce storm; the sea broke strange and dangerous. We hauled off
|
||
upon the laniard of the whip-staff, and helped the man at the helm. We
|
||
would not get down our topmast, but let all stand, because she scudded
|
||
before the sea very well, and we knew that the top-mast being aloft,
|
||
the ship was the wholesomer, and made better way through the sea,
|
||
seeing we had sea-room. When the storm was over, we set fore-sail and
|
||
main-sail, and brought the ship to. Then we set the mizen,
|
||
main-top-sail, and the fore-top-sail. Our course was east-north-east,
|
||
the wind was at south-west. We got the starboard tacks aboard, we cast
|
||
off our weather-braces and lifts; we set in the lee-braces, and hauled
|
||
forward by the weather-bowlings, and hauled them tight, and belayed
|
||
them, and hauled over the mizen tack to windward, and kept her full and
|
||
by as near as she would lie.
|
||
|
||
During this storm, which was followed by a strong wind west-south-west,
|
||
we were carried, by my computation, about five hundred leagues to the
|
||
east, so that the oldest sailor on board could not tell in what part of
|
||
the world we were. Our provisions held out well, our ship was staunch,
|
||
and our crew all in good health; but we lay in the utmost distress for
|
||
water. We thought it best to hold on the same course, rather than turn
|
||
more northerly, which might have brought us to the north-west part of
|
||
Great Tartary, and into the Frozen Sea.
|
||
|
||
On the 16th day of June, 1703, a boy on the top-mast discovered land.
|
||
On the 17th, we came in full view of a great island, or continent (for
|
||
we knew not whether;) on the south side whereof was a small neck of
|
||
land jutting out into the sea, and a creek too shallow to hold a ship
|
||
of above one hundred tons. We cast anchor within a league of this
|
||
creek, and our captain sent a dozen of his men well armed in the
|
||
long-boat, with vessels for water, if any could be found. I desired his
|
||
leave to go with them, that I might see the country, and make what
|
||
discoveries I could. When we came to land we saw no river or spring,
|
||
nor any sign of inhabitants. Our men therefore wandered on the shore to
|
||
find out some fresh water near the sea, and I walked alone about a mile
|
||
on the other side, where I observed the country all barren and rocky. I
|
||
now began to be weary, and seeing nothing to entertain my curiosity, I
|
||
returned gently down towards the creek; and the sea being full in my
|
||
view, I saw our men already got into the boat, and rowing for life to
|
||
the ship. I was going to holla after them, although it had been to
|
||
little purpose, when I observed a huge creature walking after them in
|
||
the sea, as fast as he could: he waded not much deeper than his knees,
|
||
and took prodigious strides: but our men had the start of him half a
|
||
league, and, the sea thereabouts being full of sharp-pointed rocks, the
|
||
monster was not able to overtake the boat. This I was afterwards told,
|
||
for I durst not stay to see the issue of the adventure; but ran as fast
|
||
as I could the way I first went, and then climbed up a steep hill,
|
||
which gave me some prospect of the country. I found it fully
|
||
cultivated; but that which first surprised me was the length of the
|
||
grass, which, in those grounds that seemed to be kept for hay, was
|
||
about twenty feet high.
|
||
|
||
I fell into a high road, for so I took it to be, though it served to
|
||
the inhabitants only as a foot-path through a field of barley. Here I
|
||
walked on for some time, but could see little on either side, it being
|
||
now near harvest, and the corn rising at least forty feet. I was an
|
||
hour walking to the end of this field, which was fenced in with a hedge
|
||
of at least one hundred and twenty feet high, and the trees so lofty
|
||
that I could make no computation of their altitude. There was a stile
|
||
to pass from this field into the next. It had four steps, and a stone
|
||
to cross over when you came to the uppermost. It was impossible for me
|
||
to climb this stile, because every step was six-feet high, and the
|
||
upper stone about twenty. I was endeavouring to find some gap in the
|
||
hedge, when I discovered one of the inhabitants in the next field,
|
||
advancing towards the stile, of the same size with him whom I saw in
|
||
the sea pursuing our boat. He appeared as tall as an ordinary spire
|
||
steeple, and took about ten yards at every stride, as near as I could
|
||
guess. I was struck with the utmost fear and astonishment, and ran to
|
||
hide myself in the corn, whence I saw him at the top of the stile
|
||
looking back into the next field on the right hand, and heard him call
|
||
in a voice many degrees louder than a speaking-trumpet: but the noise
|
||
was so high in the air, that at first I certainly thought it was
|
||
thunder. Whereupon seven monsters, like himself, came towards him with
|
||
reaping-hooks in their hands, each hook about the largeness of six
|
||
scythes. These people were not so well clad as the first, whose
|
||
servants or labourers they seemed to be; for, upon some words he spoke,
|
||
they went to reap the corn in the field where I lay. I kept from them
|
||
at as great a distance as I could, but was forced to move with extreme
|
||
difficulty, for the stalks of the corn were sometimes not above a foot
|
||
distant, so that I could hardly squeeze my body betwixt them. However,
|
||
I made a shift to go forward, till I came to a part of the field where
|
||
the corn had been laid by the rain and wind. Here it was impossible for
|
||
me to advance a step; for the stalks were so interwoven, that I could
|
||
not creep through, and the beards of the fallen ears so strong and
|
||
pointed, that they pierced through my clothes into my flesh. At the
|
||
same time I heard the reapers not a hundred yards behind me. Being
|
||
quite dispirited with toil, and wholly overcome by grief and dispair, I
|
||
lay down between two ridges, and heartily wished I might there end my
|
||
days. I bemoaned my desolate widow and fatherless children. I lamented
|
||
my own folly and wilfulness, in attempting a second voyage, against the
|
||
advice of all my friends and relations. In this terrible agitation of
|
||
mind, I could not forbear thinking of Lilliput, whose inhabitants
|
||
looked upon me as the greatest prodigy that ever appeared in the world;
|
||
where I was able to draw an imperial fleet in my hand, and perform
|
||
those other actions, which will be recorded for ever in the chronicles
|
||
of that empire, while posterity shall hardly believe them, although
|
||
attested by millions. I reflected what a mortification it must prove to
|
||
me, to appear as inconsiderable in this nation, as one single
|
||
Lilliputian would be among us. But this I conceived was to be the least
|
||
of my misfortunes; for, as human creatures are observed to be more
|
||
savage and cruel in proportion to their bulk, what could I expect but
|
||
to be a morsel in the mouth of the first among these enormous
|
||
barbarians that should happen to seize me? Undoubtedly philosophers are
|
||
in the right, when they tell us that nothing is great or little
|
||
otherwise than by comparison. It might have pleased fortune, to have
|
||
let the Lilliputians find some nation, where the people were as
|
||
diminutive with respect to them, as they were to me. And who knows but
|
||
that even this prodigious race of mortals might be equally overmatched
|
||
in some distant part of the world, whereof we have yet no discovery.
|
||
|
||
Scared and confounded as I was, I could not forbear going on with these
|
||
reflections, when one of the reapers, approaching within ten yards of
|
||
the ridge where I lay, made me apprehend that with the next step I
|
||
should be squashed to death under his foot, or cut in two with his
|
||
reaping-hook. And therefore, when he was again about to move, I
|
||
screamed as loud as fear could make me: whereupon the huge creature
|
||
trod short, and, looking round about under him for some time, at last
|
||
espied me as I lay on the ground. He considered awhile, with the
|
||
caution of one who endeavours to lay hold on a small dangerous animal
|
||
in such a manner that it shall not be able either to scratch or bite
|
||
him, as I myself have sometimes done with a weasel in England. At
|
||
length he ventured to take me behind, by the middle, between his
|
||
fore-finger and thumb, and brought me within three yards of his eyes,
|
||
that he might behold my shape more perfectly. I guessed his meaning,
|
||
and my good fortune gave me so much presence of mind, that I resolved
|
||
not to struggle in the least as he held me in the air above sixty feet
|
||
from the ground, although he grievously pinched my sides, for fear I
|
||
should slip through his fingers. All I ventured was to raise my eyes
|
||
towards the sun, and place my hands together in a supplicating posture,
|
||
and to speak some words in a humble melancholy tone, suitable to the
|
||
condition I then was in: for I apprehended every moment that he would
|
||
dash me against the ground, as we usually do any little hateful animal,
|
||
which we have a mind to destroy. But my good star would have it, that
|
||
he appeared pleased with my voice and gestures, and began to look upon
|
||
me as a curiosity, much wondering to hear me pronounce articulate
|
||
words, although he could not understand them. In the mean time I was
|
||
not able to forbear groaning and shedding tears, and turning my head
|
||
towards my sides; letting him know, as well as I could, how cruelly I
|
||
was hurt by the pressure of his thumb and finger. He seemed to
|
||
apprehend my meaning; for, lifting up the lappet of his coat, he put me
|
||
gently into it, and immediately ran along with me to his master, who
|
||
was a substantial farmer, and the same person I had first seen in the
|
||
field.
|
||
|
||
The farmer having (as I suppose by their talk) received such an account
|
||
of me as his servant could give him, took a piece of a small straw,
|
||
about the size of a walking-staff, and therewith lifted up the lappets
|
||
of my coat; which it seems he thought to be some kind of covering that
|
||
nature had given me. He blew my hairs aside to take a better view of my
|
||
face. He called his hinds about him, and asked them, as I afterwards
|
||
learned, whether they had ever seen in the fields any little creature
|
||
that resembled me. He then placed me softly on the ground upon all
|
||
fours, but I got immediately up, and walked slowly backward and
|
||
forward, to let those people see I had no intent to run away. They all
|
||
sat down in a circle about me, the better to observe my motions. I
|
||
pulled off my hat, and made a low bow towards the farmer. I fell on my
|
||
knees, and lifted up my hands and eyes, and spoke several words as loud
|
||
as I could: I took a purse of gold out of my pocket, and humbly
|
||
presented it to him. He received it on the palm of his hand, then
|
||
applied it close to his eye to see what it was, and afterwards turned
|
||
it several times with the point of a pin (which he took out of his
|
||
sleeve,) but could make nothing of it. Whereupon I made a sign that he
|
||
should place his hand on the ground. I then took the purse, and,
|
||
opening it, poured all the gold into his palm. There were six Spanish
|
||
pieces of four pistoles each, beside twenty or thirty smaller coins. I
|
||
saw him wet the tip of his little finger upon his tongue, and take up
|
||
one of my largest pieces, and then another; but he seemed to be wholly
|
||
ignorant what they were. He made me a sign to put them again into my
|
||
purse, and the purse again into my pocket, which, after offering it to
|
||
him several times, I thought it best to do.
|
||
|
||
The farmer, by this time, was convinced I must be a rational creature.
|
||
He spoke often to me; but the sound of his voice pierced my ears like
|
||
that of a water-mill, yet his words were articulate enough. I answered
|
||
as loud as I could in several languages, and he often laid his ear
|
||
within two yards of me: but all in vain, for we were wholly
|
||
unintelligible to each other. He then sent his servants to their work,
|
||
and taking his handkerchief out of his pocket, he doubled and spread it
|
||
on his left hand, which he placed flat on the ground with the palm
|
||
upward, making me a sign to step into it, as I could easily do, for it
|
||
was not above a foot in thickness. I thought it my part to obey, and,
|
||
for fear of falling, laid myself at full length upon the handkerchief,
|
||
with the remainder of which he lapped me up to the head for further
|
||
security, and in this manner carried me home to his house. There he
|
||
called his wife, and showed me to her; but she screamed and ran back,
|
||
as women in England do at the sight of a toad or a spider. However,
|
||
when she had a while seen my behaviour, and how well I observed the
|
||
signs her husband made, she was soon reconciled, and by degrees grew
|
||
extremely tender of me.
|
||
|
||
It was about twelve at noon, and a servant brought in dinner. It was
|
||
only one substantial dish of meat (fit for the plain condition of a
|
||
husbandman,) in a dish of about four-and-twenty feet diameter. The
|
||
company were, the farmer and his wife, three children, and an old
|
||
grandmother. When they were sat down, the farmer placed me at some
|
||
distance from him on the table, which was thirty feet high from the
|
||
floor. I was in a terrible fright, and kept as far as I could from the
|
||
edge, for fear of falling. The wife minced a bit of meat, then crumbled
|
||
some bread on a trencher, and placed it before me. I made her a low
|
||
bow, took out my knife and fork, and fell to eat, which gave them
|
||
exceeding delight. The mistress sent her maid for a small dram cup,
|
||
which held about two gallons, and filled it with drink; I took up the
|
||
vessel with much difficulty in both hands, and in a most respectful
|
||
manner drank to her ladyship’s health, expressing the words as loud as
|
||
I could in English, which made the company laugh so heartily, that I
|
||
was almost deafened with the noise. This liquor tasted like a small
|
||
cider, and was not unpleasant. Then the master made me a sign to come
|
||
to his trencher side; but as I walked on the table, being in great
|
||
surprise all the time, as the indulgent reader will easily conceive and
|
||
excuse, I happened to stumble against a crust, and fell flat on my
|
||
face, but received no hurt. I got up immediately, and observing the
|
||
good people to be in much concern, I took my hat (which I held under my
|
||
arm out of good manners,) and waving it over my head, made three
|
||
huzzas, to show I had got no mischief by my fall. But advancing forward
|
||
towards my master (as I shall henceforth call him,) his youngest son,
|
||
who sat next to him, an arch boy of about ten years old, took me up by
|
||
the legs, and held me so high in the air, that I trembled every limb:
|
||
but his father snatched me from him, and at the same time gave him such
|
||
a box on the left ear, as would have felled an European troop of horse
|
||
to the earth, ordering him to be taken from the table. But being afraid
|
||
the boy might owe me a spite, and well remembering how mischievous all
|
||
children among us naturally are to sparrows, rabbits, young kittens,
|
||
and puppy dogs, I fell on my knees, and pointing to the boy, made my
|
||
master to understand, as well as I could, that I desired his son might
|
||
be pardoned. The father complied, and the lad took his seat again,
|
||
whereupon I went to him, and kissed his hand, which my master took, and
|
||
made him stroke me gently with it.
|
||
|
||
In the midst of dinner, my mistress’s favourite cat leaped into her
|
||
lap. I heard a noise behind me like that of a dozen stocking-weavers at
|
||
work; and turning my head, I found it proceeded from the purring of
|
||
that animal, who seemed to be three times larger than an ox, as I
|
||
computed by the view of her head, and one of her paws, while her
|
||
mistress was feeding and stroking her. The fierceness of this
|
||
creature’s countenance altogether discomposed me; though I stood at the
|
||
farther end of the table, above fifty feet off; and although my
|
||
mistress held her fast, for fear she might give a spring, and seize me
|
||
in her talons. But it happened there was no danger, for the cat took
|
||
not the least notice of me when my master placed me within three yards
|
||
of her. And as I have been always told, and found true by experience in
|
||
my travels, that flying or discovering fear before a fierce animal, is
|
||
a certain way to make it pursue or attack you, so I resolved, in this
|
||
dangerous juncture, to show no manner of concern. I walked with
|
||
intrepidity five or six times before the very head of the cat, and came
|
||
within half a yard of her; whereupon she drew herself back, as if she
|
||
were more afraid of me: I had less apprehension concerning the dogs,
|
||
whereof three or four came into the room, as it is usual in farmers’
|
||
houses; one of which was a mastiff, equal in bulk to four elephants,
|
||
and another a greyhound, somewhat taller than the mastiff, but not so
|
||
large.
|
||
|
||
When dinner was almost done, the nurse came in with a child of a year
|
||
old in her arms, who immediately spied me, and began a squall that you
|
||
might have heard from London Bridge to Chelsea, after the usual oratory
|
||
of infants, to get me for a plaything. The mother, out of pure
|
||
indulgence, took me up, and put me towards the child, who presently
|
||
seized me by the middle, and got my head into his mouth, where I roared
|
||
so loud that the urchin was frighted, and let me drop, and I should
|
||
infallibly have broke my neck, if the mother had not held her apron
|
||
under me. The nurse, to quiet her babe, made use of a rattle which was
|
||
a kind of hollow vessel filled with great stones, and fastened by a
|
||
cable to the child’s waist: but all in vain; so that she was forced to
|
||
apply the last remedy by giving it suck. I must confess no object ever
|
||
disgusted me so much as the sight of her monstrous breast, which I
|
||
cannot tell what to compare with, so as to give the curious reader an
|
||
idea of its bulk, shape, and colour. It stood prominent six feet, and
|
||
could not be less than sixteen in circumference. The nipple was about
|
||
half the bigness of my head, and the hue both of that and the dug, so
|
||
varied with spots, pimples, and freckles, that nothing could appear
|
||
more nauseous: for I had a near sight of her, she sitting down, the
|
||
more conveniently to give suck, and I standing on the table. This made
|
||
me reflect upon the fair skins of our English ladies, who appear so
|
||
beautiful to us, only because they are of our own size, and their
|
||
defects not to be seen but through a magnifying glass; where we find by
|
||
experiment that the smoothest and whitest skins look rough, and coarse,
|
||
and ill-coloured.
|
||
|
||
I remember when I was at Lilliput, the complexion of those diminutive
|
||
people appeared to me the fairest in the world; and talking upon this
|
||
subject with a person of learning there, who was an intimate friend of
|
||
mine, he said that my face appeared much fairer and smoother when he
|
||
looked on me from the ground, than it did upon a nearer view, when I
|
||
took him up in my hand, and brought him close, which he confessed was
|
||
at first a very shocking sight. He said, “he could discover great holes
|
||
in my skin; that the stumps of my beard were ten times stronger than
|
||
the bristles of a boar, and my complexion made up of several colours
|
||
altogether disagreeable:” although I must beg leave to say for myself,
|
||
that I am as fair as most of my sex and country, and very little
|
||
sunburnt by all my travels. On the other side, discoursing of the
|
||
ladies in that emperor’s court, he used to tell me, “one had freckles;
|
||
another too wide a mouth; a third too large a nose;” nothing of which I
|
||
was able to distinguish. I confess this reflection was obvious enough;
|
||
which, however, I could not forbear, lest the reader might think those
|
||
vast creatures were actually deformed: for I must do them the justice
|
||
to say, they are a comely race of people, and particularly the features
|
||
of my master’s countenance, although he was but a farmer, when I beheld
|
||
him from the height of sixty feet, appeared very well proportioned.
|
||
|
||
When dinner was done, my master went out to his labourers, and, as I
|
||
could discover by his voice and gesture, gave his wife strict charge to
|
||
take care of me. I was very much tired, and disposed to sleep, which my
|
||
mistress perceiving, she put me on her own bed, and covered me with a
|
||
clean white handkerchief, but larger and coarser than the mainsail of a
|
||
man of war.
|
||
|
||
I slept about two hours, and dreamt I was at home with my wife and
|
||
children, which aggravated my sorrows when I awaked, and found myself
|
||
alone in a vast room, between two and three hundred feet wide, and
|
||
above two hundred high, lying in a bed twenty yards wide. My mistress
|
||
was gone about her household affairs, and had locked me in. The bed was
|
||
eight yards from the floor. Some natural necessities required me to get
|
||
down; I durst not presume to call; and if I had, it would have been in
|
||
vain, with such a voice as mine, at so great a distance from the room
|
||
where I lay to the kitchen where the family kept. While I was under
|
||
these circumstances, two rats crept up the curtains, and ran smelling
|
||
backwards and forwards on the bed. One of them came up almost to my
|
||
face, whereupon I rose in a fright, and drew out my hanger to defend
|
||
myself. These horrible animals had the boldness to attack me on both
|
||
sides, and one of them held his forefeet at my collar; but I had the
|
||
good fortune to rip up his belly before he could do me any mischief. He
|
||
fell down at my feet; and the other, seeing the fate of his comrade,
|
||
made his escape, but not without one good wound on the back, which I
|
||
gave him as he fled, and made the blood run trickling from him. After
|
||
this exploit, I walked gently to and fro on the bed, to recover my
|
||
breath and loss of spirits. These creatures were of the size of a large
|
||
mastiff, but infinitely more nimble and fierce; so that if I had taken
|
||
off my belt before I went to sleep, I must have infallibly been torn to
|
||
pieces and devoured. I measured the tail of the dead rat, and found it
|
||
to be two yards long, wanting an inch; but it went against my stomach
|
||
to drag the carcass off the bed, where it lay still bleeding; I
|
||
observed it had yet some life, but with a strong slash across the neck,
|
||
I thoroughly despatched it.
|
||
|
||
Soon after my mistress came into the room, who seeing me all bloody,
|
||
ran and took me up in her hand. I pointed to the dead rat, smiling, and
|
||
making other signs to show I was not hurt; whereat she was extremely
|
||
rejoiced, calling the maid to take up the dead rat with a pair of
|
||
tongs, and throw it out of the window. Then she set me on a table,
|
||
where I showed her my hanger all bloody, and wiping it on the lappet of
|
||
my coat, returned it to the scabbard. I was pressed to do more than one
|
||
thing which another could not do for me, and therefore endeavoured to
|
||
make my mistress understand, that I desired to be set down on the
|
||
floor; which after she had done, my bashfulness would not suffer me to
|
||
express myself farther, than by pointing to the door, and bowing
|
||
several times. The good woman, with much difficulty, at last perceived
|
||
what I would be at, and taking me up again in her hand, walked into the
|
||
garden, where she set me down. I went on one side about two hundred
|
||
yards, and beckoning to her not to look or to follow me, I hid myself
|
||
between two leaves of sorrel, and there discharged the necessities of
|
||
nature.
|
||
|
||
I hope the gentle reader will excuse me for dwelling on these and the
|
||
like particulars, which, however insignificant they may appear to
|
||
groveling vulgar minds, yet will certainly help a philosopher to
|
||
enlarge his thoughts and imagination, and apply them to the benefit of
|
||
public as well as private life, which was my sole design in presenting
|
||
this and other accounts of my travels to the world; wherein I have been
|
||
chiefly studious of truth, without affecting any ornaments of learning
|
||
or of style. But the whole scene of this voyage made so strong an
|
||
impression on my mind, and is so deeply fixed in my memory, that, in
|
||
committing it to paper I did not omit one material circumstance:
|
||
however, upon a strict review, I blotted out several passages of less
|
||
moment which were in my first copy, for fear of being censured as
|
||
tedious and trifling, whereof travellers are often, perhaps not without
|
||
justice, accused.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER II.
|
||
|
||
A description of the farmer’s daughter. The author carried to a
|
||
market-town, and then to the metropolis. The particulars of his
|
||
journey.
|
||
|
||
|
||
My mistress had a daughter of nine years old, a child of towardly parts
|
||
for her age, very dexterous at her needle, and skilful in dressing her
|
||
baby. Her mother and she contrived to fit up the baby’s cradle for me
|
||
against night: the cradle was put into a small drawer of a cabinet, and
|
||
the drawer placed upon a hanging shelf for fear of the rats. This was
|
||
my bed all the time I staid with those people, though made more
|
||
convenient by degrees, as I began to learn their language and make my
|
||
wants known. This young girl was so handy, that after I had once or
|
||
twice pulled off my clothes before her, she was able to dress and
|
||
undress me, though I never gave her that trouble when she would let me
|
||
do either myself. She made me seven shirts, and some other linen, of as
|
||
fine cloth as could be got, which indeed was coarser than sackcloth;
|
||
and these she constantly washed for me with her own hands. She was
|
||
likewise my school-mistress, to teach me the language: when I pointed
|
||
to any thing, she told me the name of it in her own tongue, so that in
|
||
a few days I was able to call for whatever I had a mind to. She was
|
||
very good-natured, and not above forty feet high, being little for her
|
||
age. She gave me the name of _Grildrig_, which the family took up, and
|
||
afterwards the whole kingdom. The word imports what the Latins call
|
||
_nanunculus_, the Italians _homunceletino_, and the English _mannikin_.
|
||
To her I chiefly owe my preservation in that country: we never parted
|
||
while I was there; I called her my _Glumdalclitch_, or little nurse;
|
||
and should be guilty of great ingratitude, if I omitted this honourable
|
||
mention of her care and affection towards me, which I heartily wish it
|
||
lay in my power to requite as she deserves, instead of being the
|
||
innocent, but unhappy instrument of her disgrace, as I have too much
|
||
reason to fear.
|
||
|
||
It now began to be known and talked of in the neighbourhood, that my
|
||
master had found a strange animal in the field, about the bigness of a
|
||
_splacnuck_, but exactly shaped in every part like a human creature;
|
||
which it likewise imitated in all its actions; seemed to speak in a
|
||
little language of its own, had already learned several words of
|
||
theirs, went erect upon two legs, was tame and gentle, would come when
|
||
it was called, do whatever it was bid, had the finest limbs in the
|
||
world, and a complexion fairer than a nobleman’s daughter of three
|
||
years old. Another farmer, who lived hard by, and was a particular
|
||
friend of my master, came on a visit on purpose to inquire into the
|
||
truth of this story. I was immediately produced, and placed upon a
|
||
table, where I walked as I was commanded, drew my hanger, put it up
|
||
again, made my reverence to my master’s guest, asked him in his own
|
||
language how he did, and told him _he was welcome_, just as my little
|
||
nurse had instructed me. This man, who was old and dim-sighted, put on
|
||
his spectacles to behold me better; at which I could not forbear
|
||
laughing very heartily, for his eyes appeared like the full moon
|
||
shining into a chamber at two windows. Our people, who discovered the
|
||
cause of my mirth, bore me company in laughing, at which the old fellow
|
||
was fool enough to be angry and out of countenance. He had the
|
||
character of a great miser; and, to my misfortune, he well deserved it,
|
||
by the cursed advice he gave my master, to show me as a sight upon a
|
||
market-day in the next town, which was half an hour’s riding, about
|
||
two-and-twenty miles from our house. I guessed there was some mischief
|
||
when I observed my master and his friend whispering together, sometimes
|
||
pointing at me; and my fears made me fancy that I overheard and
|
||
understood some of their words. But the next morning Glumdalclitch, my
|
||
little nurse, told me the whole matter, which she had cunningly picked
|
||
out from her mother. The poor girl laid me on her bosom, and fell a
|
||
weeping with shame and grief. She apprehended some mischief would
|
||
happen to me from rude vulgar folks, who might squeeze me to death, or
|
||
break one of my limbs by taking me in their hands. She had also
|
||
observed how modest I was in my nature, how nicely I regarded my
|
||
honour, and what an indignity I should conceive it, to be exposed for
|
||
money as a public spectacle, to the meanest of the people. She said,
|
||
her papa and mamma had promised that Grildrig should be hers; but now
|
||
she found they meant to serve her as they did last year, when they
|
||
pretended to give her a lamb, and yet, as soon as it was fat, sold it
|
||
to a butcher. For my own part, I may truly affirm, that I was less
|
||
concerned than my nurse. I had a strong hope, which never left me, that
|
||
I should one day recover my liberty: and as to the ignominy of being
|
||
carried about for a monster, I considered myself to be a perfect
|
||
stranger in the country, and that such a misfortune could never be
|
||
charged upon me as a reproach, if ever I should return to England,
|
||
since the king of Great Britain himself, in my condition, must have
|
||
undergone the same distress.
|
||
|
||
My master, pursuant to the advice of his friend, carried me in a box
|
||
the next market-day to the neighbouring town, and took along with him
|
||
his little daughter, my nurse, upon a pillion behind him. The box was
|
||
close on every side, with a little door for me to go in and out, and a
|
||
few gimlet holes to let in air. The girl had been so careful as to put
|
||
the quilt of her baby’s bed into it, for me to lie down on. However, I
|
||
was terribly shaken and discomposed in this journey, though it was but
|
||
of half an hour: for the horse went about forty feet at every step and
|
||
trotted so high, that the agitation was equal to the rising and falling
|
||
of a ship in a great storm, but much more frequent. Our journey was
|
||
somewhat farther than from London to St. Alban’s. My master alighted at
|
||
an inn which he used to frequent; and after consulting a while with the
|
||
inn-keeper, and making some necessary preparations, he hired the
|
||
_grultrud_, or crier, to give notice through the town of a strange
|
||
creature to be seen at the sign of the Green Eagle, not so big as a
|
||
_splacnuck_ (an animal in that country very finely shaped, about six
|
||
feet long,) and in every part of the body resembling a human creature,
|
||
could speak several words, and perform a hundred diverting tricks.
|
||
|
||
I was placed upon a table in the largest room of the inn, which might
|
||
be near three hundred feet square. My little nurse stood on a low stool
|
||
close to the table, to take care of me, and direct what I should do. My
|
||
master, to avoid a crowd, would suffer only thirty people at a time to
|
||
see me. I walked about on the table as the girl commanded; she asked me
|
||
questions, as far as she knew my understanding of the language reached,
|
||
and I answered them as loud as I could. I turned about several times to
|
||
the company, paid my humble respects, said _they were welcome_, and
|
||
used some other speeches I had been taught. I took up a thimble filled
|
||
with liquor, which Glumdalclitch had given me for a cup, and drank
|
||
their health, I drew out my hanger, and flourished with it after the
|
||
manner of fencers in England. My nurse gave me a part of a straw, which
|
||
I exercised as a pike, having learnt the art in my youth. I was that
|
||
day shown to twelve sets of company, and as often forced to act over
|
||
again the same fopperies, till I was half dead with weariness and
|
||
vexation; for those who had seen me made such wonderful reports, that
|
||
the people were ready to break down the doors to come in. My master,
|
||
for his own interest, would not suffer any one to touch me except my
|
||
nurse; and to prevent danger, benches were set round the table at such
|
||
a distance as to put me out of every body’s reach. However, an unlucky
|
||
school-boy aimed a hazel nut directly at my head, which very narrowly
|
||
missed me; otherwise it came with so much violence, that it would have
|
||
infallibly knocked out my brains, for it was almost as large as a small
|
||
pumpkin, but I had the satisfaction to see the young rogue well beaten,
|
||
and turned out of the room.
|
||
|
||
My master gave public notice that he would show me again the next
|
||
market-day; and in the meantime he prepared a convenient vehicle for
|
||
me, which he had reason enough to do; for I was so tired with my first
|
||
journey, and with entertaining company for eight hours together, that I
|
||
could hardly stand upon my legs, or speak a word. It was at least three
|
||
days before I recovered my strength; and that I might have no rest at
|
||
home, all the neighbouring gentlemen from a hundred miles round,
|
||
hearing of my fame, came to see me at my master’s own house. There
|
||
could not be fewer than thirty persons with their wives and children
|
||
(for the country is very populous;) and my master demanded the rate of
|
||
a full room whenever he showed me at home, although it were only to a
|
||
single family; so that for some time I had but little ease every day of
|
||
the week (except Wednesday, which is their Sabbath,) although I were
|
||
not carried to the town.
|
||
|
||
My master, finding how profitable I was likely to be, resolved to carry
|
||
me to the most considerable cities of the kingdom. Having therefore
|
||
provided himself with all things necessary for a long journey, and
|
||
settled his affairs at home, he took leave of his wife, and upon the
|
||
17th of August, 1703, about two months after my arrival, we set out for
|
||
the metropolis, situated near the middle of that empire, and about
|
||
three thousand miles distance from our house. My master made his
|
||
daughter Glumdalclitch ride behind him. She carried me on her lap, in a
|
||
box tied about her waist. The girl had lined it on all sides with the
|
||
softest cloth she could get, well quilted underneath, furnished it with
|
||
her baby’s bed, provided me with linen and other necessaries, and made
|
||
everything as convenient as she could. We had no other company but a
|
||
boy of the house, who rode after us with the luggage.
|
||
|
||
My master’s design was to show me in all the towns by the way, and to
|
||
step out of the road for fifty or a hundred miles, to any village, or
|
||
person of quality’s house, where he might expect custom. We made easy
|
||
journeys, of not above seven or eight score miles a day; for
|
||
Glumdalclitch, on purpose to spare me, complained she was tired with
|
||
the trotting of the horse. She often took me out of my box, at my own
|
||
desire, to give me air, and show me the country, but always held me
|
||
fast by a leading-string. We passed over five or six rivers, many
|
||
degrees broader and deeper than the Nile or the Ganges: and there was
|
||
hardly a rivulet so small as the Thames at London Bridge. We were ten
|
||
weeks in our journey, and I was shown in eighteen large towns, besides
|
||
many villages, and private families.
|
||
|
||
On the 26th day of October we arrived at the metropolis, called in
|
||
their language _Lorbrulgrud_, or Pride of the Universe. My master took
|
||
a lodging in the principal street of the city, not far from the royal
|
||
palace, and put out bills in the usual form, containing an exact
|
||
description of my person and parts. He hired a large room between three
|
||
and four hundred feet wide. He provided a table sixty feet in diameter,
|
||
upon which I was to act my part, and pallisadoed it round three feet
|
||
from the edge, and as many high, to prevent my falling over. I was
|
||
shown ten times a day, to the wonder and satisfaction of all people. I
|
||
could now speak the language tolerably well, and perfectly understood
|
||
every word, that was spoken to me. Besides, I had learnt their
|
||
alphabet, and could make a shift to explain a sentence here and there;
|
||
for Glumdalclitch had been my instructor while we were at home, and at
|
||
leisure hours during our journey. She carried a little book in her
|
||
pocket, not much larger than a Sanson’s Atlas; it was a common treatise
|
||
for the use of young girls, giving a short account of their religion:
|
||
out of this she taught me my letters, and interpreted the words.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER III.
|
||
|
||
The author sent for to court. The queen buys him of his master the
|
||
farmer, and presents him to the king. He disputes with his majesty’s
|
||
great scholars. An apartment at court provided for the author. He is in
|
||
high favour with the queen. He stands up for the honour of his own
|
||
country. His quarrels with the queen’s dwarf.
|
||
|
||
|
||
The frequent labours I underwent every day, made, in a few weeks, a
|
||
very considerable change in my health: the more my master got by me,
|
||
the more insatiable he grew. I had quite lost my stomach, and was
|
||
almost reduced to a skeleton. The farmer observed it, and concluding I
|
||
must soon die, resolved to make as good a hand of me as he could. While
|
||
he was thus reasoning and resolving with himself, a _sardral_, or
|
||
gentleman-usher, came from court, commanding my master to carry me
|
||
immediately thither for the diversion of the queen and her ladies. Some
|
||
of the latter had already been to see me, and reported strange things
|
||
of my beauty, behaviour, and good sense. Her majesty, and those who
|
||
attended her, were beyond measure delighted with my demeanour. I fell
|
||
on my knees, and begged the honour of kissing her imperial foot; but
|
||
this gracious princess held out her little finger towards me, after I
|
||
was set on the table, which I embraced in both my arms, and put the tip
|
||
of it with the utmost respect to my lip. She made me some general
|
||
questions about my country and my travels, which I answered as
|
||
distinctly, and in as few words as I could. She asked, “whether I could
|
||
be content to live at court?” I bowed down to the board of the table,
|
||
and humbly answered “that I was my master’s slave: but, if I were at my
|
||
own disposal, I should be proud to devote my life to her majesty’s
|
||
service.” She then asked my master, “whether he was willing to sell me
|
||
at a good price?” He, who apprehended I could not live a month, was
|
||
ready enough to part with me, and demanded a thousand pieces of gold,
|
||
which were ordered him on the spot, each piece being about the bigness
|
||
of eight hundred moidores; but allowing for the proportion of all
|
||
things between that country and Europe, and the high price of gold
|
||
among them, was hardly so great a sum as a thousand guineas would be in
|
||
England. I then said to the queen, “since I was now her majesty’s most
|
||
humble creature and vassal, I must beg the favour, that Glumdalclitch,
|
||
who had always tended me with so much care and kindness, and understood
|
||
to do it so well, might be admitted into her service, and continue to
|
||
be my nurse and instructor.”
|
||
|
||
Her majesty agreed to my petition, and easily got the farmer’s consent,
|
||
who was glad enough to have his daughter preferred at court, and the
|
||
poor girl herself was not able to hide her joy. My late master
|
||
withdrew, bidding me farewell, and saying he had left me in a good
|
||
service; to which I replied not a word, only making him a slight bow.
|
||
|
||
The queen observed my coldness; and, when the farmer was gone out of
|
||
the apartment, asked me the reason. I made bold to tell her majesty,
|
||
“that I owed no other obligation to my late master, than his not
|
||
dashing out the brains of a poor harmless creature, found by chance in
|
||
his fields: which obligation was amply recompensed, by the gain he had
|
||
made in showing me through half the kingdom, and the price he had now
|
||
sold me for. That the life I had since led was laborious enough to kill
|
||
an animal of ten times my strength. That my health was much impaired,
|
||
by the continual drudgery of entertaining the rabble every hour of the
|
||
day; and that, if my master had not thought my life in danger, her
|
||
majesty would not have got so cheap a bargain. But as I was out of all
|
||
fear of being ill-treated under the protection of so great and good an
|
||
empress, the ornament of nature, the darling of the world, the delight
|
||
of her subjects, the phœnix of the creation, so I hoped my late
|
||
master’s apprehensions would appear to be groundless; for I already
|
||
found my spirits revive, by the influence of her most august presence.”
|
||
|
||
This was the sum of my speech, delivered with great improprieties and
|
||
hesitation. The latter part was altogether framed in the style peculiar
|
||
to that people, whereof I learned some phrases from Glumdalclitch,
|
||
while she was carrying me to court.
|
||
|
||
The queen, giving great allowance for my defectiveness in speaking,
|
||
was, however, surprised at so much wit and good sense in so diminutive
|
||
an animal. She took me in her own hand, and carried me to the king, who
|
||
was then retired to his cabinet. His majesty, a prince of much gravity
|
||
and austere countenance, not well observing my shape at first view,
|
||
asked the queen after a cold manner “how long it was since she grew
|
||
fond of a _splacnuck_?” for such it seems he took me to be, as I lay
|
||
upon my breast in her majesty’s right hand. But this princess, who has
|
||
an infinite deal of wit and humour, set me gently on my feet upon the
|
||
scrutoire, and commanded me to give his majesty an account of myself,
|
||
which I did in a very few words: and Glumdalclitch who attended at the
|
||
cabinet door, and could not endure I should be out of her sight, being
|
||
admitted, confirmed all that had passed from my arrival at her father’s
|
||
house.
|
||
|
||
The king, although he be as learned a person as any in his dominions,
|
||
had been educated in the study of philosophy, and particularly
|
||
mathematics; yet when he observed my shape exactly, and saw me walk
|
||
erect, before I began to speak, conceived I might be a piece of
|
||
clock-work (which is in that country arrived to a very great
|
||
perfection) contrived by some ingenious artist. But when he heard my
|
||
voice, and found what I delivered to be regular and rational, he could
|
||
not conceal his astonishment. He was by no means satisfied with the
|
||
relation I gave him of the manner I came into his kingdom, but thought
|
||
it a story concerted between Glumdalclitch and her father, who had
|
||
taught me a set of words to make me sell at a better price. Upon this
|
||
imagination, he put several other questions to me, and still received
|
||
rational answers: no otherwise defective than by a foreign accent, and
|
||
an imperfect knowledge in the language, with some rustic phrases which
|
||
I had learned at the farmer’s house, and did not suit the polite style
|
||
of a court.
|
||
|
||
His majesty sent for three great scholars, who were then in their
|
||
weekly waiting, according to the custom in that country. These
|
||
gentlemen, after they had a while examined my shape with much nicety,
|
||
were of different opinions concerning me. They all agreed that I could
|
||
not be produced according to the regular laws of nature, because I was
|
||
not framed with a capacity of preserving my life, either by swiftness,
|
||
or climbing of trees, or digging holes in the earth. They observed by
|
||
my teeth, which they viewed with great exactness, that I was a
|
||
carnivorous animal; yet most quadrupeds being an overmatch for me, and
|
||
field mice, with some others, too nimble, they could not imagine how I
|
||
should be able to support myself, unless I fed upon snails and other
|
||
insects, which they offered, by many learned arguments, to evince that
|
||
I could not possibly do. One of these virtuosi seemed to think that I
|
||
might be an embryo, or abortive birth. But this opinion was rejected by
|
||
the other two, who observed my limbs to be perfect and finished; and
|
||
that I had lived several years, as it was manifest from my beard, the
|
||
stumps whereof they plainly discovered through a magnifying glass. They
|
||
would not allow me to be a dwarf, because my littleness was beyond all
|
||
degrees of comparison; for the queen’s favourite dwarf, the smallest
|
||
ever known in that kingdom, was near thirty feet high. After much
|
||
debate, they concluded unanimously, that I was only _relplum scalcath_,
|
||
which is interpreted literally _lusus naturæ_; a determination exactly
|
||
agreeable to the modern philosophy of Europe, whose professors,
|
||
disdaining the old evasion of occult causes, whereby the followers of
|
||
Aristotle endeavoured in vain to disguise their ignorance, have
|
||
invented this wonderful solution of all difficulties, to the
|
||
unspeakable advancement of human knowledge.
|
||
|
||
After this decisive conclusion, I entreated to be heard a word or two.
|
||
I applied myself to the king, and assured his majesty, “that I came
|
||
from a country which abounded with several millions of both sexes, and
|
||
of my own stature; where the animals, trees, and houses, were all in
|
||
proportion, and where, by consequence, I might be as able to defend
|
||
myself, and to find sustenance, as any of his majesty’s subjects could
|
||
do here; which I took for a full answer to those gentlemen’s
|
||
arguments.” To this they only replied with a smile of contempt, saying,
|
||
“that the farmer had instructed me very well in my lesson.” The king,
|
||
who had a much better understanding, dismissing his learned men, sent
|
||
for the farmer, who by good fortune was not yet gone out of town.
|
||
Having therefore first examined him privately, and then confronted him
|
||
with me and the young girl, his majesty began to think that what we
|
||
told him might possibly be true. He desired the queen to order that a
|
||
particular care should be taken of me; and was of opinion that
|
||
Glumdalclitch should still continue in her office of tending me,
|
||
because he observed we had a great affection for each other. A
|
||
convenient apartment was provided for her at court: she had a sort of
|
||
governess appointed to take care of her education, a maid to dress her,
|
||
and two other servants for menial offices; but the care of me was
|
||
wholly appropriated to herself. The queen commanded her own
|
||
cabinet-maker to contrive a box, that might serve me for a bedchamber,
|
||
after the model that Glumdalclitch and I should agree upon. This man
|
||
was a most ingenious artist, and according to my direction, in three
|
||
weeks finished for me a wooden chamber of sixteen feet square, and
|
||
twelve high, with sash-windows, a door, and two closets, like a London
|
||
bed-chamber. The board, that made the ceiling, was to be lifted up and
|
||
down by two hinges, to put in a bed ready furnished by her majesty’s
|
||
upholsterer, which Glumdalclitch took out every day to air, made it
|
||
with her own hands, and letting it down at night, locked up the roof
|
||
over me. A nice workman, who was famous for little curiosities,
|
||
undertook to make me two chairs, with backs and frames, of a substance
|
||
not unlike ivory, and two tables, with a cabinet to put my things in.
|
||
The room was quilted on all sides, as well as the floor and the
|
||
ceiling, to prevent any accident from the carelessness of those who
|
||
carried me, and to break the force of a jolt, when I went in a coach. I
|
||
desired a lock for my door, to prevent rats and mice from coming in.
|
||
The smith, after several attempts, made the smallest that ever was seen
|
||
among them, for I have known a larger at the gate of a gentleman’s
|
||
house in England. I made a shift to keep the key in a pocket of my own,
|
||
fearing Glumdalclitch might lose it. The queen likewise ordered the
|
||
thinnest silks that could be gotten, to make me clothes, not much
|
||
thicker than an English blanket, very cumbersome till I was accustomed
|
||
to them. They were after the fashion of the kingdom, partly resembling
|
||
the Persian, and partly the Chinese, and are a very grave and decent
|
||
habit.
|
||
|
||
The queen became so fond of my company, that she could not dine without
|
||
me. I had a table placed upon the same at which her majesty ate, just
|
||
at her left elbow, and a chair to sit on. Glumdalclitch stood on a
|
||
stool on the floor near my table, to assist and take care of me. I had
|
||
an entire set of silver dishes and plates, and other necessaries,
|
||
which, in proportion to those of the queen, were not much bigger than
|
||
what I have seen in a London toy-shop for the furniture of a
|
||
baby-house: these my little nurse kept in her pocket in a silver box,
|
||
and gave me at meals as I wanted them, always cleaning them herself. No
|
||
person dined with the queen but the two princesses royal, the eldest
|
||
sixteen years old, and the younger at that time thirteen and a month.
|
||
Her majesty used to put a bit of meat upon one of my dishes, out of
|
||
which I carved for myself, and her diversion was to see me eat in
|
||
miniature: for the queen (who had indeed but a weak stomach) took up,
|
||
at one mouthful, as much as a dozen English farmers could eat at a
|
||
meal, which to me was for some time a very nauseous sight. She would
|
||
craunch the wing of a lark, bones and all, between her teeth, although
|
||
it were nine times as large as that of a full-grown turkey; and put a
|
||
bit of bread into her mouth as big as two twelve-penny loaves. She
|
||
drank out of a golden cup, above a hogshead at a draught. Her knives
|
||
were twice as long as a scythe, set straight upon the handle. The
|
||
spoons, forks, and other instruments, were all in the same proportion.
|
||
I remember when Glumdalclitch carried me, out of curiosity, to see some
|
||
of the tables at court, where ten or a dozen of those enormous knives
|
||
and forks were lifted up together, I thought I had never till then
|
||
beheld so terrible a sight.
|
||
|
||
It is the custom, that every Wednesday (which, as I have observed, is
|
||
their Sabbath) the king and queen, with the royal issue of both sexes,
|
||
dine together in the apartment of his majesty, to whom I was now become
|
||
a great favourite; and at these times, my little chair and table were
|
||
placed at his left hand, before one of the salt-cellars. This prince
|
||
took a pleasure in conversing with me, inquiring into the manners,
|
||
religion, laws, government, and learning of Europe; wherein I gave him
|
||
the best account I was able. His apprehension was so clear, and his
|
||
judgment so exact, that he made very wise reflections and observations
|
||
upon all I said. But I confess, that, after I had been a little too
|
||
copious in talking of my own beloved country, of our trade and wars by
|
||
sea and land, of our schisms in religion, and parties in the state; the
|
||
prejudices of his education prevailed so far, that he could not forbear
|
||
taking me up in his right hand, and stroking me gently with the other,
|
||
after a hearty fit of laughing, asked me, “whether I was a whig or
|
||
tory?” Then turning to his first minister, who waited behind him with a
|
||
white staff, near as tall as the mainmast of the Royal Sovereign, he
|
||
observed “how contemptible a thing was human grandeur, which could be
|
||
mimicked by such diminutive insects as I: and yet,” says he, “I dare
|
||
engage these creatures have their titles and distinctions of honour;
|
||
they contrive little nests and burrows, that they call houses and
|
||
cities; they make a figure in dress and equipage; they love, they
|
||
fight, they dispute, they cheat, they betray!” And thus he continued
|
||
on, while my colour came and went several times, with indignation, to
|
||
hear our noble country, the mistress of arts and arms, the scourge of
|
||
France, the arbitress of Europe, the seat of virtue, piety, honour, and
|
||
truth, the pride and envy of the world, so contemptuously treated.
|
||
|
||
But as I was not in a condition to resent injuries, so upon mature
|
||
thoughts I began to doubt whether I was injured or no. For, after
|
||
having been accustomed several months to the sight and converse of this
|
||
people, and observed every object upon which I cast my eyes to be of
|
||
proportionable magnitude, the horror I had at first conceived from
|
||
their bulk and aspect was so far worn off, that if I had then beheld a
|
||
company of English lords and ladies in their finery and birth-day
|
||
clothes, acting their several parts in the most courtly manner of
|
||
strutting, and bowing, and prating, to say the truth, I should have
|
||
been strongly tempted to laugh as much at them as the king and his
|
||
grandees did at me. Neither, indeed, could I forbear smiling at myself,
|
||
when the queen used to place me upon her hand towards a looking-glass,
|
||
by which both our persons appeared before me in full view together; and
|
||
there could be nothing more ridiculous than the comparison; so that I
|
||
really began to imagine myself dwindled many degrees below my usual
|
||
size.
|
||
|
||
Nothing angered and mortified me so much as the queen’s dwarf; who
|
||
being of the lowest stature that was ever in that country (for I verily
|
||
think he was not full thirty feet high), became so insolent at seeing a
|
||
creature so much beneath him, that he would always affect to swagger
|
||
and look big as he passed by me in the queen’s antechamber, while I was
|
||
standing on some table talking with the lords or ladies of the court,
|
||
and he seldom failed of a smart word or two upon my littleness; against
|
||
which I could only revenge myself by calling him brother, challenging
|
||
him to wrestle, and such repartees as are usually in the mouths of
|
||
court pages. One day, at dinner, this malicious little cub was so
|
||
nettled with something I had said to him, that, raising himself upon
|
||
the frame of her majesty’s chair, he took me up by the middle, as I was
|
||
sitting down, not thinking any harm, and let me drop into a large
|
||
silver bowl of cream, and then ran away as fast as he could. I fell
|
||
over head and ears, and, if I had not been a good swimmer, it might
|
||
have gone very hard with me; for Glumdalclitch in that instant happened
|
||
to be at the other end of the room, and the queen was in such a fright,
|
||
that she wanted presence of mind to assist me. But my little nurse ran
|
||
to my relief, and took me out, after I had swallowed above a quart of
|
||
cream. I was put to bed: however, I received no other damage than the
|
||
loss of a suit of clothes, which was utterly spoiled. The dwarf was
|
||
soundly whipt, and as a farther punishment, forced to drink up the bowl
|
||
of cream into which he had thrown me: neither was he ever restored to
|
||
favour; for soon after the queen bestowed him on a lady of high
|
||
quality, so that I saw him no more, to my very great satisfaction; for
|
||
I could not tell to what extremities such a malicious urchin might have
|
||
carried his resentment.
|
||
|
||
He had before served me a scurvy trick, which set the queen a-laughing,
|
||
although at the same time she was heartily vexed, and would have
|
||
immediately cashiered him, if I had not been so generous as to
|
||
intercede. Her majesty had taken a marrow-bone upon her plate, and,
|
||
after knocking out the marrow, placed the bone again in the dish erect,
|
||
as it stood before; the dwarf, watching his opportunity, while
|
||
Glumdalclitch was gone to the side-board, mounted the stool that she
|
||
stood on to take care of me at meals, took me up in both hands, and
|
||
squeezing my legs together, wedged them into the marrow bone above my
|
||
waist, where I stuck for some time, and made a very ridiculous figure.
|
||
I believe it was near a minute before any one knew what was become of
|
||
me; for I thought it below me to cry out. But, as princes seldom get
|
||
their meat hot, my legs were not scalded, only my stockings and
|
||
breeches in a sad condition. The dwarf, at my entreaty, had no other
|
||
punishment than a sound whipping.
|
||
|
||
I was frequently rallied by the queen upon account of my fearfulness;
|
||
and she used to ask me whether the people of my country were as great
|
||
cowards as myself? The occasion was this: the kingdom is much pestered
|
||
with flies in summer; and these odious insects, each of them as big as
|
||
a Dunstable lark, hardly gave me any rest while I sat at dinner, with
|
||
their continual humming and buzzing about mine ears. They would
|
||
sometimes alight upon my victuals, and leave their loathsome excrement,
|
||
or spawn behind, which to me was very visible, though not to the
|
||
natives of that country, whose large optics were not so acute as mine,
|
||
in viewing smaller objects. Sometimes they would fix upon my nose, or
|
||
forehead, where they stung me to the quick, smelling very offensively;
|
||
and I could easily trace that viscous matter, which, our naturalists
|
||
tell us, enables those creatures to walk with their feet upwards upon a
|
||
ceiling. I had much ado to defend myself against these detestable
|
||
animals, and could not forbear starting when they came on my face. It
|
||
was the common practice of the dwarf, to catch a number of these
|
||
insects in his hand, as schoolboys do among us, and let them out
|
||
suddenly under my nose, on purpose to frighten me, and divert the
|
||
queen. My remedy was to cut them in pieces with my knife, as they flew
|
||
in the air, wherein my dexterity was much admired.
|
||
|
||
I remember, one morning, when Glumdalclitch had set me in a box upon a
|
||
window, as she usually did in fair days to give me air (for I durst not
|
||
venture to let the box be hung on a nail out of the window, as we do
|
||
with cages in England), after I had lifted up one of my sashes, and sat
|
||
down at my table to eat a piece of sweet cake for my breakfast, above
|
||
twenty wasps, allured by the smell, came flying into the room, humming
|
||
louder than the drones of as many bagpipes. Some of them seized my
|
||
cake, and carried it piecemeal away; others flew about my head and
|
||
face, confounding me with the noise, and putting me in the utmost
|
||
terror of their stings. However, I had the courage to rise and draw my
|
||
hanger, and attack them in the air. I dispatched four of them, but the
|
||
rest got away, and I presently shut my window. These insects were as
|
||
large as partridges: I took out their stings, found them an inch and a
|
||
half long, and as sharp as needles. I carefully preserved them all; and
|
||
having since shown them, with some other curiosities, in several parts
|
||
of Europe, upon my return to England I gave three of them to Gresham
|
||
College, and kept the fourth for myself.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER IV.
|
||
|
||
The country described. A proposal for correcting modern maps. The
|
||
king’s palace; and some account of the metropolis. The author’s way of
|
||
travelling. The chief temple described.
|
||
|
||
|
||
I now intend to give the reader a short description of this country, as
|
||
far as I travelled in it, which was not above two thousand miles round
|
||
Lorbrulgrud, the metropolis. For the queen, whom I always attended,
|
||
never went farther when she accompanied the king in his progresses, and
|
||
there staid till his majesty returned from viewing his frontiers. The
|
||
whole extent of this prince’s dominions reaches about six thousand
|
||
miles in length, and from three to five in breadth: whence I cannot but
|
||
conclude, that our geographers of Europe are in a great error, by
|
||
supposing nothing but sea between Japan and California; for it was ever
|
||
my opinion, that there must be a balance of earth to counterpoise the
|
||
great continent of Tartary; and therefore they ought to correct their
|
||
maps and charts, by joining this vast tract of land to the north-west
|
||
parts of America, wherein I shall be ready to lend them my assistance.
|
||
|
||
The kingdom is a peninsula, terminated to the north-east by a ridge of
|
||
mountains thirty miles high, which are altogether impassable, by reason
|
||
of the volcanoes upon the tops: neither do the most learned know what
|
||
sort of mortals inhabit beyond those mountains, or whether they be
|
||
inhabited at all. On the three other sides, it is bounded by the ocean.
|
||
There is not one seaport in the whole kingdom: and those parts of the
|
||
coasts into which the rivers issue, are so full of pointed rocks, and
|
||
the sea generally so rough, that there is no venturing with the
|
||
smallest of their boats; so that these people are wholly excluded from
|
||
any commerce with the rest of the world. But the large rivers are full
|
||
of vessels, and abound with excellent fish; for they seldom get any
|
||
from the sea, because the sea fish are of the same size with those in
|
||
Europe, and consequently not worth catching; whereby it is manifest,
|
||
that nature, in the production of plants and animals of so
|
||
extraordinary a bulk, is wholly confined to this continent, of which I
|
||
leave the reasons to be determined by philosophers. However, now and
|
||
then they take a whale that happens to be dashed against the rocks,
|
||
which the common people feed on heartily. These whales I have known so
|
||
large, that a man could hardly carry one upon his shoulders; and
|
||
sometimes, for curiosity, they are brought in hampers to Lorbrulgrud; I
|
||
saw one of them in a dish at the king’s table, which passed for a
|
||
rarity, but I did not observe he was fond of it; for I think, indeed,
|
||
the bigness disgusted him, although I have seen one somewhat larger in
|
||
Greenland.
|
||
|
||
The country is well inhabited, for it contains fifty-one cities, near a
|
||
hundred walled towns, and a great number of villages. To satisfy my
|
||
curious reader, it may be sufficient to describe Lorbrulgrud. This city
|
||
stands upon almost two equal parts, on each side the river that passes
|
||
through. It contains above eighty thousand houses, and about six
|
||
hundred thousand inhabitants. It is in length three _glomglungs_ (which
|
||
make about fifty-four English miles,) and two and a half in breadth; as
|
||
I measured it myself in the royal map made by the king’s order, which
|
||
was laid on the ground on purpose for me, and extended a hundred feet:
|
||
I paced the diameter and circumference several times barefoot, and,
|
||
computing by the scale, measured it pretty exactly.
|
||
|
||
The king’s palace is no regular edifice, but a heap of buildings, about
|
||
seven miles round: the chief rooms are generally two hundred and forty
|
||
feet high, and broad and long in proportion. A coach was allowed to
|
||
Glumdalclitch and me, wherein her governess frequently took her out to
|
||
see the town, or go among the shops; and I was always of the party,
|
||
carried in my box; although the girl, at my own desire, would often
|
||
take me out, and hold me in her hand, that I might more conveniently
|
||
view the houses and the people, as we passed along the streets. I
|
||
reckoned our coach to be about a square of Westminster-hall, but not
|
||
altogether so high: however, I cannot be very exact. One day the
|
||
governess ordered our coachman to stop at several shops, where the
|
||
beggars, watching their opportunity, crowded to the sides of the coach,
|
||
and gave me the most horrible spectacle that ever a European eye
|
||
beheld. There was a woman with a cancer in her breast, swelled to a
|
||
monstrous size, full of holes, in two or three of which I could have
|
||
easily crept, and covered my whole body. There was a fellow with a wen
|
||
in his neck, larger than five wool-packs; and another, with a couple of
|
||
wooden legs, each about twenty feet high. But the most hateful sight of
|
||
all, was the lice crawling on their clothes. I could see distinctly the
|
||
limbs of these vermin with my naked eye, much better than those of a
|
||
European louse through a microscope, and their snouts with which they
|
||
rooted like swine. They were the first I had ever beheld, and I should
|
||
have been curious enough to dissect one of them, if I had had proper
|
||
instruments, which I unluckily left behind me in the ship, although,
|
||
indeed, the sight was so nauseous, that it perfectly turned my stomach.
|
||
|
||
Besides the large box in which I was usually carried, the queen ordered
|
||
a smaller one to be made for me, of about twelve feet square, and ten
|
||
high, for the convenience of travelling; because the other was somewhat
|
||
too large for Glumdalclitch’s lap, and cumbersome in the coach; it was
|
||
made by the same artist, whom I directed in the whole contrivance. This
|
||
travelling-closet was an exact square, with a window in the middle of
|
||
three of the squares, and each window was latticed with iron wire on
|
||
the outside, to prevent accidents in long journeys. On the fourth side,
|
||
which had no window, two strong staples were fixed, through which the
|
||
person that carried me, when I had a mind to be on horseback, put a
|
||
leathern belt, and buckled it about his waist. This was always the
|
||
office of some grave trusty servant, in whom I could confide, whether I
|
||
attended the king and queen in their progresses, or were disposed to
|
||
see the gardens, or pay a visit to some great lady or minister of state
|
||
in the court, when Glumdalclitch happened to be out of order; for I
|
||
soon began to be known and esteemed among the greatest officers, I
|
||
suppose more upon account of their majesties’ favour, than any merit of
|
||
my own. In journeys, when I was weary of the coach, a servant on
|
||
horseback would buckle on my box, and place it upon a cushion before
|
||
him; and there I had a full prospect of the country on three sides,
|
||
from my three windows. I had, in this closet, a field-bed and a
|
||
hammock, hung from the ceiling, two chairs and a table, neatly screwed
|
||
to the floor, to prevent being tossed about by the agitation of the
|
||
horse or the coach. And having been long used to sea-voyages, those
|
||
motions, although sometimes very violent, did not much discompose me.
|
||
|
||
Whenever I had a mind to see the town, it was always in my
|
||
travelling-closet; which Glumdalclitch held in her lap in a kind of
|
||
open sedan, after the fashion of the country, borne by four men, and
|
||
attended by two others in the queen’s livery. The people, who had often
|
||
heard of me, were very curious to crowd about the sedan, and the girl
|
||
was complaisant enough to make the bearers stop, and to take me in her
|
||
hand, that I might be more conveniently seen.
|
||
|
||
I was very desirous to see the chief temple, and particularly the tower
|
||
belonging to it, which is reckoned the highest in the kingdom.
|
||
Accordingly one day my nurse carried me thither, but I may truly say I
|
||
came back disappointed; for the height is not above three thousand
|
||
feet, reckoning from the ground to the highest pinnacle top; which,
|
||
allowing for the difference between the size of those people and us in
|
||
Europe, is no great matter for admiration, nor at all equal in
|
||
proportion (if I rightly remember) to Salisbury steeple. But, not to
|
||
detract from a nation, to which, during my life, I shall acknowledge
|
||
myself extremely obliged, it must be allowed, that whatever this famous
|
||
tower wants in height, is amply made up in beauty and strength: for the
|
||
walls are near a hundred feet thick, built of hewn stone, whereof each
|
||
is about forty feet square, and adorned on all sides with statues of
|
||
gods and emperors, cut in marble, larger than the life, placed in their
|
||
several niches. I measured a little finger which had fallen down from
|
||
one of these statues, and lay unperceived among some rubbish, and found
|
||
it exactly four feet and an inch in length. Glumdalclitch wrapped it up
|
||
in her handkerchief, and carried it home in her pocket, to keep among
|
||
other trinkets, of which the girl was very fond, as children at her age
|
||
usually are.
|
||
|
||
The king’s kitchen is indeed a noble building, vaulted at top, and
|
||
about six hundred feet high. The great oven is not so wide, by ten
|
||
paces, as the cupola at St. Paul’s: for I measured the latter on
|
||
purpose, after my return. But if I should describe the kitchen grate,
|
||
the prodigious pots and kettles, the joints of meat turning on the
|
||
spits, with many other particulars, perhaps I should be hardly
|
||
believed; at least a severe critic would be apt to think I enlarged a
|
||
little, as travellers are often suspected to do. To avoid which censure
|
||
I fear I have run too much into the other extreme; and that if this
|
||
treatise should happen to be translated into the language of
|
||
Brobdingnag (which is the general name of that kingdom,) and
|
||
transmitted thither, the king and his people would have reason to
|
||
complain that I had done them an injury, by a false and diminutive
|
||
representation.
|
||
|
||
His majesty seldom keeps above six hundred horses in his stables: they
|
||
are generally from fifty-four to sixty feet high. But, when he goes
|
||
abroad on solemn days, he is attended, for state, by a military guard
|
||
of five hundred horse, which, indeed, I thought was the most splendid
|
||
sight that could be ever beheld, till I saw part of his army in
|
||
battalia, whereof I shall find another occasion to speak.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER V.
|
||
|
||
Several adventures that happened to the author. The execution of a
|
||
criminal. The author shows his skill in navigation.
|
||
|
||
|
||
I should have lived happy enough in that country, if my littleness had
|
||
not exposed me to several ridiculous and troublesome accidents; some of
|
||
which I shall venture to relate. Glumdalclitch often carried me into
|
||
the gardens of the court in my smaller box, and would sometimes take me
|
||
out of it, and hold me in her hand, or set me down to walk. I remember,
|
||
before the dwarf left the queen, he followed us one day into those
|
||
gardens, and my nurse having set me down, he and I being close
|
||
together, near some dwarf apple trees, I must needs show my wit, by a
|
||
silly allusion between him and the trees, which happens to hold in
|
||
their language as it does in ours. Whereupon, the malicious rogue,
|
||
watching his opportunity, when I was walking under one of them, shook
|
||
it directly over my head, by which a dozen apples, each of them near as
|
||
large as a Bristol barrel, came tumbling about my ears; one of them hit
|
||
me on the back as I chanced to stoop, and knocked me down flat on my
|
||
face; but I received no other hurt, and the dwarf was pardoned at my
|
||
desire, because I had given the provocation.
|
||
|
||
Another day, Glumdalclitch left me on a smooth grass-plot to divert
|
||
myself, while she walked at some distance with her governess. In the
|
||
meantime, there suddenly fell such a violent shower of hail, that I was
|
||
immediately by the force of it, struck to the ground: and when I was
|
||
down, the hailstones gave me such cruel bangs all over the body, as if
|
||
I had been pelted with tennis-balls; however, I made a shift to creep
|
||
on all fours, and shelter myself, by lying flat on my face, on the
|
||
lee-side of a border of lemon-thyme, but so bruised from head to foot,
|
||
that I could not go abroad in ten days. Neither is this at all to be
|
||
wondered at, because nature, in that country, observing the same
|
||
proportion through all her operations, a hailstone is near eighteen
|
||
hundred times as large as one in Europe; which I can assert upon
|
||
experience, having been so curious as to weigh and measure them.
|
||
|
||
But a more dangerous accident happened to me in the same garden, when
|
||
my little nurse, believing she had put me in a secure place (which I
|
||
often entreated her to do, that I might enjoy my own thoughts,) and
|
||
having left my box at home, to avoid the trouble of carrying it, went
|
||
to another part of the garden with her governess and some ladies of her
|
||
acquaintance. While she was absent, and out of hearing, a small white
|
||
spaniel that belonged to one of the chief gardeners, having got by
|
||
accident into the garden, happened to range near the place where I lay:
|
||
the dog, following the scent, came directly up, and taking me in his
|
||
mouth, ran straight to his master wagging his tail, and set me gently
|
||
on the ground. By good fortune he had been so well taught, that I was
|
||
carried between his teeth without the least hurt, or even tearing my
|
||
clothes. But the poor gardener, who knew me well, and had a great
|
||
kindness for me, was in a terrible fright: he gently took me up in both
|
||
his hands, and asked me how I did? but I was so amazed and out of
|
||
breath, that I could not speak a word. In a few minutes I came to
|
||
myself, and he carried me safe to my little nurse, who, by this time,
|
||
had returned to the place where she left me, and was in cruel agonies
|
||
when I did not appear, nor answer when she called. She severely
|
||
reprimanded the gardener on account of his dog. But the thing was
|
||
hushed up, and never known at court, for the girl was afraid of the
|
||
queen’s anger; and truly, as to myself, I thought it would not be for
|
||
my reputation, that such a story should go about.
|
||
|
||
This accident absolutely determined Glumdalclitch never to trust me
|
||
abroad for the future out of her sight. I had been long afraid of this
|
||
resolution, and therefore concealed from her some little unlucky
|
||
adventures, that happened in those times when I was left by myself.
|
||
Once a kite, hovering over the garden, made a stoop at me, and if I had
|
||
not resolutely drawn my hanger, and run under a thick espalier, he
|
||
would have certainly carried me away in his talons. Another time,
|
||
walking to the top of a fresh mole-hill, I fell to my neck in the hole,
|
||
through which that animal had cast up the earth, and coined some lie,
|
||
not worth remembering, to excuse myself for spoiling my clothes. I
|
||
likewise broke my right shin against the shell of a snail, which I
|
||
happened to stumble over, as I was walking alone and thinking on poor
|
||
England.
|
||
|
||
I cannot tell whether I were more pleased or mortified to observe, in
|
||
those solitary walks, that the smaller birds did not appear to be at
|
||
all afraid of me, but would hop about within a yard’s distance, looking
|
||
for worms and other food, with as much indifference and security as if
|
||
no creature at all were near them. I remember, a thrush had the
|
||
confidence to snatch out of my hand, with his bill, a piece of cake
|
||
that Glumdalclitch had just given me for my breakfast. When I attempted
|
||
to catch any of these birds, they would boldly turn against me,
|
||
endeavouring to peck my fingers, which I durst not venture within their
|
||
reach; and then they would hop back unconcerned, to hunt for worms or
|
||
snails, as they did before. But one day, I took a thick cudgel, and
|
||
threw it with all my strength so luckily, at a linnet, that I knocked
|
||
him down, and seizing him by the neck with both my hands, ran with him
|
||
in triumph to my nurse. However, the bird, who had only been stunned,
|
||
recovering himself gave me so many boxes with his wings, on both sides
|
||
of my head and body, though I held him at arm’s length, and was out of
|
||
the reach of his claws, that I was twenty times thinking to let him go.
|
||
But I was soon relieved by one of our servants, who wrung off the
|
||
bird’s neck, and I had him next day for dinner, by the queen’s command.
|
||
This linnet, as near as I can remember, seemed to be somewhat larger
|
||
than an English swan.
|
||
|
||
The maids of honour often invited Glumdalclitch to their apartments,
|
||
and desired she would bring me along with her, on purpose to have the
|
||
pleasure of seeing and touching me. They would often strip me naked
|
||
from top to toe, and lay me at full length in their bosoms; wherewith I
|
||
was much disgusted because, to say the truth, a very offensive smell
|
||
came from their skins; which I do not mention, or intend, to the
|
||
disadvantage of those excellent ladies, for whom I have all manner of
|
||
respect; but I conceive that my sense was more acute in proportion to
|
||
my littleness, and that those illustrious persons were no more
|
||
disagreeable to their lovers, or to each other, than people of the same
|
||
quality are with us in England. And, after all, I found their natural
|
||
smell was much more supportable, than when they used perfumes, under
|
||
which I immediately swooned away. I cannot forget, that an intimate
|
||
friend of mine in Lilliput, took the freedom in a warm day, when I had
|
||
used a good deal of exercise, to complain of a strong smell about me,
|
||
although I am as little faulty that way, as most of my sex: but I
|
||
suppose his faculty of smelling was as nice with regard to me, as mine
|
||
was to that of this people. Upon this point, I cannot forbear doing
|
||
justice to the queen my mistress, and Glumdalclitch my nurse, whose
|
||
persons were as sweet as those of any lady in England.
|
||
|
||
That which gave me most uneasiness among these maids of honour (when my
|
||
nurse carried me to visit them) was, to see them use me without any
|
||
manner of ceremony, like a creature who had no sort of consequence: for
|
||
they would strip themselves to the skin, and put on their smocks in my
|
||
presence, while I was placed on their toilet, directly before their
|
||
naked bodies, which I am sure to me was very far from being a tempting
|
||
sight, or from giving me any other emotions than those of horror and
|
||
disgust: their skins appeared so coarse and uneven, so variously
|
||
coloured, when I saw them near, with a mole here and there as broad as
|
||
a trencher, and hairs hanging from it thicker than packthreads, to say
|
||
nothing farther concerning the rest of their persons. Neither did they
|
||
at all scruple, while I was by, to discharge what they had drank, to
|
||
the quantity of at least two hogsheads, in a vessel that held above
|
||
three tuns. The handsomest among these maids of honour, a pleasant,
|
||
frolicsome girl of sixteen, would sometimes set me astride upon one of
|
||
her nipples, with many other tricks, wherein the reader will excuse me
|
||
for not being over particular. But I was so much displeased, that I
|
||
entreated Glumdalclitch to contrive some excuse for not seeing that
|
||
young lady any more.
|
||
|
||
One day, a young gentleman, who was nephew to my nurse’s governess,
|
||
came and pressed them both to see an execution. It was of a man, who
|
||
had murdered one of that gentleman’s intimate acquaintance.
|
||
Glumdalclitch was prevailed on to be of the company, very much against
|
||
her inclination, for she was naturally tender-hearted: and, as for
|
||
myself, although I abhorred such kind of spectacles, yet my curiosity
|
||
tempted me to see something that I thought must be extraordinary. The
|
||
malefactor was fixed in a chair upon a scaffold erected for that
|
||
purpose, and his head cut off at one blow, with a sword of about forty
|
||
feet long. The veins and arteries spouted up such a prodigious quantity
|
||
of blood, and so high in the air, that the great _jet d’eau_ at
|
||
Versailles was not equal to it for the time it lasted: and the head,
|
||
when it fell on the scaffold floor, gave such a bounce as made me
|
||
start, although I was at least half an English mile distant.
|
||
|
||
The queen, who often used to hear me talk of my sea-voyages, and took
|
||
all occasions to divert me when I was melancholy, asked me whether I
|
||
understood how to handle a sail or an oar, and whether a little
|
||
exercise of rowing might not be convenient for my health? I answered,
|
||
that I understood both very well: for although my proper employment had
|
||
been to be surgeon or doctor to the ship, yet often, upon a pinch, I
|
||
was forced to work like a common mariner. But I could not see how this
|
||
could be done in their country, where the smallest wherry was equal to
|
||
a first-rate man of war among us; and such a boat as I could manage
|
||
would never live in any of their rivers. Her majesty said, if I would
|
||
contrive a boat, her own joiner should make it, and she would provide a
|
||
place for me to sail in. The fellow was an ingenious workman, and by my
|
||
instructions, in ten days, finished a pleasure-boat with all its
|
||
tackling, able conveniently to hold eight Europeans. When it was
|
||
finished, the queen was so delighted, that she ran with it in her lap
|
||
to the king, who ordered it to be put into a cistern full of water,
|
||
with me in it, by way of trial, where I could not manage my two sculls,
|
||
or little oars, for want of room. But the queen had before contrived
|
||
another project. She ordered the joiner to make a wooden trough of
|
||
three hundred feet long, fifty broad, and eight deep; which, being well
|
||
pitched, to prevent leaking, was placed on the floor, along the wall,
|
||
in an outer room of the palace. It had a cock near the bottom to let
|
||
out the water, when it began to grow stale; and two servants could
|
||
easily fill it in half an hour. Here I often used to row for my own
|
||
diversion, as well as that of the queen and her ladies, who thought
|
||
themselves well entertained with my skill and agility. Sometimes I
|
||
would put up my sail, and then my business was only to steer, while the
|
||
ladies gave me a gale with their fans; and, when they were weary, some
|
||
of their pages would blow my sail forward with their breath, while I
|
||
showed my art by steering starboard or larboard as I pleased. When I
|
||
had done, Glumdalclitch always carried back my boat into her closet,
|
||
and hung it on a nail to dry.
|
||
|
||
In this exercise I once met an accident, which had like to have cost me
|
||
my life; for, one of the pages having put my boat into the trough, the
|
||
governess who attended Glumdalclitch very officiously lifted me up, to
|
||
place me in the boat: but I happened to slip through her fingers, and
|
||
should infallibly have fallen down forty feet upon the floor, if, by
|
||
the luckiest chance in the world, I had not been stopped by a
|
||
corking-pin that stuck in the good gentlewoman’s stomacher; the head of
|
||
the pin passing between my shirt and the waistband of my breeches, and
|
||
thus I was held by the middle in the air, till Glumdalclitch ran to my
|
||
relief.
|
||
|
||
Another time, one of the servants, whose office it was to fill my
|
||
trough every third day with fresh water, was so careless as to let a
|
||
huge frog (not perceiving it) slip out of his pail. The frog lay
|
||
concealed till I was put into my boat, but then, seeing a
|
||
resting-place, climbed up, and made it lean so much on one side, that I
|
||
was forced to balance it with all my weight on the other, to prevent
|
||
overturning. When the frog was got in, it hopped at once half the
|
||
length of the boat, and then over my head, backward and forward,
|
||
daubing my face and clothes with its odious slime. The largeness of its
|
||
features made it appear the most deformed animal that can be conceived.
|
||
However, I desired Glumdalclitch to let me deal with it alone. I banged
|
||
it a good while with one of my sculls, and at last forced it to leap
|
||
out of the boat.
|
||
|
||
But the greatest danger I ever underwent in that kingdom, was from a
|
||
monkey, who belonged to one of the clerks of the kitchen. Glumdalclitch
|
||
had locked me up in her closet, while she went somewhere upon business,
|
||
or a visit. The weather being very warm, the closet-window was left
|
||
open, as well as the windows and the door of my bigger box, in which I
|
||
usually lived, because of its largeness and conveniency. As I sat
|
||
quietly meditating at my table, I heard something bounce in at the
|
||
closet-window, and skip about from one side to the other: whereat,
|
||
although I was much alarmed, yet I ventured to look out, but not
|
||
stirring from my seat; and then I saw this frolicsome animal frisking
|
||
and leaping up and down, till at last he came to my box, which he
|
||
seemed to view with great pleasure and curiosity, peeping in at the
|
||
door and every window. I retreated to the farther corner of my room; or
|
||
box; but the monkey looking in at every side, put me in such a fright,
|
||
that I wanted presence of mind to conceal myself under the bed, as I
|
||
might easily have done. After some time spent in peeping, grinning, and
|
||
chattering, he at last espied me; and reaching one of his paws in at
|
||
the door, as a cat does when she plays with a mouse, although I often
|
||
shifted place to avoid him, he at length seized the lappet of my coat
|
||
(which being made of that country silk, was very thick and strong), and
|
||
dragged me out. He took me up in his right fore-foot and held me as a
|
||
nurse does a child she is going to suckle, just as I have seen the same
|
||
sort of creature do with a kitten in Europe; and when I offered to
|
||
struggle he squeezed me so hard, that I thought it more prudent to
|
||
submit. I have good reason to believe, that he took me for a young one
|
||
of his own species, by his often stroking my face very gently with his
|
||
other paw. In these diversions he was interrupted by a noise at the
|
||
closet door, as if somebody were opening it: whereupon he suddenly
|
||
leaped up to the window at which he had come in, and thence upon the
|
||
leads and gutters, walking upon three legs, and holding me in the
|
||
fourth, till he clambered up to a roof that was next to ours. I heard
|
||
Glumdalclitch give a shriek at the moment he was carrying me out. The
|
||
poor girl was almost distracted: that quarter of the palace was all in
|
||
an uproar; the servants ran for ladders; the monkey was seen by
|
||
hundreds in the court, sitting upon the ridge of a building, holding me
|
||
like a baby in one of his forepaws, and feeding me with the other, by
|
||
cramming into my mouth some victuals he had squeezed out of the bag on
|
||
one side of his chaps, and patting me when I would not eat; whereat
|
||
many of the rabble below could not forbear laughing; neither do I think
|
||
they justly ought to be blamed, for, without question, the sight was
|
||
ridiculous enough to every body but myself. Some of the people threw up
|
||
stones, hoping to drive the monkey down; but this was strictly
|
||
forbidden, or else, very probably, my brains had been dashed out.
|
||
|
||
The ladders were now applied, and mounted by several men; which the
|
||
monkey observing, and finding himself almost encompassed, not being
|
||
able to make speed enough with his three legs, let me drop on a ridge
|
||
tile, and made his escape. Here I sat for some time, five hundred yards
|
||
from the ground, expecting every moment to be blown down by the wind,
|
||
or to fall by my own giddiness, and come tumbling over and over from
|
||
the ridge to the eaves; but an honest lad, one of my nurse’s footmen,
|
||
climbed up, and putting me into his breeches pocket, brought me down
|
||
safe.
|
||
|
||
I was almost choked with the filthy stuff the monkey had crammed down
|
||
my throat: but my dear little nurse picked it out of my mouth with a
|
||
small needle, and then I fell a-vomiting, which gave me great relief.
|
||
Yet I was so weak and bruised in the sides with the squeezes given me
|
||
by this odious animal, that I was forced to keep my bed a fortnight.
|
||
The king, queen, and all the court, sent every day to inquire after my
|
||
health; and her majesty made me several visits during my sickness. The
|
||
monkey was killed, and an order made, that no such animal should be
|
||
kept about the palace.
|
||
|
||
When I attended the king after my recovery, to return him thanks for
|
||
his favours, he was pleased to rally me a good deal upon this
|
||
adventure. He asked me, “what my thoughts and speculations were, while
|
||
I lay in the monkey’s paw; how I liked the victuals he gave me; his
|
||
manner of feeding; and whether the fresh air on the roof had sharpened
|
||
my stomach.” He desired to know, “what I would have done upon such an
|
||
occasion in my own country.” I told his majesty, “that in Europe we had
|
||
no monkeys, except such as were brought for curiosity from other
|
||
places, and so small, that I could deal with a dozen of them together,
|
||
if they presumed to attack me. And as for that monstrous animal with
|
||
whom I was so lately engaged (it was indeed as large as an elephant),
|
||
if my fears had suffered me to think so far as to make use of my
|
||
hanger,” (looking fiercely, and clapping my hand on the hilt, as I
|
||
spoke) “when he poked his paw into my chamber, perhaps I should have
|
||
given him such a wound, as would have made him glad to withdraw it with
|
||
more haste than he put it in.” This I delivered in a firm tone, like a
|
||
person who was jealous lest his courage should be called in question.
|
||
However, my speech produced nothing else beside a loud laughter, which
|
||
all the respect due to his majesty from those about him could not make
|
||
them contain. This made me reflect, how vain an attempt it is for a man
|
||
to endeavour to do himself honour among those who are out of all degree
|
||
of equality or comparison with him. And yet I have seen the moral of my
|
||
own behaviour very frequent in England since my return; where a little
|
||
contemptible varlet, without the least title to birth, person, wit, or
|
||
common sense, shall presume to look with importance, and put himself
|
||
upon a foot with the greatest persons of the kingdom.
|
||
|
||
I was every day furnishing the court with some ridiculous story: and
|
||
Glumdalclitch, although she loved me to excess, yet was arch enough to
|
||
inform the queen, whenever I committed any folly that she thought would
|
||
be diverting to her majesty. The girl, who had been out of order, was
|
||
carried by her governess to take the air about an hour’s distance, or
|
||
thirty miles from town. They alighted out of the coach near a small
|
||
foot-path in a field, and Glumdalclitch setting down my travelling box,
|
||
I went out of it to walk. There was a cow-dung in the path, and I must
|
||
need try my activity by attempting to leap over it. I took a run, but
|
||
unfortunately jumped short, and found myself just in the middle up to
|
||
my knees. I waded through with some difficulty, and one of the footmen
|
||
wiped me as clean as he could with his handkerchief, for I was filthily
|
||
bemired; and my nurse confined me to my box, till we returned home;
|
||
where the queen was soon informed of what had passed, and the footmen
|
||
spread it about the court: so that all the mirth for some days was at
|
||
my expense.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VI.
|
||
|
||
Several contrivances of the author to please the king and queen. He
|
||
shows his skill in music. The king inquires into the state of England,
|
||
which the author relates to him. The king’s observations thereon.
|
||
|
||
|
||
I used to attend the king’s levee once or twice a week, and had often
|
||
seen him under the barber’s hand, which indeed was at first very
|
||
terrible to behold; for the razor was almost twice as long as an
|
||
ordinary scythe. His majesty, according to the custom of the country,
|
||
was only shaved twice a week. I once prevailed on the barber to give me
|
||
some of the suds or lather, out of which I picked forty or fifty of the
|
||
strongest stumps of hair. I then took a piece of fine wood, and cut it
|
||
like the back of a comb, making several holes in it at equal distances
|
||
with as small a needle as I could get from Glumdalclitch. I fixed in
|
||
the stumps so artificially, scraping and sloping them with my knife
|
||
toward the points, that I made a very tolerable comb; which was a
|
||
seasonable supply, my own being so much broken in the teeth, that it
|
||
was almost useless: neither did I know any artist in that country so
|
||
nice and exact, as would undertake to make me another.
|
||
|
||
And this puts me in mind of an amusement, wherein I spent many of my
|
||
leisure hours. I desired the queen’s woman to save for me the combings
|
||
of her majesty’s hair, whereof in time I got a good quantity; and
|
||
consulting with my friend the cabinet-maker, who had received general
|
||
orders to do little jobs for me, I directed him to make two
|
||
chair-frames, no larger than those I had in my box, and to bore little
|
||
holes with a fine awl, round those parts where I designed the backs and
|
||
seats; through these holes I wove the strongest hairs I could pick out,
|
||
just after the manner of cane chairs in England. When they were
|
||
finished, I made a present of them to her majesty; who kept them in her
|
||
cabinet, and used to show them for curiosities, as indeed they were the
|
||
wonder of every one that beheld them. The queen would have me sit upon
|
||
one of these chairs, but I absolutely refused to obey her, protesting I
|
||
would rather die than place a dishonourable part of my body on those
|
||
precious hairs, that once adorned her majesty’s head. Of these hairs
|
||
(as I had always a mechanical genius) I likewise made a neat little
|
||
purse, about five feet long, with her majesty’s name deciphered in gold
|
||
letters, which I gave to Glumdalclitch, by the queen’s consent. To say
|
||
the truth, it was more for show than use, being not of strength to bear
|
||
the weight of the larger coins, and therefore she kept nothing in it
|
||
but some little toys that girls are fond of.
|
||
|
||
The king, who delighted in music, had frequent concerts at court, to
|
||
which I was sometimes carried, and set in my box on a table to hear
|
||
them: but the noise was so great that I could hardly distinguish the
|
||
tunes. I am confident that all the drums and trumpets of a royal army,
|
||
beating and sounding together just at your ears, could not equal it. My
|
||
practice was to have my box removed from the place where the performers
|
||
sat, as far as I could, then to shut the doors and windows of it, and
|
||
draw the window curtains; after which I found their music not
|
||
disagreeable.
|
||
|
||
I had learned in my youth to play a little upon the spinet.
|
||
Glumdalclitch kept one in her chamber, and a master attended twice a
|
||
week to teach her: I called it a spinet, because it somewhat resembled
|
||
that instrument, and was played upon in the same manner. A fancy came
|
||
into my head, that I would entertain the king and queen with an English
|
||
tune upon this instrument. But this appeared extremely difficult: for
|
||
the spinet was near sixty feet long, each key being almost a foot wide,
|
||
so that with my arms extended I could not reach to above five keys, and
|
||
to press them down required a good smart stroke with my fist, which
|
||
would be too great a labour, and to no purpose. The method I contrived
|
||
was this: I prepared two round sticks, about the bigness of common
|
||
cudgels; they were thicker at one end than the other, and I covered the
|
||
thicker ends with pieces of a mouse’s skin, that by rapping on them I
|
||
might neither damage the tops of the keys nor interrupt the sound.
|
||
Before the spinet a bench was placed, about four feet below the keys,
|
||
and I was put upon the bench. I ran sideling upon it, that way and
|
||
this, as fast as I could, banging the proper keys with my two sticks,
|
||
and made a shift to play a jig, to the great satisfaction of both their
|
||
majesties; but it was the most violent exercise I ever underwent; and
|
||
yet I could not strike above sixteen keys, nor consequently play the
|
||
bass and treble together, as other artists do; which was a great
|
||
disadvantage to my performance.
|
||
|
||
The king, who, as I before observed, was a prince of excellent
|
||
understanding, would frequently order that I should be brought in my
|
||
box, and set upon the table in his closet: he would then command me to
|
||
bring one of my chairs out of the box, and sit down within three yards
|
||
distance upon the top of the cabinet, which brought me almost to a
|
||
level with his face. In this manner I had several conversations with
|
||
him. I one day took the freedom to tell his majesty, “that the contempt
|
||
he discovered towards Europe, and the rest of the world, did not seem
|
||
answerable to those excellent qualities of mind that he was master of;
|
||
that reason did not extend itself with the bulk of the body; on the
|
||
contrary, we observed in our country, that the tallest persons were
|
||
usually the least provided with it; that among other animals, bees and
|
||
ants had the reputation of more industry, art, and sagacity, than many
|
||
of the larger kinds; and that, as inconsiderable as he took me to be, I
|
||
hoped I might live to do his majesty some signal service.” The king
|
||
heard me with attention, and began to conceive a much better opinion of
|
||
me than he had ever before. He desired “I would give him as exact an
|
||
account of the government of England as I possibly could; because, as
|
||
fond as princes commonly are of their own customs (for so he
|
||
conjectured of other monarchs, by my former discourses), he should be
|
||
glad to hear of any thing that might deserve imitation.”
|
||
|
||
Imagine with thyself, courteous reader, how often I then wished for the
|
||
tongue of Demosthenes or Cicero, that might have enabled me to
|
||
celebrate the praise of my own dear native country in a style equal to
|
||
its merits and felicity.
|
||
|
||
I began my discourse by informing his majesty, that our dominions
|
||
consisted of two islands, which composed three mighty kingdoms, under
|
||
one sovereign, beside our plantations in America. I dwelt long upon the
|
||
fertility of our soil, and the temperature of our climate. I then spoke
|
||
at large upon the constitution of an English parliament; partly made up
|
||
of an illustrious body called the House of Peers; persons of the
|
||
noblest blood, and of the most ancient and ample patrimonies. I
|
||
described that extraordinary care always taken of their education in
|
||
arts and arms, to qualify them for being counsellors both to the king
|
||
and kingdom; to have a share in the legislature; to be members of the
|
||
highest court of judicature, whence there can be no appeal; and to be
|
||
champions always ready for the defence of their prince and country, by
|
||
their valour, conduct, and fidelity. That these were the ornament and
|
||
bulwark of the kingdom, worthy followers of their most renowned
|
||
ancestors, whose honour had been the reward of their virtue, from which
|
||
their posterity were never once known to degenerate. To these were
|
||
joined several holy persons, as part of that assembly, under the title
|
||
of bishops, whose peculiar business is to take care of religion, and of
|
||
those who instruct the people therein. These were searched and sought
|
||
out through the whole nation, by the prince and his wisest counsellors,
|
||
among such of the priesthood as were most deservedly distinguished by
|
||
the sanctity of their lives, and the depth of their erudition; who were
|
||
indeed the spiritual fathers of the clergy and the people.
|
||
|
||
That the other part of the parliament consisted of an assembly called
|
||
the House of Commons, who were all principal gentlemen, freely picked
|
||
and culled out by the people themselves, for their great abilities and
|
||
love of their country, to represent the wisdom of the whole nation. And
|
||
that these two bodies made up the most august assembly in Europe; to
|
||
whom, in conjunction with the prince, the whole legislature is
|
||
committed.
|
||
|
||
I then descended to the courts of justice; over which the judges, those
|
||
venerable sages and interpreters of the law, presided, for determining
|
||
the disputed rights and properties of men, as well as for the
|
||
punishment of vice and protection of innocence. I mentioned the prudent
|
||
management of our treasury; the valour and achievements of our forces,
|
||
by sea and land. I computed the number of our people, by reckoning how
|
||
many millions there might be of each religious sect, or political party
|
||
among us. I did not omit even our sports and pastimes, or any other
|
||
particular which I thought might redound to the honour of my country.
|
||
And I finished all with a brief historical account of affairs and
|
||
events in England for about a hundred years past.
|
||
|
||
This conversation was not ended under five audiences, each of several
|
||
hours; and the king heard the whole with great attention, frequently
|
||
taking notes of what I spoke, as well as memorandums of what questions
|
||
he intended to ask me.
|
||
|
||
When I had put an end to these long discourses, his majesty, in a sixth
|
||
audience, consulting his notes, proposed many doubts, queries, and
|
||
objections, upon every article. He asked, “What methods were used to
|
||
cultivate the minds and bodies of our young nobility, and in what kind
|
||
of business they commonly spent the first and teachable parts of their
|
||
lives? What course was taken to supply that assembly, when any noble
|
||
family became extinct? What qualifications were necessary in those who
|
||
are to be created new lords: whether the humour of the prince, a sum of
|
||
money to a court lady, or a design of strengthening a party opposite to
|
||
the public interest, ever happened to be the motive in those
|
||
advancements? What share of knowledge these lords had in the laws of
|
||
their country, and how they came by it, so as to enable them to decide
|
||
the properties of their fellow-subjects in the last resort? Whether
|
||
they were always so free from avarice, partialities, or want, that a
|
||
bribe, or some other sinister view, could have no place among them?
|
||
Whether those holy lords I spoke of were always promoted to that rank
|
||
upon account of their knowledge in religious matters, and the sanctity
|
||
of their lives; had never been compliers with the times, while they
|
||
were common priests; or slavish prostitute chaplains to some nobleman,
|
||
whose opinions they continued servilely to follow, after they were
|
||
admitted into that assembly?”
|
||
|
||
He then desired to know, “What arts were practised in electing those
|
||
whom I called commoners: whether a stranger, with a strong purse, might
|
||
not influence the vulgar voters to choose him before their own
|
||
landlord, or the most considerable gentleman in the neighbourhood? How
|
||
it came to pass, that people were so violently bent upon getting into
|
||
this assembly, which I allowed to be a great trouble and expense, often
|
||
to the ruin of their families, without any salary or pension? because
|
||
this appeared such an exalted strain of virtue and public spirit, that
|
||
his majesty seemed to doubt it might possibly not be always sincere.”
|
||
And he desired to know, “Whether such zealous gentlemen could have any
|
||
views of refunding themselves for the charges and trouble they were at
|
||
by sacrificing the public good to the designs of a weak and vicious
|
||
prince, in conjunction with a corrupted ministry?” He multiplied his
|
||
questions, and sifted me thoroughly upon every part of this head,
|
||
proposing numberless inquiries and objections, which I think it not
|
||
prudent or convenient to repeat.
|
||
|
||
Upon what I said in relation to our courts of justice, his majesty
|
||
desired to be satisfied in several points: and this I was the better
|
||
able to do, having been formerly almost ruined by a long suit in
|
||
chancery, which was decreed for me with costs. He asked, “What time was
|
||
usually spent in determining between right and wrong, and what degree
|
||
of expense? Whether advocates and orators had liberty to plead in
|
||
causes manifestly known to be unjust, vexatious, or oppressive? Whether
|
||
party, in religion or politics, were observed to be of any weight in
|
||
the scale of justice? Whether those pleading orators were persons
|
||
educated in the general knowledge of equity, or only in provincial,
|
||
national, and other local customs? Whether they or their judges had any
|
||
part in penning those laws, which they assumed the liberty of
|
||
interpreting, and glossing upon at their pleasure? Whether they had
|
||
ever, at different times, pleaded for and against the same cause, and
|
||
cited precedents to prove contrary opinions? Whether they were a rich
|
||
or a poor corporation? Whether they received any pecuniary reward for
|
||
pleading, or delivering their opinions? And particularly, whether they
|
||
were ever admitted as members in the lower senate?”
|
||
|
||
He fell next upon the management of our treasury; and said, “he thought
|
||
my memory had failed me, because I computed our taxes at about five or
|
||
six millions a year, and when I came to mention the issues, he found
|
||
they sometimes amounted to more than double; for the notes he had taken
|
||
were very particular in this point, because he hoped, as he told me,
|
||
that the knowledge of our conduct might be useful to him, and he could
|
||
not be deceived in his calculations. But, if what I told him were true,
|
||
he was still at a loss how a kingdom could run out of its estate, like
|
||
a private person.” He asked me, “who were our creditors; and where we
|
||
found money to pay them?” He wondered to hear me talk of such
|
||
chargeable and expensive wars; “that certainly we must be a quarrelsome
|
||
people, or live among very bad neighbours, and that our generals must
|
||
needs be richer than our kings.” He asked, what business we had out of
|
||
our own islands, unless upon the score of trade, or treaty, or to
|
||
defend the coasts with our fleet?” Above all, he was amazed to hear me
|
||
talk of a mercenary standing army, in the midst of peace, and among a
|
||
free people. He said, “if we were governed by our own consent, in the
|
||
persons of our representatives, he could not imagine of whom we were
|
||
afraid, or against whom we were to fight; and would hear my opinion,
|
||
whether a private man’s house might not be better defended by himself,
|
||
his children, and family, than by half-a-dozen rascals, picked up at a
|
||
venture in the streets for small wages, who might get a hundred times
|
||
more by cutting their throats?”
|
||
|
||
He laughed at my “odd kind of arithmetic,” as he was pleased to call
|
||
it, “in reckoning the numbers of our people, by a computation drawn
|
||
from the several sects among us, in religion and politics.” He said,
|
||
“he knew no reason why those, who entertain opinions prejudicial to the
|
||
public, should be obliged to change, or should not be obliged to
|
||
conceal them. And as it was tyranny in any government to require the
|
||
first, so it was weakness not to enforce the second: for a man may be
|
||
allowed to keep poisons in his closet, but not to vend them about for
|
||
cordials.”
|
||
|
||
He observed, “that among the diversions of our nobility and gentry, I
|
||
had mentioned gaming: he desired to know at what age this entertainment
|
||
was usually taken up, and when it was laid down; how much of their time
|
||
it employed; whether it ever went so high as to affect their fortunes;
|
||
whether mean, vicious people, by their dexterity in that art, might not
|
||
arrive at great riches, and sometimes keep our very nobles in
|
||
dependence, as well as habituate them to vile companions, wholly take
|
||
them from the improvement of their minds, and force them, by the losses
|
||
they received, to learn and practise that infamous dexterity upon
|
||
others?”
|
||
|
||
He was perfectly astonished with the historical account I gave him of
|
||
our affairs during the last century; protesting “it was only a heap of
|
||
conspiracies, rebellions, murders, massacres, revolutions, banishments,
|
||
the very worst effects that avarice, faction, hypocrisy,
|
||
perfidiousness, cruelty, rage, madness, hatred, envy, lust, malice, and
|
||
ambition, could produce.”
|
||
|
||
His majesty, in another audience, was at the pains to recapitulate the
|
||
sum of all I had spoken; compared the questions he made with the
|
||
answers I had given; then taking me into his hands, and stroking me
|
||
gently, delivered himself in these words, which I shall never forget,
|
||
nor the manner he spoke them in: “My little friend Grildrig, you have
|
||
made a most admirable panegyric upon your country; you have clearly
|
||
proved, that ignorance, idleness, and vice, are the proper ingredients
|
||
for qualifying a legislator; that laws are best explained, interpreted,
|
||
and applied, by those whose interest and abilities lie in perverting,
|
||
confounding, and eluding them. I observe among you some lines of an
|
||
institution, which, in its original, might have been tolerable, but
|
||
these half erased, and the rest wholly blurred and blotted by
|
||
corruptions. It does not appear, from all you have said, how any one
|
||
perfection is required toward the procurement of any one station among
|
||
you; much less, that men are ennobled on account of their virtue; that
|
||
priests are advanced for their piety or learning; soldiers, for their
|
||
conduct or valour; judges, for their integrity; senators, for the love
|
||
of their country; or counsellors for their wisdom. As for yourself,”
|
||
continued the king, “who have spent the greatest part of your life in
|
||
travelling, I am well disposed to hope you may hitherto have escaped
|
||
many vices of your country. But by what I have gathered from your own
|
||
relation, and the answers I have with much pains wrung and extorted
|
||
from you, I cannot but conclude the bulk of your natives to be the most
|
||
pernicious race of little odious vermin that nature ever suffered to
|
||
crawl upon the surface of the earth.”
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VII.
|
||
|
||
The author’s love of his country. He makes a proposal of much advantage
|
||
to the king, which is rejected. The king’s great ignorance in politics.
|
||
The learning of that country very imperfect and confined. The laws, and
|
||
military affairs, and parties in the state.
|
||
|
||
|
||
Nothing but an extreme love of truth could have hindered me from
|
||
concealing this part of my story. It was in vain to discover my
|
||
resentments, which were always turned into ridicule; and I was forced
|
||
to rest with patience, while my noble and beloved country was so
|
||
injuriously treated. I am as heartily sorry as any of my readers can
|
||
possibly be, that such an occasion was given: but this prince happened
|
||
to be so curious and inquisitive upon every particular, that it could
|
||
not consist either with gratitude or good manners, to refuse giving him
|
||
what satisfaction I was able. Yet thus much I may be allowed to say in
|
||
my own vindication, that I artfully eluded many of his questions, and
|
||
gave to every point a more favourable turn, by many degrees, than the
|
||
strictness of truth would allow. For I have always borne that laudable
|
||
partiality to my own country, which Dionysius Halicarnassensis, with so
|
||
much justice, recommends to an historian: I would hide the frailties
|
||
and deformities of my political mother, and place her virtues and
|
||
beauties in the most advantageous light. This was my sincere endeavour
|
||
in those many discourses I had with that monarch, although it
|
||
unfortunately failed of success.
|
||
|
||
But great allowances should be given to a king, who lives wholly
|
||
secluded from the rest of the world, and must therefore be altogether
|
||
unacquainted with the manners and customs that most prevail in other
|
||
nations: the want of which knowledge will ever produce many prejudices,
|
||
and a certain narrowness of thinking, from which we, and the politer
|
||
countries of Europe, are wholly exempted. And it would be hard indeed,
|
||
if so remote a prince’s notions of virtue and vice were to be offered
|
||
as a standard for all mankind.
|
||
|
||
To confirm what I have now said, and further to show the miserable
|
||
effects of a confined education, I shall here insert a passage, which
|
||
will hardly obtain belief. In hopes to ingratiate myself further into
|
||
his majesty’s favour, I told him of “an invention, discovered between
|
||
three and four hundred years ago, to make a certain powder, into a heap
|
||
of which, the smallest spark of fire falling, would kindle the whole in
|
||
a moment, although it were as big as a mountain, and make it all fly up
|
||
in the air together, with a noise and agitation greater than thunder.
|
||
That a proper quantity of this powder rammed into a hollow tube of
|
||
brass or iron, according to its bigness, would drive a ball of iron or
|
||
lead, with such violence and speed, as nothing was able to sustain its
|
||
force. That the largest balls thus discharged, would not only destroy
|
||
whole ranks of an army at once, but batter the strongest walls to the
|
||
ground, sink down ships, with a thousand men in each, to the bottom of
|
||
the sea, and when linked together by a chain, would cut through masts
|
||
and rigging, divide hundreds of bodies in the middle, and lay all waste
|
||
before them. That we often put this powder into large hollow balls of
|
||
iron, and discharged them by an engine into some city we were
|
||
besieging, which would rip up the pavements, tear the houses to pieces,
|
||
burst and throw splinters on every side, dashing out the brains of all
|
||
who came near. That I knew the ingredients very well, which were cheap
|
||
and common; I understood the manner of compounding them, and could
|
||
direct his workmen how to make those tubes, of a size proportionable to
|
||
all other things in his majesty’s kingdom, and the largest need not be
|
||
above a hundred feet long; twenty or thirty of which tubes, charged
|
||
with the proper quantity of powder and balls, would batter down the
|
||
walls of the strongest town in his dominions in a few hours, or destroy
|
||
the whole metropolis, if ever it should pretend to dispute his absolute
|
||
commands.” This I humbly offered to his majesty, as a small tribute of
|
||
acknowledgment, in turn for so many marks that I had received, of his
|
||
royal favour and protection.
|
||
|
||
The king was struck with horror at the description I had given of those
|
||
terrible engines, and the proposal I had made. “He was amazed, how so
|
||
impotent and grovelling an insect as I” (these were his expressions)
|
||
“could entertain such inhuman ideas, and in so familiar a manner, as to
|
||
appear wholly unmoved at all the scenes of blood and desolation which I
|
||
had painted as the common effects of those destructive machines;
|
||
whereof,” he said, “some evil genius, enemy to mankind, must have been
|
||
the first contriver. As for himself, he protested, that although few
|
||
things delighted him so much as new discoveries in art or in nature,
|
||
yet he would rather lose half his kingdom, than be privy to such a
|
||
secret; which he commanded me, as I valued any life, never to mention
|
||
any more.”
|
||
|
||
A strange effect of narrow principles and views! that a prince
|
||
possessed of every quality which procures veneration, love, and esteem;
|
||
of strong parts, great wisdom, and profound learning, endowed with
|
||
admirable talents, and almost adored by his subjects, should, from a
|
||
nice, unnecessary scruple, whereof in Europe we can have no conception,
|
||
let slip an opportunity put into his hands that would have made him
|
||
absolute master of the lives, the liberties, and the fortunes of his
|
||
people! Neither do I say this, with the least intention to detract from
|
||
the many virtues of that excellent king, whose character, I am
|
||
sensible, will, on this account, be very much lessened in the opinion
|
||
of an English reader: but I take this defect among them to have risen
|
||
from their ignorance, by not having hitherto reduced politics into a
|
||
science, as the more acute wits of Europe have done. For, I remember
|
||
very well, in a discourse one day with the king, when I happened to
|
||
say, “there were several thousand books among us written upon the art
|
||
of government,” it gave him (directly contrary to my intention) a very
|
||
mean opinion of our understandings. He professed both to abominate and
|
||
despise all mystery, refinement, and intrigue, either in a prince or a
|
||
minister. He could not tell what I meant by secrets of state, where an
|
||
enemy, or some rival nation, were not in the case. He confined the
|
||
knowledge of governing within very narrow bounds, to common sense and
|
||
reason, to justice and lenity, to the speedy determination of civil and
|
||
criminal causes; with some other obvious topics, which are not worth
|
||
considering. And he gave it for his opinion, “that whoever could make
|
||
two ears of corn, or two blades of grass, to grow upon a spot of ground
|
||
where only one grew before, would deserve better of mankind, and do
|
||
more essential service to his country, than the whole race of
|
||
politicians put together.”
|
||
|
||
The learning of this people is very defective, consisting only in
|
||
morality, history, poetry, and mathematics, wherein they must be
|
||
allowed to excel. But the last of these is wholly applied to what may
|
||
be useful in life, to the improvement of agriculture, and all
|
||
mechanical arts; so that among us, it would be little esteemed. And as
|
||
to ideas, entities, abstractions, and transcendentals, I could never
|
||
drive the least conception into their heads.
|
||
|
||
No law in that country must exceed in words the number of letters in
|
||
their alphabet, which consists only of two and twenty. But indeed few
|
||
of them extend even to that length. They are expressed in the most
|
||
plain and simple terms, wherein those people are not mercurial enough
|
||
to discover above one interpretation: and to write a comment upon any
|
||
law, is a capital crime. As to the decision of civil causes, or
|
||
proceedings against criminals, their precedents are so few, that they
|
||
have little reason to boast of any extraordinary skill in either.
|
||
|
||
They have had the art of printing, as well as the Chinese, time out of
|
||
mind: but their libraries are not very large; for that of the king,
|
||
which is reckoned the largest, does not amount to above a thousand
|
||
volumes, placed in a gallery of twelve hundred feet long, whence I had
|
||
liberty to borrow what books I pleased. The queen’s joiner had
|
||
contrived in one of Glumdalclitch’s rooms, a kind of wooden machine
|
||
five-and-twenty feet high, formed like a standing ladder; the steps
|
||
were each fifty feet long. It was indeed a moveable pair of stairs, the
|
||
lowest end placed at ten feet distance from the wall of the chamber.
|
||
The book I had a mind to read, was put up leaning against the wall: I
|
||
first mounted to the upper step of the ladder, and turning my face
|
||
towards the book, began at the top of the page, and so walking to the
|
||
right and left about eight or ten paces, according to the length of the
|
||
lines, till I had gotten a little below the level of my eyes, and then
|
||
descending gradually till I came to the bottom: after which I mounted
|
||
again, and began the other page in the same manner, and so turned over
|
||
the leaf, which I could easily do with both my hands, for it was as
|
||
thick and stiff as a pasteboard, and in the largest folios not above
|
||
eighteen or twenty feet long.
|
||
|
||
Their style is clear, masculine, and smooth, but not florid; for they
|
||
avoid nothing more than multiplying unnecessary words, or using various
|
||
expressions. I have perused many of their books, especially those in
|
||
history and morality. Among the rest, I was much diverted with a little
|
||
old treatise, which always lay in Glumdalclitch’s bed chamber, and
|
||
belonged to her governess, a grave elderly gentlewoman, who dealt in
|
||
writings of morality and devotion. The book treats of the weakness of
|
||
humankind, and is in little esteem, except among the women and the
|
||
vulgar. However, I was curious to see what an author of that country
|
||
could say upon such a subject. This writer went through all the usual
|
||
topics of European moralists, showing “how diminutive, contemptible,
|
||
and helpless an animal was man in his own nature; how unable to defend
|
||
himself from inclemencies of the air, or the fury of wild beasts: how
|
||
much he was excelled by one creature in strength, by another in speed,
|
||
by a third in foresight, by a fourth in industry.” He added, “that
|
||
nature was degenerated in these latter declining ages of the world, and
|
||
could now produce only small abortive births, in comparison of those in
|
||
ancient times.” He said “it was very reasonable to think, not only that
|
||
the species of men were originally much larger, but also that there
|
||
must have been giants in former ages; which, as it is asserted by
|
||
history and tradition, so it has been confirmed by huge bones and
|
||
skulls, casually dug up in several parts of the kingdom, far exceeding
|
||
the common dwindled race of men in our days.” He argued, “that the very
|
||
laws of nature absolutely required we should have been made, in the
|
||
beginning of a size more large and robust; not so liable to destruction
|
||
from every little accident, of a tile falling from a house, or a stone
|
||
cast from the hand of a boy, or being drowned in a little brook.” From
|
||
this way of reasoning, the author drew several moral applications,
|
||
useful in the conduct of life, but needless here to repeat. For my own
|
||
part, I could not avoid reflecting how universally this talent was
|
||
spread, of drawing lectures in morality, or indeed rather matter of
|
||
discontent and repining, from the quarrels we raise with nature. And I
|
||
believe, upon a strict inquiry, those quarrels might be shown as
|
||
ill-grounded among us as they are among that people.
|
||
|
||
As to their military affairs, they boast that the king’s army consists
|
||
of a hundred and seventy-six thousand foot, and thirty-two thousand
|
||
horse: if that may be called an army, which is made up of tradesmen in
|
||
the several cities, and farmers in the country, whose commanders are
|
||
only the nobility and gentry, without pay or reward. They are indeed
|
||
perfect enough in their exercises, and under very good discipline,
|
||
wherein I saw no great merit; for how should it be otherwise, where
|
||
every farmer is under the command of his own landlord, and every
|
||
citizen under that of the principal men in his own city, chosen after
|
||
the manner of Venice, by ballot?
|
||
|
||
I have often seen the militia of Lorbrulgrud drawn out to exercise, in
|
||
a great field near the city of twenty miles square. They were in all
|
||
not above twenty-five thousand foot, and six thousand horse; but it was
|
||
impossible for me to compute their number, considering the space of
|
||
ground they took up. A cavalier, mounted on a large steed, might be
|
||
about ninety feet high. I have seen this whole body of horse, upon a
|
||
word of command, draw their swords at once, and brandish them in the
|
||
air. Imagination can figure nothing so grand, so surprising, and so
|
||
astonishing! It looked as if ten thousand flashes of lightning were
|
||
darting at the same time from every quarter of the sky.
|
||
|
||
I was curious to know how this prince, to whose dominions there is no
|
||
access from any other country, came to think of armies, or to teach his
|
||
people the practice of military discipline. But I was soon informed,
|
||
both by conversation and reading their histories; for, in the course of
|
||
many ages, they have been troubled with the same disease to which the
|
||
whole race of mankind is subject; the nobility often contending for
|
||
power, the people for liberty, and the king for absolute dominion. All
|
||
which, however happily tempered by the laws of that kingdom, have been
|
||
sometimes violated by each of the three parties, and have more than
|
||
once occasioned civil wars; the last whereof was happily put an end to
|
||
by this prince’s grandfather, in a general composition; and the
|
||
militia, then settled with common consent, has been ever since kept in
|
||
the strictest duty.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VIII.
|
||
|
||
The king and queen make a progress to the frontiers. The author attends
|
||
them. The manner in which he leaves the country very particularly
|
||
related. He returns to England.
|
||
|
||
|
||
I had always a strong impulse that I should some time recover my
|
||
liberty, though it was impossible to conjecture by what means, or to
|
||
form any project with the least hope of succeeding. The ship in which I
|
||
sailed, was the first ever known to be driven within sight of that
|
||
coast, and the king had given strict orders, that if at any time
|
||
another appeared, it should be taken ashore, and with all its crew and
|
||
passengers brought in a tumbril to Lorbrulgrud. He was strongly bent to
|
||
get me a woman of my own size, by whom I might propagate the breed: but
|
||
I think I should rather have died than undergone the disgrace of
|
||
leaving a posterity to be kept in cages, like tame canary-birds, and
|
||
perhaps, in time, sold about the kingdom, to persons of quality, for
|
||
curiosities. I was indeed treated with much kindness: I was the
|
||
favourite of a great king and queen, and the delight of the whole
|
||
court; but it was upon such a foot as ill became the dignity of
|
||
humankind. I could never forget those domestic pledges I had left
|
||
behind me. I wanted to be among people, with whom I could converse upon
|
||
even terms, and walk about the streets and fields without being afraid
|
||
of being trod to death like a frog or a young puppy. But my deliverance
|
||
came sooner than I expected, and in a manner not very common; the whole
|
||
story and circumstances of which I shall faithfully relate.
|
||
|
||
I had now been two years in this country; and about the beginning of
|
||
the third, Glumdalclitch and I attended the king and queen, in a
|
||
progress to the south coast of the kingdom. I was carried, as usual, in
|
||
my travelling-box, which as I have already described, was a very
|
||
convenient closet, of twelve feet wide. And I had ordered a hammock to
|
||
be fixed, by silken ropes from the four corners at the top, to break
|
||
the jolts, when a servant carried me before him on horseback, as I
|
||
sometimes desired; and would often sleep in my hammock, while we were
|
||
upon the road. On the roof of my closet, not directly over the middle
|
||
of the hammock, I ordered the joiner to cut out a hole of a foot
|
||
square, to give me air in hot weather, as I slept; which hole I shut at
|
||
pleasure with a board that drew backward and forward through a groove.
|
||
|
||
When we came to our journey’s end, the king thought proper to pass a
|
||
few days at a palace he has near Flanflasnic, a city within eighteen
|
||
English miles of the seaside. Glumdalclitch and I were much fatigued: I
|
||
had gotten a small cold, but the poor girl was so ill as to be confined
|
||
to her chamber. I longed to see the ocean, which must be the only scene
|
||
of my escape, if ever it should happen. I pretended to be worse than I
|
||
really was, and desired leave to take the fresh air of the sea, with a
|
||
page, whom I was very fond of, and who had sometimes been trusted with
|
||
me. I shall never forget with what unwillingness Glumdalclitch
|
||
consented, nor the strict charge she gave the page to be careful of me,
|
||
bursting at the same time into a flood of tears, as if she had some
|
||
forboding of what was to happen. The boy took me out in my box, about
|
||
half an hour’s walk from the palace, towards the rocks on the
|
||
sea-shore. I ordered him to set me down, and lifting up one of my
|
||
sashes, cast many a wistful melancholy look towards the sea. I found
|
||
myself not very well, and told the page that I had a mind to take a nap
|
||
in my hammock, which I hoped would do me good. I got in, and the boy
|
||
shut the window close down, to keep out the cold. I soon fell asleep,
|
||
and all I can conjecture is, while I slept, the page, thinking no
|
||
danger could happen, went among the rocks to look for birds’ eggs,
|
||
having before observed him from my window searching about, and picking
|
||
up one or two in the clefts. Be that as it will, I found myself
|
||
suddenly awaked with a violent pull upon the ring, which was fastened
|
||
at the top of my box for the conveniency of carriage. I felt my box
|
||
raised very high in the air, and then borne forward with prodigious
|
||
speed. The first jolt had like to have shaken me out of my hammock, but
|
||
afterward the motion was easy enough. I called out several times, as
|
||
loud as I could raise my voice, but all to no purpose. I looked towards
|
||
my windows, and could see nothing but the clouds and sky. I heard a
|
||
noise just over my head, like the clapping of wings, and then began to
|
||
perceive the woful condition I was in; that some eagle had got the ring
|
||
of my box in his beak, with an intent to let it fall on a rock, like a
|
||
tortoise in a shell, and then pick out my body, and devour it: for the
|
||
sagacity and smell of this bird enables him to discover his quarry at a
|
||
great distance, though better concealed than I could be within a
|
||
two-inch board.
|
||
|
||
In a little time, I observed the noise and flutter of wings to increase
|
||
very fast, and my box was tossed up and down, like a sign in a windy
|
||
day. I heard several bangs or buffets, as I thought given to the eagle
|
||
(for such I am certain it must have been that held the ring of my box
|
||
in his beak), and then, all on a sudden, felt myself falling
|
||
perpendicularly down, for above a minute, but with such incredible
|
||
swiftness, that I almost lost my breath. My fall was stopped by a
|
||
terrible squash, that sounded louder to my ears than the cataract of
|
||
Niagara; after which, I was quite in the dark for another minute, and
|
||
then my box began to rise so high, that I could see light from the tops
|
||
of the windows. I now perceived I was fallen into the sea. My box, by
|
||
the weight of my body, the goods that were in, and the broad plates of
|
||
iron fixed for strength at the four corners of the top and bottom,
|
||
floated about five feet deep in water. I did then, and do now suppose,
|
||
that the eagle which flew away with my box was pursued by two or three
|
||
others, and forced to let me drop, while he defended himself against
|
||
the rest, who hoped to share in the prey. The plates of iron fastened
|
||
at the bottom of the box (for those were the strongest) preserved the
|
||
balance while it fell, and hindered it from being broken on the surface
|
||
of the water. Every joint of it was well grooved; and the door did not
|
||
move on hinges, but up and down like a sash, which kept my closet so
|
||
tight that very little water came in. I got with much difficulty out of
|
||
my hammock, having first ventured to draw back the slip-board on the
|
||
roof already mentioned, contrived on purpose to let in air, for want of
|
||
which I found myself almost stifled.
|
||
|
||
How often did I then wish myself with my dear Glumdalclitch, from whom
|
||
one single hour had so far divided me! And I may say with truth, that
|
||
in the midst of my own misfortunes I could not forbear lamenting my
|
||
poor nurse, the grief she would suffer for my loss, the displeasure of
|
||
the queen, and the ruin of her fortune. Perhaps many travellers have
|
||
not been under greater difficulties and distress than I was at this
|
||
juncture, expecting every moment to see my box dashed to pieces, or at
|
||
least overset by the first violent blast, or rising wave. A breach in
|
||
one single pane of glass would have been immediate death: nor could any
|
||
thing have preserved the windows, but the strong lattice wires placed
|
||
on the outside, against accidents in travelling. I saw the water ooze
|
||
in at several crannies, although the leaks were not considerable, and I
|
||
endeavoured to stop them as well as I could. I was not able to lift up
|
||
the roof of my closet, which otherwise I certainly should have done,
|
||
and sat on the top of it; where I might at least preserve myself some
|
||
hours longer, than by being shut up (as I may call it) in the hold. Or
|
||
if I escaped these dangers for a day or two, what could I expect but a
|
||
miserable death of cold and hunger? I was four hours under these
|
||
circumstances, expecting, and indeed wishing, every moment to be my
|
||
last.
|
||
|
||
I have already told the reader that there were two strong staples fixed
|
||
upon that side of my box which had no window, and into which the
|
||
servant, who used to carry me on horseback, would put a leathern belt,
|
||
and buckle it about his waist. Being in this disconsolate state, I
|
||
heard, or at least thought I heard, some kind of grating noise on that
|
||
side of my box where the staples were fixed; and soon after I began to
|
||
fancy that the box was pulled or towed along the sea; for I now and
|
||
then felt a sort of tugging, which made the waves rise near the tops of
|
||
my windows, leaving me almost in the dark. This gave me some faint
|
||
hopes of relief, although I was not able to imagine how it could be
|
||
brought about. I ventured to unscrew one of my chairs, which were
|
||
always fastened to the floor; and having made a hard shift to screw it
|
||
down again, directly under the slipping-board that I had lately opened,
|
||
I mounted on the chair, and putting my mouth as near as I could to the
|
||
hole, I called for help in a loud voice, and in all the languages I
|
||
understood. I then fastened my handkerchief to a stick I usually
|
||
carried, and thrusting it up the hole, waved it several times in the
|
||
air, that if any boat or ship were near, the seamen might conjecture
|
||
some unhappy mortal to be shut up in the box.
|
||
|
||
I found no effect from all I could do, but plainly perceived my closet
|
||
to be moved along; and in the space of an hour, or better, that side of
|
||
the box where the staples were, and had no windows, struck against
|
||
something that was hard. I apprehended it to be a rock, and found
|
||
myself tossed more than ever. I plainly heard a noise upon the cover of
|
||
my closet, like that of a cable, and the grating of it as it passed
|
||
through the ring. I then found myself hoisted up, by degrees, at least
|
||
three feet higher than I was before. Whereupon I again thrust up my
|
||
stick and handkerchief, calling for help till I was almost hoarse. In
|
||
return to which, I heard a great shout repeated three times, giving me
|
||
such transports of joy as are not to be conceived but by those who feel
|
||
them. I now heard a trampling over my head, and somebody calling
|
||
through the hole with a loud voice, in the English tongue, “If there be
|
||
any body below, let them speak.” I answered, “I was an Englishman,
|
||
drawn by ill fortune into the greatest calamity that ever any creature
|
||
underwent, and begged, by all that was moving, to be delivered out of
|
||
the dungeon I was in.” The voice replied, “I was safe, for my box was
|
||
fastened to their ship; and the carpenter should immediately come and
|
||
saw a hole in the cover, large enough to pull me out.” I answered,
|
||
“that was needless, and would take up too much time; for there was no
|
||
more to be done, but let one of the crew put his finger into the ring,
|
||
and take the box out of the sea into the ship, and so into the
|
||
captain’s cabin.” Some of them, upon hearing me talk so wildly, thought
|
||
I was mad: others laughed; for indeed it never came into my head, that
|
||
I was now got among people of my own stature and strength. The
|
||
carpenter came, and in a few minutes sawed a passage about four feet
|
||
square, then let down a small ladder, upon which I mounted, and thence
|
||
was taken into the ship in a very weak condition.
|
||
|
||
The sailors were all in amazement, and asked me a thousand questions,
|
||
which I had no inclination to answer. I was equally confounded at the
|
||
sight of so many pigmies, for such I took them to be, after having so
|
||
long accustomed my eyes to the monstrous objects I had left. But the
|
||
captain, Mr. Thomas Wilcocks, an honest worthy Shropshire man,
|
||
observing I was ready to faint, took me into his cabin, gave me a
|
||
cordial to comfort me, and made me turn in upon his own bed, advising
|
||
me to take a little rest, of which I had great need. Before I went to
|
||
sleep, I gave him to understand that I had some valuable furniture in
|
||
my box, too good to be lost: a fine hammock, a handsome field-bed, two
|
||
chairs, a table, and a cabinet; that my closet was hung on all sides,
|
||
or rather quilted, with silk and cotton; that if he would let one of
|
||
the crew bring my closet into his cabin, I would open it there before
|
||
him, and show him my goods. The captain, hearing me utter these
|
||
absurdities, concluded I was raving; however (I suppose to pacify me)
|
||
he promised to give order as I desired, and going upon deck, sent some
|
||
of his men down into my closet, whence (as I afterwards found) they
|
||
drew up all my goods, and stripped off the quilting; but the chairs,
|
||
cabinet, and bedstead, being screwed to the floor, were much damaged by
|
||
the ignorance of the seamen, who tore them up by force. Then they
|
||
knocked off some of the boards for the use of the ship, and when they
|
||
had got all they had a mind for, let the hull drop into the sea, which
|
||
by reason of many breaches made in the bottom and sides, sunk to
|
||
rights. And, indeed, I was glad not to have been a spectator of the
|
||
havoc they made, because I am confident it would have sensibly touched
|
||
me, by bringing former passages into my mind, which I would rather have
|
||
forgot.
|
||
|
||
I slept some hours, but perpetually disturbed with dreams of the place
|
||
I had left, and the dangers I had escaped. However, upon waking, I
|
||
found myself much recovered. It was now about eight o’clock at night,
|
||
and the captain ordered supper immediately, thinking I had already
|
||
fasted too long. He entertained me with great kindness, observing me
|
||
not to look wildly, or talk inconsistently: and, when we were left
|
||
alone, desired I would give him a relation of my travels, and by what
|
||
accident I came to be set adrift, in that monstrous wooden chest. He
|
||
said “that about twelve o’clock at noon, as he was looking through his
|
||
glass, he spied it at a distance, and thought it was a sail, which he
|
||
had a mind to make, being not much out of his course, in hopes of
|
||
buying some biscuit, his own beginning to fall short. That upon coming
|
||
nearer, and finding his error, he sent out his long-boat to discover
|
||
what it was; that his men came back in a fright, swearing they had seen
|
||
a swimming house. That he laughed at their folly, and went himself in
|
||
the boat, ordering his men to take a strong cable along with them. That
|
||
the weather being calm, he rowed round me several times, observed my
|
||
windows and wire lattices that defended them. That he discovered two
|
||
staples upon one side, which was all of boards, without any passage for
|
||
light. He then commanded his men to row up to that side, and fastening
|
||
a cable to one of the staples, ordered them to tow my chest, as they
|
||
called it, toward the ship. When it was there, he gave directions to
|
||
fasten another cable to the ring fixed in the cover, and to raise up my
|
||
chest with pulleys, which all the sailors were not able to do above two
|
||
or three feet.” He said, “they saw my stick and handkerchief thrust out
|
||
of the hole, and concluded that some unhappy man must be shut up in the
|
||
cavity.” I asked, “whether he or the crew had seen any prodigious birds
|
||
in the air, about the time he first discovered me.” To which he
|
||
answered, “that discoursing this matter with the sailors while I was
|
||
asleep, one of them said, he had observed three eagles flying towards
|
||
the north, but remarked nothing of their being larger than the usual
|
||
size:” which I suppose must be imputed to the great height they were
|
||
at; and he could not guess the reason of my question. I then asked the
|
||
captain, “how far he reckoned we might be from land?” He said, “by the
|
||
best computation he could make, we were at least a hundred leagues.” I
|
||
assured him, “that he must be mistaken by almost half, for I had not
|
||
left the country whence I came above two hours before I dropped into
|
||
the sea.” Whereupon he began again to think that my brain was
|
||
disturbed, of which he gave me a hint, and advised me to go to bed in a
|
||
cabin he had provided. I assured him, “I was well refreshed with his
|
||
good entertainment and company, and as much in my senses as ever I was
|
||
in my life.” He then grew serious, and desired to ask me freely,
|
||
“whether I were not troubled in my mind by the consciousness of some
|
||
enormous crime, for which I was punished, at the command of some
|
||
prince, by exposing me in that chest; as great criminals, in other
|
||
countries, have been forced to sea in a leaky vessel, without
|
||
provisions: for although he should be sorry to have taken so ill a man
|
||
into his ship, yet he would engage his word to set me safe ashore, in
|
||
the first port where we arrived.” He added, “that his suspicions were
|
||
much increased by some very absurd speeches I had delivered at first to
|
||
his sailors, and afterwards to himself, in relation to my closet or
|
||
chest, as well as by my odd looks and behaviour while I was at supper.”
|
||
|
||
I begged his patience to hear me tell my story, which I faithfully did,
|
||
from the last time I left England, to the moment he first discovered
|
||
me. And, as truth always forces its way into rational minds, so this
|
||
honest worthy gentleman, who had some tincture of learning, and very
|
||
good sense, was immediately convinced of my candour and veracity. But
|
||
further to confirm all I had said, I entreated him to give order that
|
||
my cabinet should be brought, of which I had the key in my pocket; for
|
||
he had already informed me how the seamen disposed of my closet. I
|
||
opened it in his own presence, and showed him the small collection of
|
||
rarities I made in the country from which I had been so strangely
|
||
delivered. There was the comb I had contrived out of the stumps of the
|
||
king’s beard, and another of the same materials, but fixed into a
|
||
paring of her majesty’s thumb-nail, which served for the back. There
|
||
was a collection of needles and pins, from a foot to half a yard long;
|
||
four wasp stings, like joiner’s tacks; some combings of the queen’s
|
||
hair; a gold ring, which one day she made me a present of, in a most
|
||
obliging manner, taking it from her little finger, and throwing it over
|
||
my head like a collar. I desired the captain would please to accept
|
||
this ring in return for his civilities; which he absolutely refused. I
|
||
showed him a corn that I had cut off with my own hand, from a maid of
|
||
honour’s toe; it was about the bigness of Kentish pippin, and grown so
|
||
hard, that when I returned to England, I got it hollowed into a cup,
|
||
and set in silver. Lastly, I desired him to see the breeches I had then
|
||
on, which were made of a mouse’s skin.
|
||
|
||
I could force nothing on him but a footman’s tooth, which I observed
|
||
him to examine with great curiosity, and found he had a fancy for it.
|
||
He received it with abundance of thanks, more than such a trifle could
|
||
deserve. It was drawn by an unskilful surgeon, in a mistake, from one
|
||
of Glumdalclitch’s men, who was afflicted with the tooth-ache, but it
|
||
was as sound as any in his head. I got it cleaned, and put it into my
|
||
cabinet. It was about a foot long, and four inches in diameter.
|
||
|
||
The captain was very well satisfied with this plain relation I had
|
||
given him, and said, “he hoped, when we returned to England, I would
|
||
oblige the world by putting it on paper, and making it public.” My
|
||
answer was, “that we were overstocked with books of travels: that
|
||
nothing could now pass which was not extraordinary; wherein I doubted
|
||
some authors less consulted truth, than their own vanity, or interest,
|
||
or the diversion of ignorant readers; that my story could contain
|
||
little beside common events, without those ornamental descriptions of
|
||
strange plants, trees, birds, and other animals; or of the barbarous
|
||
customs and idolatry of savage people, with which most writers abound.
|
||
However, I thanked him for his good opinion, and promised to take the
|
||
matter into my thoughts.”
|
||
|
||
He said “he wondered at one thing very much, which was, to hear me
|
||
speak so loud;” asking me “whether the king or queen of that country
|
||
were thick of hearing?” I told him, “it was what I had been used to for
|
||
above two years past, and that I admired as much at the voices of him
|
||
and his men, who seemed to me only to whisper, and yet I could hear
|
||
them well enough. But, when I spoke in that country, it was like a man
|
||
talking in the streets, to another looking out from the top of a
|
||
steeple, unless when I was placed on a table, or held in any person’s
|
||
hand.” I told him, “I had likewise observed another thing, that, when I
|
||
first got into the ship, and the sailors stood all about me, I thought
|
||
they were the most little contemptible creatures I had ever beheld.”
|
||
For indeed, while I was in that prince’s country, I could never endure
|
||
to look in a glass, after my eyes had been accustomed to such
|
||
prodigious objects, because the comparison gave me so despicable a
|
||
conceit of myself. The captain said, “that while we were at supper, he
|
||
observed me to look at every thing with a sort of wonder, and that I
|
||
often seemed hardly able to contain my laughter, which he knew not well
|
||
how to take, but imputed it to some disorder in my brain.” I answered,
|
||
“it was very true; and I wondered how I could forbear, when I saw his
|
||
dishes of the size of a silver three-pence, a leg of pork hardly a
|
||
mouthful, a cup not so big as a nut-shell;” and so I went on,
|
||
describing the rest of his household-stuff and provisions, after the
|
||
same manner. For, although the queen had ordered a little equipage of
|
||
all things necessary for me, while I was in her service, yet my ideas
|
||
were wholly taken up with what I saw on every side of me, and I winked
|
||
at my own littleness, as people do at their own faults. The captain
|
||
understood my raillery very well, and merrily replied with the old
|
||
English proverb, “that he doubted my eyes were bigger than my belly,
|
||
for he did not observe my stomach so good, although I had fasted all
|
||
day;” and, continuing in his mirth, protested “he would have gladly
|
||
given a hundred pounds, to have seen my closet in the eagle’s bill, and
|
||
afterwards in its fall from so great a height into the sea; which would
|
||
certainly have been a most astonishing object, worthy to have the
|
||
description of it transmitted to future ages:” and the comparison of
|
||
Phaeton was so obvious, that he could not forbear applying it, although
|
||
I did not much admire the conceit.
|
||
|
||
The captain having been at Tonquin, was, in his return to England,
|
||
driven north-eastward to the latitude of 44 degrees, and longitude of
|
||
143. But meeting a trade-wind two days after I came on board him, we
|
||
sailed southward a long time, and coasting New Holland, kept our course
|
||
west-south-west, and then south-south-west, till we doubled the Cape of
|
||
Good Hope. Our voyage was very prosperous, but I shall not trouble the
|
||
reader with a journal of it. The captain called in at one or two ports,
|
||
and sent in his long-boat for provisions and fresh water; but I never
|
||
went out of the ship till we came into the Downs, which was on the
|
||
third day of June, 1706, about nine months after my escape. I offered
|
||
to leave my goods in security for payment of my freight: but the
|
||
captain protested he would not receive one farthing. We took a kind
|
||
leave of each other, and I made him promise he would come to see me at
|
||
my house in Redriff. I hired a horse and guide for five shillings,
|
||
which I borrowed of the captain.
|
||
|
||
As I was on the road, observing the littleness of the houses, the
|
||
trees, the cattle, and the people, I began to think myself in Lilliput.
|
||
I was afraid of trampling on every traveller I met, and often called
|
||
aloud to have them stand out of the way, so that I had like to have
|
||
gotten one or two broken heads for my impertinence.
|
||
|
||
When I came to my own house, for which I was forced to inquire, one of
|
||
the servants opening the door, I bent down to go in, (like a goose
|
||
under a gate,) for fear of striking my head. My wife ran out to embrace
|
||
me, but I stooped lower than her knees, thinking she could otherwise
|
||
never be able to reach my mouth. My daughter kneeled to ask my
|
||
blessing, but I could not see her till she arose, having been so long
|
||
used to stand with my head and eyes erect to above sixty feet; and then
|
||
I went to take her up with one hand by the waist. I looked down upon
|
||
the servants, and one or two friends who were in the house, as if they
|
||
had been pigmies and I a giant. I told my wife, “she had been too
|
||
thrifty, for I found she had starved herself and her daughter to
|
||
nothing.” In short, I behaved myself so unaccountably, that they were
|
||
all of the captain’s opinion when he first saw me, and concluded I had
|
||
lost my wits. This I mention as an instance of the great power of habit
|
||
and prejudice.
|
||
|
||
In a little time, I and my family and friends came to a right
|
||
understanding: but my wife protested “I should never go to sea any
|
||
more;” although my evil destiny so ordered, that she had not power to
|
||
hinder me, as the reader may know hereafter. In the mean time, I here
|
||
conclude the second part of my unfortunate voyages.
|
||
|
||
|
||
PART III. A VOYAGE TO LAPUTA, BALNIBARBI, GLUBBDUBDRIB, LUGGNAGG AND
|
||
JAPAN.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER I.
|
||
|
||
The author sets out on his third voyage. Is taken by pirates. The
|
||
malice of a Dutchman. His arrival at an island. He is received into
|
||
Laputa.
|
||
|
||
|
||
I had not been at home above ten days, when Captain William Robinson, a
|
||
Cornish man, commander of the Hopewell, a stout ship of three hundred
|
||
tons, came to my house. I had formerly been surgeon of another ship
|
||
where he was master, and a fourth part owner, in a voyage to the
|
||
Levant. He had always treated me more like a brother, than an inferior
|
||
officer; and, hearing of my arrival, made me a visit, as I apprehended
|
||
only out of friendship, for nothing passed more than what is usual
|
||
after long absences. But repeating his visits often, expressing his joy
|
||
to find me in good health, asking, “whether I were now settled for
|
||
life?” adding, “that he intended a voyage to the East Indies in two
|
||
months,” at last he plainly invited me, though with some apologies, to
|
||
be surgeon of the ship; “that I should have another surgeon under me,
|
||
beside our two mates; that my salary should be double to the usual pay;
|
||
and that having experienced my knowledge in sea-affairs to be at least
|
||
equal to his, he would enter into any engagement to follow my advice,
|
||
as much as if I had shared in the command.”
|
||
|
||
He said so many other obliging things, and I knew him to be so honest a
|
||
man, that I could not reject this proposal; the thirst I had of seeing
|
||
the world, notwithstanding my past misfortunes, continuing as violent
|
||
as ever. The only difficulty that remained, was to persuade my wife,
|
||
whose consent however I at last obtained, by the prospect of advantage
|
||
she proposed to her children.
|
||
|
||
We set out the 5th day of August, 1706, and arrived at Fort St. George
|
||
the 11th of April, 1707. We staid there three weeks to refresh our
|
||
crew, many of whom were sick. From thence we went to Tonquin, where the
|
||
captain resolved to continue some time, because many of the goods he
|
||
intended to buy were not ready, nor could he expect to be dispatched in
|
||
several months. Therefore, in hopes to defray some of the charges he
|
||
must be at, he bought a sloop, loaded it with several sorts of goods,
|
||
wherewith the Tonquinese usually trade to the neighbouring islands, and
|
||
putting fourteen men on board, whereof three were of the country, he
|
||
appointed me master of the sloop, and gave me power to traffic, while
|
||
he transacted his affairs at Tonquin.
|
||
|
||
We had not sailed above three days, when a great storm arising, we were
|
||
driven five days to the north-north-east, and then to the east: after
|
||
which we had fair weather, but still with a pretty strong gale from the
|
||
west. Upon the tenth day we were chased by two pirates, who soon
|
||
overtook us; for my sloop was so deep laden, that she sailed very slow,
|
||
neither were we in a condition to defend ourselves.
|
||
|
||
We were boarded about the same time by both the pirates, who entered
|
||
furiously at the head of their men; but finding us all prostrate upon
|
||
our faces (for so I gave order), they pinioned us with strong ropes,
|
||
and setting guard upon us, went to search the sloop.
|
||
|
||
I observed among them a Dutchman, who seemed to be of some authority,
|
||
though he was not commander of either ship. He knew us by our
|
||
countenances to be Englishmen, and jabbering to us in his own language,
|
||
swore we should be tied back to back and thrown into the sea. I spoke
|
||
Dutch tolerably well; I told him who we were, and begged him, in
|
||
consideration of our being Christians and Protestants, of neighbouring
|
||
countries in strict alliance, that he would move the captains to take
|
||
some pity on us. This inflamed his rage; he repeated his threatenings,
|
||
and turning to his companions, spoke with great vehemence in the
|
||
Japanese language, as I suppose, often using the word _Christianos_.
|
||
|
||
The largest of the two pirate ships was commanded by a Japanese
|
||
captain, who spoke a little Dutch, but very imperfectly. He came up to
|
||
me, and after several questions, which I answered in great humility, he
|
||
said, “we should not die.” I made the captain a very low bow, and then,
|
||
turning to the Dutchman, said, “I was sorry to find more mercy in a
|
||
heathen, than in a brother christian.” But I had soon reason to repent
|
||
those foolish words: for that malicious reprobate, having often
|
||
endeavoured in vain to persuade both the captains that I might be
|
||
thrown into the sea (which they would not yield to, after the promise
|
||
made me that I should not die), however, prevailed so far, as to have a
|
||
punishment inflicted on me, worse, in all human appearance, than death
|
||
itself. My men were sent by an equal division into both the pirate
|
||
ships, and my sloop new manned. As to myself, it was determined that I
|
||
should be set adrift in a small canoe, with paddles and a sail, and
|
||
four days’ provisions; which last, the Japanese captain was so kind to
|
||
double out of his own stores, and would permit no man to search me. I
|
||
got down into the canoe, while the Dutchman, standing upon the deck,
|
||
loaded me with all the curses and injurious terms his language could
|
||
afford.
|
||
|
||
About an hour before we saw the pirates I had taken an observation, and
|
||
found we were in the latitude of 46 N. and longitude of 183. When I was
|
||
at some distance from the pirates, I discovered, by my pocket-glass,
|
||
several islands to the south-east. I set up my sail, the wind being
|
||
fair, with a design to reach the nearest of those islands, which I made
|
||
a shift to do, in about three hours. It was all rocky: however I got
|
||
many birds’ eggs; and, striking fire, I kindled some heath and dry
|
||
sea-weed, by which I roasted my eggs. I ate no other supper, being
|
||
resolved to spare my provisions as much as I could. I passed the night
|
||
under the shelter of a rock, strewing some heath under me, and slept
|
||
pretty well.
|
||
|
||
The next day I sailed to another island, and thence to a third and
|
||
fourth, sometimes using my sail, and sometimes my paddles. But, not to
|
||
trouble the reader with a particular account of my distresses, let it
|
||
suffice, that on the fifth day I arrived at the last island in my
|
||
sight, which lay south-south-east to the former.
|
||
|
||
This island was at a greater distance than I expected, and I did not
|
||
reach it in less than five hours. I encompassed it almost round, before
|
||
I could find a convenient place to land in; which was a small creek,
|
||
about three times the wideness of my canoe. I found the island to be
|
||
all rocky, only a little intermingled with tufts of grass, and
|
||
sweet-smelling herbs. I took out my small provisions and after having
|
||
refreshed myself, I secured the remainder in a cave, whereof there were
|
||
great numbers; I gathered plenty of eggs upon the rocks, and got a
|
||
quantity of dry sea-weed, and parched grass, which I designed to kindle
|
||
the next day, and roast my eggs as well as I could, for I had about me
|
||
my flint, steel, match, and burning-glass. I lay all night in the cave
|
||
where I had lodged my provisions. My bed was the same dry grass and
|
||
sea-weed which I intended for fuel. I slept very little, for the
|
||
disquiets of my mind prevailed over my weariness, and kept me awake. I
|
||
considered how impossible it was to preserve my life in so desolate a
|
||
place, and how miserable my end must be: yet found myself so listless
|
||
and desponding, that I had not the heart to rise; and before I could
|
||
get spirits enough to creep out of my cave, the day was far advanced. I
|
||
walked awhile among the rocks: the sky was perfectly clear, and the sun
|
||
so hot, that I was forced to turn my face from it: when all on a sudden
|
||
it became obscure, as I thought, in a manner very different from what
|
||
happens by the interposition of a cloud. I turned back, and perceived a
|
||
vast opaque body between me and the sun moving forwards towards the
|
||
island: it seemed to be about two miles high, and hid the sun six or
|
||
seven minutes; but I did not observe the air to be much colder, or the
|
||
sky more darkened, than if I had stood under the shade of a mountain.
|
||
As it approached nearer over the place where I was, it appeared to be a
|
||
firm substance, the bottom flat, smooth, and shining very bright, from
|
||
the reflection of the sea below. I stood upon a height about two
|
||
hundred yards from the shore, and saw this vast body descending almost
|
||
to a parallel with me, at less than an English mile distance. I took
|
||
out my pocket perspective, and could plainly discover numbers of people
|
||
moving up and down the sides of it, which appeared to be sloping; but
|
||
what those people were doing I was not able to distinguish.
|
||
|
||
The natural love of life gave me some inward motion of joy, and I was
|
||
ready to entertain a hope that this adventure might, some way or other,
|
||
help to deliver me from the desolate place and condition I was in. But
|
||
at the same time the reader can hardly conceive my astonishment, to
|
||
behold an island in the air, inhabited by men, who were able (as it
|
||
should seem) to raise or sink, or put it into progressive motion, as
|
||
they pleased. But not being at that time in a disposition to
|
||
philosophise upon this phenomenon, I rather chose to observe what
|
||
course the island would take, because it seemed for a while to stand
|
||
still. Yet soon after, it advanced nearer, and I could see the sides of
|
||
it encompassed with several gradations of galleries, and stairs, at
|
||
certain intervals, to descend from one to the other. In the lowest
|
||
gallery, I beheld some people fishing with long angling rods, and
|
||
others looking on. I waved my cap (for my hat was long since worn out)
|
||
and my handkerchief toward the island; and upon its nearer approach, I
|
||
called and shouted with the utmost strength of my voice; and then
|
||
looking circumspectly, I beheld a crowd gather to that side which was
|
||
most in my view. I found by their pointing towards me and to each
|
||
other, that they plainly discovered me, although they made no return to
|
||
my shouting. But I could see four or five men running in great haste,
|
||
up the stairs, to the top of the island, who then disappeared. I
|
||
happened rightly to conjecture, that these were sent for orders to some
|
||
person in authority upon this occasion.
|
||
|
||
The number of people increased, and, in less than half an hour, the
|
||
island was moved and raised in such a manner, that the lowest gallery
|
||
appeared in a parallel of less than a hundred yards distance from the
|
||
height where I stood. I then put myself in the most supplicating
|
||
posture, and spoke in the humblest accent, but received no answer.
|
||
Those who stood nearest over against me, seemed to be persons of
|
||
distinction, as I supposed by their habit. They conferred earnestly
|
||
with each other, looking often upon me. At length one of them called
|
||
out in a clear, polite, smooth dialect, not unlike in sound to the
|
||
Italian: and therefore I returned an answer in that language, hoping at
|
||
least that the cadence might be more agreeable to his ears. Although
|
||
neither of us understood the other, yet my meaning was easily known,
|
||
for the people saw the distress I was in.
|
||
|
||
They made signs for me to come down from the rock, and go towards the
|
||
shore, which I accordingly did; and the flying island being raised to a
|
||
convenient height, the verge directly over me, a chain was let down
|
||
from the lowest gallery, with a seat fastened to the bottom, to which I
|
||
fixed myself, and was drawn up by pulleys.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER II.
|
||
|
||
The humours and dispositions of the Laputians described. An account of
|
||
their learning. Of the king and his court. The author’s reception
|
||
there. The inhabitants subject to fear and disquietudes. An account of
|
||
the women.
|
||
|
||
|
||
At my alighting, I was surrounded with a crowd of people, but those who
|
||
stood nearest seemed to be of better quality. They beheld me with all
|
||
the marks and circumstances of wonder; neither indeed was I much in
|
||
their debt, having never till then seen a race of mortals so singular
|
||
in their shapes, habits, and countenances. Their heads were all
|
||
reclined, either to the right, or the left; one of their eyes turned
|
||
inward, and the other directly up to the zenith. Their outward garments
|
||
were adorned with the figures of suns, moons, and stars; interwoven
|
||
with those of fiddles, flutes, harps, trumpets, guitars, harpsichords,
|
||
and many other instruments of music, unknown to us in Europe. I
|
||
observed, here and there, many in the habit of servants, with a blown
|
||
bladder, fastened like a flail to the end of a stick, which they
|
||
carried in their hands. In each bladder was a small quantity of dried
|
||
peas, or little pebbles, as I was afterwards informed. With these
|
||
bladders, they now and then flapped the mouths and ears of those who
|
||
stood near them, of which practice I could not then conceive the
|
||
meaning. It seems the minds of these people are so taken up with
|
||
intense speculations, that they neither can speak, nor attend to the
|
||
discourses of others, without being roused by some external taction
|
||
upon the organs of speech and hearing; for which reason, those persons
|
||
who are able to afford it always keep a flapper (the original is
|
||
_climenole_) in their family, as one of their domestics; nor ever walk
|
||
abroad, or make visits, without him. And the business of this officer
|
||
is, when two, three, or more persons are in company, gently to strike
|
||
with his bladder the mouth of him who is to speak, and the right ear of
|
||
him or them to whom the speaker addresses himself. This flapper is
|
||
likewise employed diligently to attend his master in his walks, and
|
||
upon occasion to give him a soft flap on his eyes; because he is always
|
||
so wrapped up in cogitation, that he is in manifest danger of falling
|
||
down every precipice, and bouncing his head against every post; and in
|
||
the streets, of justling others, or being justled himself into the
|
||
kennel.
|
||
|
||
It was necessary to give the reader this information, without which he
|
||
would be at the same loss with me to understand the proceedings of
|
||
these people, as they conducted me up the stairs to the top of the
|
||
island, and from thence to the royal palace. While we were ascending,
|
||
they forgot several times what they were about, and left me to myself,
|
||
till their memories were again roused by their flappers; for they
|
||
appeared altogether unmoved by the sight of my foreign habit and
|
||
countenance, and by the shouts of the vulgar, whose thoughts and minds
|
||
were more disengaged.
|
||
|
||
At last we entered the palace, and proceeded into the chamber of
|
||
presence, where I saw the king seated on his throne, attended on each
|
||
side by persons of prime quality. Before the throne, was a large table
|
||
filled with globes and spheres, and mathematical instruments of all
|
||
kinds. His majesty took not the least notice of us, although our
|
||
entrance was not without sufficient noise, by the concourse of all
|
||
persons belonging to the court. But he was then deep in a problem; and
|
||
we attended at least an hour, before he could solve it. There stood by
|
||
him, on each side, a young page with flaps in their hands, and when
|
||
they saw he was at leisure, one of them gently struck his mouth, and
|
||
the other his right ear; at which he startled like one awaked on the
|
||
sudden, and looking towards me and the company I was in, recollected
|
||
the occasion of our coming, whereof he had been informed before. He
|
||
spoke some words, whereupon immediately a young man with a flap came up
|
||
to my side, and flapped me gently on the right ear; but I made signs,
|
||
as well as I could, that I had no occasion for such an instrument;
|
||
which, as I afterwards found, gave his majesty, and the whole court, a
|
||
very mean opinion of my understanding. The king, as far as I could
|
||
conjecture, asked me several questions, and I addressed myself to him
|
||
in all the languages I had. When it was found I could neither
|
||
understand nor be understood, I was conducted by his order to an
|
||
apartment in his palace (this prince being distinguished above all his
|
||
predecessors for his hospitality to strangers), where two servants were
|
||
appointed to attend me. My dinner was brought, and four persons of
|
||
quality, whom I remembered to have seen very near the king’s person,
|
||
did me the honour to dine with me. We had two courses, of three dishes
|
||
each. In the first course, there was a shoulder of mutton cut into an
|
||
equilateral triangle, a piece of beef into a rhomboides, and a pudding
|
||
into a cycloid. The second course was two ducks trussed up in the form
|
||
of fiddles; sausages and puddings resembling flutes and hautboys, and a
|
||
breast of veal in the shape of a harp. The servants cut our bread into
|
||
cones, cylinders, parallelograms, and several other mathematical
|
||
figures.
|
||
|
||
While we were at dinner, I made bold to ask the names of several things
|
||
in their language, and those noble persons, by the assistance of their
|
||
flappers, delighted to give me answers, hoping to raise my admiration
|
||
of their great abilities if I could be brought to converse with them. I
|
||
was soon able to call for bread and drink, or whatever else I wanted.
|
||
|
||
After dinner my company withdrew, and a person was sent to me by the
|
||
king’s order, attended by a flapper. He brought with him pen, ink, and
|
||
paper, and three or four books, giving me to understand by signs, that
|
||
he was sent to teach me the language. We sat together four hours, in
|
||
which time I wrote down a great number of words in columns, with the
|
||
translations over against them; I likewise made a shift to learn
|
||
several short sentences; for my tutor would order one of my servants to
|
||
fetch something, to turn about, to make a bow, to sit, or to stand, or
|
||
walk, and the like. Then I took down the sentence in writing. He showed
|
||
me also, in one of his books, the figures of the sun, moon, and stars,
|
||
the zodiac, the tropics, and polar circles, together with the
|
||
denominations of many planes and solids. He gave me the names and
|
||
descriptions of all the musical instruments, and the general terms of
|
||
art in playing on each of them. After he had left me, I placed all my
|
||
words, with their interpretations, in alphabetical order. And thus, in
|
||
a few days, by the help of a very faithful memory, I got some insight
|
||
into their language. The word, which I interpret the flying or floating
|
||
island, is in the original _Laputa_, whereof I could never learn the
|
||
true etymology. _Lap_, in the old obsolete language, signifies high;
|
||
and _untuh_, a governor; from which they say, by corruption, was
|
||
derived _Laputa_, from _Lapuntuh_. But I do not approve of this
|
||
derivation, which seems to be a little strained. I ventured to offer to
|
||
the learned among them a conjecture of my own, that Laputa was _quasi
|
||
lap outed_; _lap_, signifying properly, the dancing of the sunbeams in
|
||
the sea, and _outed_, a wing; which, however, I shall not obtrude, but
|
||
submit to the judicious reader.
|
||
|
||
Those to whom the king had entrusted me, observing how ill I was clad,
|
||
ordered a tailor to come next morning, and take measure for a suit of
|
||
clothes. This operator did his office after a different manner from
|
||
those of his trade in Europe. He first took my altitude by a quadrant,
|
||
and then, with a rule and compasses, described the dimensions and
|
||
outlines of my whole body, all which he entered upon paper; and in six
|
||
days brought my clothes very ill made, and quite out of shape, by
|
||
happening to mistake a figure in the calculation. But my comfort was,
|
||
that I observed such accidents very frequent, and little regarded.
|
||
|
||
During my confinement for want of clothes, and by an indisposition that
|
||
held me some days longer, I much enlarged my dictionary; and when I
|
||
went next to court, was able to understand many things the king spoke,
|
||
and to return him some kind of answers. His majesty had given orders,
|
||
that the island should move north-east and by east, to the vertical
|
||
point over Lagado, the metropolis of the whole kingdom below, upon the
|
||
firm earth. It was about ninety leagues distant, and our voyage lasted
|
||
four days and a half. I was not in the least sensible of the
|
||
progressive motion made in the air by the island. On the second
|
||
morning, about eleven o’clock, the king himself in person, attended by
|
||
his nobility, courtiers, and officers, having prepared all their
|
||
musical instruments, played on them for three hours without
|
||
intermission, so that I was quite stunned with the noise; neither could
|
||
I possibly guess the meaning, till my tutor informed me. He said that,
|
||
the people of their island had their ears adapted to hear “the music of
|
||
the spheres, which always played at certain periods, and the court was
|
||
now prepared to bear their part, in whatever instrument they most
|
||
excelled.”
|
||
|
||
In our journey towards Lagado, the capital city, his majesty ordered
|
||
that the island should stop over certain towns and villages, from
|
||
whence he might receive the petitions of his subjects. And to this
|
||
purpose, several packthreads were let down, with small weights at the
|
||
bottom. On these packthreads the people strung their petitions, which
|
||
mounted up directly, like the scraps of paper fastened by schoolboys at
|
||
the end of the string that holds their kite. Sometimes we received wine
|
||
and victuals from below, which were drawn up by pulleys.
|
||
|
||
The knowledge I had in mathematics gave me great assistance in
|
||
acquiring their phraseology, which depended much upon that science, and
|
||
music; and in the latter I was not unskilled. Their ideas are
|
||
perpetually conversant in lines and figures. If they would, for
|
||
example, praise the beauty of a woman, or any other animal, they
|
||
describe it by rhombs, circles, parallelograms, ellipses, and other
|
||
geometrical terms, or by words of art drawn from music, needless here
|
||
to repeat. I observed in the king’s kitchen all sorts of mathematical
|
||
and musical instruments, after the figures of which they cut up the
|
||
joints that were served to his majesty’s table.
|
||
|
||
Their houses are very ill built, the walls bevel, without one right
|
||
angle in any apartment; and this defect arises from the contempt they
|
||
bear to practical geometry, which they despise as vulgar and mechanic;
|
||
those instructions they give being too refined for the intellects of
|
||
their workmen, which occasions perpetual mistakes. And although they
|
||
are dexterous enough upon a piece of paper, in the management of the
|
||
rule, the pencil, and the divider, yet in the common actions and
|
||
behaviour of life, I have not seen a more clumsy, awkward, and unhandy
|
||
people, nor so slow and perplexed in their conceptions upon all other
|
||
subjects, except those of mathematics and music. They are very bad
|
||
reasoners, and vehemently given to opposition, unless when they happen
|
||
to be of the right opinion, which is seldom their case. Imagination,
|
||
fancy, and invention, they are wholly strangers to, nor have any words
|
||
in their language, by which those ideas can be expressed; the whole
|
||
compass of their thoughts and mind being shut up within the two
|
||
forementioned sciences.
|
||
|
||
Most of them, and especially those who deal in the astronomical part,
|
||
have great faith in judicial astrology, although they are ashamed to
|
||
own it publicly. But what I chiefly admired, and thought altogether
|
||
unaccountable, was the strong disposition I observed in them towards
|
||
news and politics, perpetually inquiring into public affairs, giving
|
||
their judgments in matters of state, and passionately disputing every
|
||
inch of a party opinion. I have indeed observed the same disposition
|
||
among most of the mathematicians I have known in Europe, although I
|
||
could never discover the least analogy between the two sciences; unless
|
||
those people suppose, that because the smallest circle has as many
|
||
degrees as the largest, therefore the regulation and management of the
|
||
world require no more abilities than the handling and turning of a
|
||
globe; but I rather take this quality to spring from a very common
|
||
infirmity of human nature, inclining us to be most curious and
|
||
conceited in matters where we have least concern, and for which we are
|
||
least adapted by study or nature.
|
||
|
||
These people are under continual disquietudes, never enjoying a
|
||
minute’s peace of mind; and their disturbances proceed from causes
|
||
which very little affect the rest of mortals. Their apprehensions arise
|
||
from several changes they dread in the celestial bodies: for instance,
|
||
that the earth, by the continual approaches of the sun towards it,
|
||
must, in course of time, be absorbed, or swallowed up; that the face of
|
||
the sun, will, by degrees, be encrusted with its own effluvia, and give
|
||
no more light to the world; that the earth very narrowly escaped a
|
||
brush from the tail of the last comet, which would have infallibly
|
||
reduced it to ashes; and that the next, which they have calculated for
|
||
one-and-thirty years hence, will probably destroy us. For if, in its
|
||
perihelion, it should approach within a certain degree of the sun (as
|
||
by their calculations they have reason to dread) it will receive a
|
||
degree of heat ten thousand times more intense than that of red hot
|
||
glowing iron, and in its absence from the sun, carry a blazing tail ten
|
||
hundred thousand and fourteen miles long, through which, if the earth
|
||
should pass at the distance of one hundred thousand miles from the
|
||
nucleus, or main body of the comet, it must in its passage be set on
|
||
fire, and reduced to ashes: that the sun, daily spending its rays
|
||
without any nutriment to supply them, will at last be wholly consumed
|
||
and annihilated; which must be attended with the destruction of this
|
||
earth, and of all the planets that receive their light from it.
|
||
|
||
They are so perpetually alarmed with the apprehensions of these, and
|
||
the like impending dangers, that they can neither sleep quietly in
|
||
their beds, nor have any relish for the common pleasures and amusements
|
||
of life. When they meet an acquaintance in the morning, the first
|
||
question is about the sun’s health, how he looked at his setting and
|
||
rising, and what hopes they have to avoid the stroke of the approaching
|
||
comet. This conversation they are apt to run into with the same temper
|
||
that boys discover in delighting to hear terrible stories of spirits
|
||
and hobgoblins, which they greedily listen to, and dare not go to bed
|
||
for fear.
|
||
|
||
The women of the island have abundance of vivacity: they contemn their
|
||
husbands, and are exceedingly fond of strangers, whereof there is
|
||
always a considerable number from the continent below, attending at
|
||
court, either upon affairs of the several towns and corporations, or
|
||
their own particular occasions, but are much despised, because they
|
||
want the same endowments. Among these the ladies choose their gallants:
|
||
but the vexation is, that they act with too much ease and security; for
|
||
the husband is always so rapt in speculation, that the mistress and
|
||
lover may proceed to the greatest familiarities before his face, if he
|
||
be but provided with paper and implements, and without his flapper at
|
||
his side.
|
||
|
||
The wives and daughters lament their confinement to the island,
|
||
although I think it the most delicious spot of ground in the world; and
|
||
although they live here in the greatest plenty and magnificence, and
|
||
are allowed to do whatever they please, they long to see the world, and
|
||
take the diversions of the metropolis, which they are not allowed to do
|
||
without a particular license from the king; and this is not easy to be
|
||
obtained, because the people of quality have found, by frequent
|
||
experience, how hard it is to persuade their women to return from
|
||
below. I was told that a great court lady, who had several children,—is
|
||
married to the prime minister, the richest subject in the kingdom, a
|
||
very graceful person, extremely fond of her, and lives in the finest
|
||
palace of the island,—went down to Lagado on the pretence of health,
|
||
there hid herself for several months, till the king sent a warrant to
|
||
search for her; and she was found in an obscure eating-house all in
|
||
rags, having pawned her clothes to maintain an old deformed footman,
|
||
who beat her every day, and in whose company she was taken, much
|
||
against her will. And although her husband received her with all
|
||
possible kindness, and without the least reproach, she soon after
|
||
contrived to steal down again, with all her jewels, to the same
|
||
gallant, and has not been heard of since.
|
||
|
||
This may perhaps pass with the reader rather for an European or English
|
||
story, than for one of a country so remote. But he may please to
|
||
consider, that the caprices of womankind are not limited by any climate
|
||
or nation, and that they are much more uniform, than can be easily
|
||
imagined.
|
||
|
||
In about a month’s time, I had made a tolerable proficiency in their
|
||
language, and was able to answer most of the king’s questions, when I
|
||
had the honour to attend him. His majesty discovered not the least
|
||
curiosity to inquire into the laws, government, history, religion, or
|
||
manners of the countries where I had been; but confined his questions
|
||
to the state of mathematics, and received the account I gave him with
|
||
great contempt and indifference, though often roused by his flapper on
|
||
each side.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER III.
|
||
|
||
A phenomenon solved by modern philosophy and astronomy. The Laputians’
|
||
great improvements in the latter. The king’s method of suppressing
|
||
insurrections.
|
||
|
||
|
||
I desired leave of this prince to see the curiosities of the island,
|
||
which he was graciously pleased to grant, and ordered my tutor to
|
||
attend me. I chiefly wanted to know, to what cause, in art or in
|
||
nature, it owed its several motions, whereof I will now give a
|
||
philosophical account to the reader.
|
||
|
||
The flying or floating island is exactly circular, its diameter 7837
|
||
yards, or about four miles and a half, and consequently contains ten
|
||
thousand acres. It is three hundred yards thick. The bottom, or under
|
||
surface, which appears to those who view it below, is one even regular
|
||
plate of adamant, shooting up to the height of about two hundred yards.
|
||
Above it lie the several minerals in their usual order, and over all is
|
||
a coat of rich mould, ten or twelve feet deep. The declivity of the
|
||
upper surface, from the circumference to the centre, is the natural
|
||
cause why all the dews and rains, which fall upon the island, are
|
||
conveyed in small rivulets toward the middle, where they are emptied
|
||
into four large basins, each of about half a mile in circuit, and two
|
||
hundred yards distant from the centre. From these basins the water is
|
||
continually exhaled by the sun in the daytime, which effectually
|
||
prevents their overflowing. Besides, as it is in the power of the
|
||
monarch to raise the island above the region of clouds and vapours, he
|
||
can prevent the falling of dews and rain whenever he pleases. For the
|
||
highest clouds cannot rise above two miles, as naturalists agree, at
|
||
least they were never known to do so in that country.
|
||
|
||
At the centre of the island there is a chasm about fifty yards in
|
||
diameter, whence the astronomers descend into a large dome, which is
|
||
therefore called _flandona gagnole_, or the astronomer’s cave, situated
|
||
at the depth of a hundred yards beneath the upper surface of the
|
||
adamant. In this cave are twenty lamps continually burning, which, from
|
||
the reflection of the adamant, cast a strong light into every part. The
|
||
place is stored with great variety of sextants, quadrants, telescopes,
|
||
astrolabes, and other astronomical instruments. But the greatest
|
||
curiosity, upon which the fate of the island depends, is a loadstone of
|
||
a prodigious size, in shape resembling a weaver’s shuttle. It is in
|
||
length six yards, and in the thickest part at least three yards over.
|
||
This magnet is sustained by a very strong axle of adamant passing
|
||
through its middle, upon which it plays, and is poised so exactly that
|
||
the weakest hand can turn it. It is hooped round with a hollow cylinder
|
||
of adamant, four feet deep, as many thick, and twelve yards in
|
||
diameter, placed horizontally, and supported by eight adamantine feet,
|
||
each six yards high. In the middle of the concave side, there is a
|
||
groove twelve inches deep, in which the extremities of the axle are
|
||
lodged, and turned round as there is occasion.
|
||
|
||
The stone cannot be removed from its place by any force, because the
|
||
hoop and its feet are one continued piece with that body of adamant
|
||
which constitutes the bottom of the island.
|
||
|
||
By means of this loadstone, the island is made to rise and fall, and
|
||
move from one place to another. For, with respect to that part of the
|
||
earth over which the monarch presides, the stone is endued at one of
|
||
its sides with an attractive power, and at the other with a repulsive.
|
||
Upon placing the magnet erect, with its attracting end towards the
|
||
earth, the island descends; but when the repelling extremity points
|
||
downwards, the island mounts directly upwards. When the position of the
|
||
stone is oblique, the motion of the island is so too. For in this
|
||
magnet, the forces always act in lines parallel to its direction.
|
||
|
||
By this oblique motion, the island is conveyed to different parts of
|
||
the monarch’s dominions. To explain the manner of its progress, let _A_
|
||
_B_ represent a line drawn across the dominions of Balnibarbi, let the
|
||
line _c_ _d_ represent the loadstone, of which let _d_ be the repelling
|
||
end, and _c_ the attracting end, the island being over _C_; let the
|
||
stone be placed in the position _c_ _d_, with its repelling end
|
||
downwards; then the island will be driven upwards obliquely towards
|
||
_D_. When it is arrived at _D_, let the stone be turned upon its axle,
|
||
till its attracting end points towards _E_, and then the island will be
|
||
carried obliquely towards _E_; where, if the stone be again turned upon
|
||
its axle till it stands in the position _E_ _F_, with its repelling
|
||
point downwards, the island will rise obliquely towards _F_, where, by
|
||
directing the attracting end towards _G_, the island may be carried to
|
||
_G_, and from _G_ to _H_, by turning the stone, so as to make its
|
||
repelling extremity to point directly downward. And thus, by changing
|
||
the situation of the stone, as often as there is occasion, the island
|
||
is made to rise and fall by turns in an oblique direction, and by those
|
||
alternate risings and fallings (the obliquity being not considerable)
|
||
is conveyed from one part of the dominions to the other.
|
||
|
||
But it must be observed, that this island cannot move beyond the extent
|
||
of the dominions below, nor can it rise above the height of four miles.
|
||
For which the astronomers (who have written large systems concerning
|
||
the stone) assign the following reason: that the magnetic virtue does
|
||
not extend beyond the distance of four miles, and that the mineral,
|
||
which acts upon the stone in the bowels of the earth, and in the sea
|
||
about six leagues distant from the shore, is not diffused through the
|
||
whole globe, but terminated with the limits of the king’s dominions;
|
||
and it was easy, from the great advantage of such a superior situation,
|
||
for a prince to bring under his obedience whatever country lay within
|
||
the attraction of that magnet.
|
||
|
||
When the stone is put parallel to the plane of the horizon, the island
|
||
stands still; for in that case the extremities of it, being at equal
|
||
distance from the earth, act with equal force, the one in drawing
|
||
downwards, the other in pushing upwards, and consequently no motion can
|
||
ensue.
|
||
|
||
This loadstone is under the care of certain astronomers, who, from time
|
||
to time, give it such positions as the monarch directs. They spend the
|
||
greatest part of their lives in observing the celestial bodies, which
|
||
they do by the assistance of glasses, far excelling ours in goodness.
|
||
For, although their largest telescopes do not exceed three feet, they
|
||
magnify much more than those of a hundred with us, and show the stars
|
||
with greater clearness. This advantage has enabled them to extend their
|
||
discoveries much further than our astronomers in Europe; for they have
|
||
made a catalogue of ten thousand fixed stars, whereas the largest of
|
||
ours do not contain above one third part of that number. They have
|
||
likewise discovered two lesser stars, or satellites, which revolve
|
||
about Mars; whereof the innermost is distant from the centre of the
|
||
primary planet exactly three of his diameters, and the outermost, five;
|
||
the former revolves in the space of ten hours, and the latter in
|
||
twenty-one and a half; so that the squares of their periodical times
|
||
are very near in the same proportion with the cubes of their distance
|
||
from the centre of Mars; which evidently shows them to be governed by
|
||
the same law of gravitation that influences the other heavenly bodies.
|
||
|
||
They have observed ninety-three different comets, and settled their
|
||
periods with great exactness. If this be true (and they affirm it with
|
||
great confidence) it is much to be wished, that their observations were
|
||
made public, whereby the theory of comets, which at present is very
|
||
lame and defective, might be brought to the same perfection with other
|
||
arts of astronomy.
|
||
|
||
The king would be the most absolute prince in the universe, if he could
|
||
but prevail on a ministry to join with him; but these having their
|
||
estates below on the continent, and considering that the office of a
|
||
favourite has a very uncertain tenure, would never consent to the
|
||
enslaving of their country.
|
||
|
||
If any town should engage in rebellion or mutiny, fall into violent
|
||
factions, or refuse to pay the usual tribute, the king has two methods
|
||
of reducing them to obedience. The first and the mildest course is, by
|
||
keeping the island hovering over such a town, and the lands about it,
|
||
whereby he can deprive them of the benefit of the sun and the rain, and
|
||
consequently afflict the inhabitants with dearth and diseases. And if
|
||
the crime deserve it, they are at the same time pelted from above with
|
||
great stones, against which they have no defence but by creeping into
|
||
cellars or caves, while the roofs of their houses are beaten to pieces.
|
||
But if they still continue obstinate, or offer to raise insurrections,
|
||
he proceeds to the last remedy, by letting the island drop directly
|
||
upon their heads, which makes a universal destruction both of houses
|
||
and men. However, this is an extremity to which the prince is seldom
|
||
driven, neither indeed is he willing to put it in execution; nor dare
|
||
his ministers advise him to an action, which, as it would render them
|
||
odious to the people, so it would be a great damage to their own
|
||
estates, which all lie below; for the island is the king’s demesne.
|
||
|
||
But there is still indeed a more weighty reason, why the kings of this
|
||
country have been always averse from executing so terrible an action,
|
||
unless upon the utmost necessity. For, if the town intended to be
|
||
destroyed should have in it any tall rocks, as it generally falls out
|
||
in the larger cities, a situation probably chosen at first with a view
|
||
to prevent such a catastrophe; or if it abound in high spires, or
|
||
pillars of stone, a sudden fall might endanger the bottom or under
|
||
surface of the island, which, although it consist, as I have said, of
|
||
one entire adamant, two hundred yards thick, might happen to crack by
|
||
too great a shock, or burst by approaching too near the fires from the
|
||
houses below, as the backs, both of iron and stone, will often do in
|
||
our chimneys. Of all this the people are well apprised, and understand
|
||
how far to carry their obstinacy, where their liberty or property is
|
||
concerned. And the king, when he is highest provoked, and most
|
||
determined to press a city to rubbish, orders the island to descend
|
||
with great gentleness, out of a pretence of tenderness to his people,
|
||
but, indeed, for fear of breaking the adamantine bottom; in which case,
|
||
it is the opinion of all their philosophers, that the loadstone could
|
||
no longer hold it up, and the whole mass would fall to the ground.
|
||
|
||
About three years before my arrival among them, while the king was in
|
||
his progress over his dominions, there happened an extraordinary
|
||
accident which had like to have put a period to the fate of that
|
||
monarchy, at least as it is now instituted. Lindalino, the second city
|
||
in the kingdom, was the first his majesty visited in his progress.
|
||
Three days after his departure the inhabitants, who had often
|
||
complained of great oppressions, shut the town gates, seized on the
|
||
governor, and with incredible speed and labour erected four large
|
||
towers, one at every corner of the city (which is an exact square),
|
||
equal in height to a strong pointed rock that stands directly in the
|
||
centre of the city. Upon the top of each tower, as well as upon the
|
||
rock, they fixed a great loadstone, and in case their design should
|
||
fail, they had provided a vast quantity of the most combustible fuel,
|
||
hoping to burst therewith the adamantine bottom of the island, if the
|
||
loadstone project should miscarry.
|
||
|
||
It was eight months before the king had perfect notice that the
|
||
Lindalinians were in rebellion. He then commanded that the island
|
||
should be wafted over the city. The people were unanimous, and had laid
|
||
in store of provisions, and a great river runs through the middle of
|
||
the town. The king hovered over them several days to deprive them of
|
||
the sun and the rain. He ordered many packthreads to be let down, yet
|
||
not a person offered to send up a petition, but instead thereof very
|
||
bold demands, the redress of all their grievances, great immunities,
|
||
the choice of their own governor, and other the like exorbitances. Upon
|
||
which his majesty commanded all the inhabitants of the island to cast
|
||
great stones from the lower gallery into the town; but the citizens had
|
||
provided against this mischief by conveying their persons and effects
|
||
into the four towers, and other strong buildings, and vaults
|
||
underground.
|
||
|
||
The king being now determined to reduce this proud people, ordered that
|
||
the island should descend gently within forty yards of the top of the
|
||
towers and rock. This was accordingly done; but the officers employed
|
||
in that work found the descent much speedier than usual, and by turning
|
||
the loadstone could not without great difficulty keep it in a firm
|
||
position, but found the island inclining to fall. They sent the king
|
||
immediate intelligence of this astonishing event, and begged his
|
||
majesty’s permission to raise the island higher; the king consented, a
|
||
general council was called, and the officers of the loadstone ordered
|
||
to attend. One of the oldest and expertest among them obtained leave to
|
||
try an experiment, he took a strong line of an hundred yards, and the
|
||
island being raised over the town above the attracting power they had
|
||
felt, he fastened a piece of adamant to the end of his line, which had
|
||
in it a mixture of iron mineral, of the same nature with that whereof
|
||
the bottom or lower surface of the island is composed, and from the
|
||
lower gallery let it down slowly towards the top of the towers. The
|
||
adamant was not descended four yards, before the officer felt it drawn
|
||
so strongly downwards that he could hardly pull it back, he then threw
|
||
down several small pieces of adamant, and observed that they were all
|
||
violently attracted by the top of the tower. The same experiment was
|
||
made on the other three towers, and on the rock with the same effect.
|
||
|
||
This incident broke entirely the king’s measures, and (to dwell no
|
||
longer on other circumstances) he was forced to give the town their own
|
||
conditions.
|
||
|
||
I was assured by a great minister that if the island had descended so
|
||
near the town as not to be able to raise itself, the citizens were
|
||
determined to fix it for ever, to kill the king and all his servants,
|
||
and entirely change the government.
|
||
|
||
By a fundamental law of this realm, neither the king, nor either of his
|
||
two eldest sons, are permitted to leave the island; nor the queen, till
|
||
she is past child-bearing.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER IV.
|
||
|
||
The author leaves Laputa; is conveyed to Balnibarbi; arrives at the
|
||
metropolis. A description of the metropolis, and the country adjoining.
|
||
The author hospitably received by a great lord. His conversation with
|
||
that lord.
|
||
|
||
|
||
Although I cannot say that I was ill treated in this island, yet I must
|
||
confess I thought myself too much neglected, not without some degree of
|
||
contempt; for neither prince nor people appeared to be curious in any
|
||
part of knowledge, except mathematics and music, wherein I was far
|
||
their inferior, and upon that account very little regarded.
|
||
|
||
On the other side, after having seen all the curiosities of the island,
|
||
I was very desirous to leave it, being heartily weary of those people.
|
||
They were indeed excellent in two sciences for which I have great
|
||
esteem, and wherein I am not unversed; but, at the same time, so
|
||
abstracted and involved in speculation, that I never met with such
|
||
disagreeable companions. I conversed only with women, tradesmen,
|
||
flappers, and court-pages, during two months of my abode there; by
|
||
which, at last, I rendered myself extremely contemptible; yet these
|
||
were the only people from whom I could ever receive a reasonable
|
||
answer.
|
||
|
||
I had obtained, by hard study, a good degree of knowledge in their
|
||
language; I was weary of being confined to an island where I received
|
||
so little countenance, and resolved to leave it with the first
|
||
opportunity.
|
||
|
||
There was a great lord at court, nearly related to the king, and for
|
||
that reason alone used with respect. He was universally reckoned the
|
||
most ignorant and stupid person among them. He had performed many
|
||
eminent services for the crown, had great natural and acquired parts,
|
||
adorned with integrity and honour; but so ill an ear for music, that
|
||
his detractors reported, “he had been often known to beat time in the
|
||
wrong place;” neither could his tutors, without extreme difficulty,
|
||
teach him to demonstrate the most easy proposition in the mathematics.
|
||
He was pleased to show me many marks of favour, often did me the honour
|
||
of a visit, desired to be informed in the affairs of Europe, the laws
|
||
and customs, the manners and learning of the several countries where I
|
||
had travelled. He listened to me with great attention, and made very
|
||
wise observations on all I spoke. He had two flappers attending him for
|
||
state, but never made use of them, except at court and in visits of
|
||
ceremony, and would always command them to withdraw, when we were alone
|
||
together.
|
||
|
||
I entreated this illustrious person, to intercede in my behalf with his
|
||
majesty, for leave to depart; which he accordingly did, as he was
|
||
pleased to tell me, with regret: for indeed he had made me several
|
||
offers very advantageous, which, however, I refused, with expressions
|
||
of the highest acknowledgment.
|
||
|
||
On the 16th day of February I took leave of his majesty and the court.
|
||
The king made me a present to the value of about two hundred pounds
|
||
English, and my protector, his kinsman, as much more, together with a
|
||
letter of recommendation to a friend of his in Lagado, the metropolis.
|
||
The island being then hovering over a mountain about two miles from it,
|
||
I was let down from the lowest gallery, in the same manner as I had
|
||
been taken up.
|
||
|
||
The continent, as far as it is subject to the monarch of the flying
|
||
island, passes under the general name of _Balnibarbi_; and the
|
||
metropolis, as I said before, is called _Lagado_. I felt some little
|
||
satisfaction in finding myself on firm ground. I walked to the city
|
||
without any concern, being clad like one of the natives, and
|
||
sufficiently instructed to converse with them. I soon found out the
|
||
person’s house to whom I was recommended, presented my letter from his
|
||
friend the grandee in the island, and was received with much kindness.
|
||
This great lord, whose name was Munodi, ordered me an apartment in his
|
||
own house, where I continued during my stay, and was entertained in a
|
||
most hospitable manner.
|
||
|
||
The next morning after my arrival, he took me in his chariot to see the
|
||
town, which is about half the bigness of London; but the houses very
|
||
strangely built, and most of them out of repair. The people in the
|
||
streets walked fast, looked wild, their eyes fixed, and were generally
|
||
in rags. We passed through one of the town gates, and went about three
|
||
miles into the country, where I saw many labourers working with several
|
||
sorts of tools in the ground, but was not able to conjecture what they
|
||
were about; neither did I observe any expectation either of corn or
|
||
grass, although the soil appeared to be excellent. I could not forbear
|
||
admiring at these odd appearances, both in town and country; and I made
|
||
bold to desire my conductor, that he would be pleased to explain to me,
|
||
what could be meant by so many busy heads, hands, and faces, both in
|
||
the streets and the fields, because I did not discover any good effects
|
||
they produced; but, on the contrary, I never knew a soil so unhappily
|
||
cultivated, houses so ill contrived and so ruinous, or a people whose
|
||
countenances and habit expressed so much misery and want.
|
||
|
||
This lord Munodi was a person of the first rank, and had been some
|
||
years governor of Lagado; but, by a cabal of ministers, was discharged
|
||
for insufficiency. However, the king treated him with tenderness, as a
|
||
well-meaning man, but of a low contemptible understanding.
|
||
|
||
When I gave that free censure of the country and its inhabitants, he
|
||
made no further answer than by telling me, “that I had not been long
|
||
enough among them to form a judgment; and that the different nations of
|
||
the world had different customs;” with other common topics to the same
|
||
purpose. But, when we returned to his palace, he asked me “how I liked
|
||
the building, what absurdities I observed, and what quarrel I had with
|
||
the dress or looks of his domestics?” This he might safely do; because
|
||
every thing about him was magnificent, regular, and polite. I answered,
|
||
“that his excellency’s prudence, quality, and fortune, had exempted him
|
||
from those defects, which folly and beggary had produced in others.” He
|
||
said, “if I would go with him to his country-house, about twenty miles
|
||
distant, where his estate lay, there would be more leisure for this
|
||
kind of conversation.” I told his excellency “that I was entirely at
|
||
his disposal;” and accordingly we set out next morning.
|
||
|
||
During our journey he made me observe the several methods used by
|
||
farmers in managing their lands, which to me were wholly unaccountable;
|
||
for, except in some very few places, I could not discover one ear of
|
||
corn or blade of grass. But, in three hours travelling, the scene was
|
||
wholly altered; we came into a most beautiful country; farmers’ houses,
|
||
at small distances, neatly built; the fields enclosed, containing
|
||
vineyards, corn-grounds, and meadows. Neither do I remember to have
|
||
seen a more delightful prospect. His excellency observed my countenance
|
||
to clear up; he told me, with a sigh, “that there his estate began, and
|
||
would continue the same, till we should come to his house: that his
|
||
countrymen ridiculed and despised him, for managing his affairs no
|
||
better, and for setting so ill an example to the kingdom; which,
|
||
however, was followed by very few, such as were old, and wilful, and
|
||
weak like himself.”
|
||
|
||
We came at length to the house, which was indeed a noble structure,
|
||
built according to the best rules of ancient architecture. The
|
||
fountains, gardens, walks, avenues, and groves, were all disposed with
|
||
exact judgment and taste. I gave due praises to every thing I saw,
|
||
whereof his excellency took not the least notice till after supper;
|
||
when, there being no third companion, he told me with a very melancholy
|
||
air “that he doubted he must throw down his houses in town and country,
|
||
to rebuild them after the present mode; destroy all his plantations,
|
||
and cast others into such a form as modern usage required, and give the
|
||
same directions to all his tenants, unless he would submit to incur the
|
||
censure of pride, singularity, affectation, ignorance, caprice, and
|
||
perhaps increase his majesty’s displeasure; that the admiration I
|
||
appeared to be under would cease or diminish, when he had informed me
|
||
of some particulars which, probably, I never heard of at court, the
|
||
people there being too much taken up in their own speculations, to have
|
||
regard to what passed here below.”
|
||
|
||
The sum of his discourse was to this effect: “That about forty years
|
||
ago, certain persons went up to Laputa, either upon business or
|
||
diversion, and, after five months continuance, came back with a very
|
||
little smattering in mathematics, but full of volatile spirits acquired
|
||
in that airy region: that these persons, upon their return, began to
|
||
dislike the management of every thing below, and fell into schemes of
|
||
putting all arts, sciences, languages, and mechanics, upon a new foot.
|
||
To this end, they procured a royal patent for erecting an academy of
|
||
projectors in Lagado; and the humour prevailed so strongly among the
|
||
people, that there is not a town of any consequence in the kingdom
|
||
without such an academy. In these colleges the professors contrive new
|
||
rules and methods of agriculture and building, and new instruments, and
|
||
tools for all trades and manufactures; whereby, as they undertake, one
|
||
man shall do the work of ten; a palace may be built in a week, of
|
||
materials so durable as to last for ever without repairing. All the
|
||
fruits of the earth shall come to maturity at whatever season we think
|
||
fit to choose, and increase a hundred fold more than they do at
|
||
present; with innumerable other happy proposals. The only inconvenience
|
||
is, that none of these projects are yet brought to perfection; and in
|
||
the mean time, the whole country lies miserably waste, the houses in
|
||
ruins, and the people without food or clothes. By all which, instead of
|
||
being discouraged, they are fifty times more violently bent upon
|
||
prosecuting their schemes, driven equally on by hope and despair: that
|
||
as for himself, being not of an enterprising spirit, he was content to
|
||
go on in the old forms, to live in the houses his ancestors had built,
|
||
and act as they did, in every part of life, without innovation: that
|
||
some few other persons of quality and gentry had done the same, but
|
||
were looked on with an eye of contempt and ill-will, as enemies to art,
|
||
ignorant, and ill common-wealth’s men, preferring their own ease and
|
||
sloth before the general improvement of their country.”
|
||
|
||
His lordship added, “That he would not, by any further particulars,
|
||
prevent the pleasure I should certainly take in viewing the grand
|
||
academy, whither he was resolved I should go.” He only desired me to
|
||
observe a ruined building, upon the side of a mountain about three
|
||
miles distant, of which he gave me this account: “That he had a very
|
||
convenient mill within half a mile of his house, turned by a current
|
||
from a large river, and sufficient for his own family, as well as a
|
||
great number of his tenants; that about seven years ago, a club of
|
||
those projectors came to him with proposals to destroy this mill, and
|
||
build another on the side of that mountain, on the long ridge whereof a
|
||
long canal must be cut, for a repository of water, to be conveyed up by
|
||
pipes and engines to supply the mill, because the wind and air upon a
|
||
height agitated the water, and thereby made it fitter for motion, and
|
||
because the water, descending down a declivity, would turn the mill
|
||
with half the current of a river whose course is more upon a level.” He
|
||
said, “that being then not very well with the court, and pressed by
|
||
many of his friends, he complied with the proposal; and after employing
|
||
a hundred men for two years, the work miscarried, the projectors went
|
||
off, laying the blame entirely upon him, railing at him ever since, and
|
||
putting others upon the same experiment, with equal assurance of
|
||
success, as well as equal disappointment.”
|
||
|
||
In a few days we came back to town; and his excellency, considering the
|
||
bad character he had in the academy, would not go with me himself, but
|
||
recommended me to a friend of his, to bear me company thither. My lord
|
||
was pleased to represent me as a great admirer of projects, and a
|
||
person of much curiosity and easy belief; which, indeed, was not
|
||
without truth; for I had myself been a sort of projector in my younger
|
||
days.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER V.
|
||
|
||
The author permitted to see the grand academy of Lagado. The academy
|
||
largely described. The arts wherein the professors employ themselves.
|
||
|
||
|
||
This academy is not an entire single building, but a continuation of
|
||
several houses on both sides of a street, which growing waste, was
|
||
purchased and applied to that use.
|
||
|
||
I was received very kindly by the warden, and went for many days to the
|
||
academy. Every room has in it one or more projectors; and I believe I
|
||
could not be in fewer than five hundred rooms.
|
||
|
||
The first man I saw was of a meagre aspect, with sooty hands and face,
|
||
his hair and beard long, ragged, and singed in several places. His
|
||
clothes, shirt, and skin, were all of the same colour. He had been
|
||
eight years upon a project for extracting sunbeams out of cucumbers,
|
||
which were to be put in phials hermetically sealed, and let out to warm
|
||
the air in raw inclement summers. He told me, he did not doubt, that,
|
||
in eight years more, he should be able to supply the governor’s gardens
|
||
with sunshine, at a reasonable rate; but he complained that his stock
|
||
was low, and entreated me “to give him something as an encouragement to
|
||
ingenuity, especially since this had been a very dear season for
|
||
cucumbers.” I made him a small present, for my lord had furnished me
|
||
with money on purpose, because he knew their practice of begging from
|
||
all who go to see them.
|
||
|
||
I went into another chamber, but was ready to hasten back, being almost
|
||
overcome with a horrible stink. My conductor pressed me forward,
|
||
conjuring me in a whisper “to give no offence, which would be highly
|
||
resented;” and therefore I durst not so much as stop my nose. The
|
||
projector of this cell was the most ancient student of the academy; his
|
||
face and beard were of a pale yellow; his hands and clothes daubed over
|
||
with filth. When I was presented to him, he gave me a close embrace, a
|
||
compliment I could well have excused. His employment, from his first
|
||
coming into the academy, was an operation to reduce human excrement to
|
||
its original food, by separating the several parts, removing the
|
||
tincture which it receives from the gall, making the odour exhale, and
|
||
scumming off the saliva. He had a weekly allowance, from the society,
|
||
of a vessel filled with human ordure, about the bigness of a Bristol
|
||
barrel.
|
||
|
||
I saw another at work to calcine ice into gunpowder; who likewise
|
||
showed me a treatise he had written concerning the malleability of
|
||
fire, which he intended to publish.
|
||
|
||
There was a most ingenious architect, who had contrived a new method
|
||
for building houses, by beginning at the roof, and working downward to
|
||
the foundation; which he justified to me, by the like practice of those
|
||
two prudent insects, the bee and the spider.
|
||
|
||
There was a man born blind, who had several apprentices in his own
|
||
condition: their employment was to mix colours for painters, which
|
||
their master taught them to distinguish by feeling and smelling. It was
|
||
indeed my misfortune to find them at that time not very perfect in
|
||
their lessons, and the professor himself happened to be generally
|
||
mistaken. This artist is much encouraged and esteemed by the whole
|
||
fraternity.
|
||
|
||
In another apartment I was highly pleased with a projector who had
|
||
found a device of ploughing the ground with hogs, to save the charges
|
||
of ploughs, cattle, and labour. The method is this: in an acre of
|
||
ground you bury, at six inches distance and eight deep, a quantity of
|
||
acorns, dates, chestnuts, and other mast or vegetables, whereof these
|
||
animals are fondest; then you drive six hundred or more of them into
|
||
the field, where, in a few days, they will root up the whole ground in
|
||
search of their food, and make it fit for sowing, at the same time
|
||
manuring it with their dung: it is true, upon experiment, they found
|
||
the charge and trouble very great, and they had little or no crop.
|
||
However it is not doubted, that this invention may be capable of great
|
||
improvement.
|
||
|
||
I went into another room, where the walls and ceiling were all hung
|
||
round with cobwebs, except a narrow passage for the artist to go in and
|
||
out. At my entrance, he called aloud to me, “not to disturb his webs.”
|
||
He lamented “the fatal mistake the world had been so long in, of using
|
||
silkworms, while we had such plenty of domestic insects who infinitely
|
||
excelled the former, because they understood how to weave, as well as
|
||
spin.” And he proposed further, “that by employing spiders, the charge
|
||
of dyeing silks should be wholly saved;” whereof I was fully convinced,
|
||
when he showed me a vast number of flies most beautifully coloured,
|
||
wherewith he fed his spiders, assuring us “that the webs would take a
|
||
tincture from them; and as he had them of all hues, he hoped to fit
|
||
everybody’s fancy, as soon as he could find proper food for the flies,
|
||
of certain gums, oils, and other glutinous matter, to give a strength
|
||
and consistence to the threads.”
|
||
|
||
There was an astronomer, who had undertaken to place a sun-dial upon
|
||
the great weathercock on the town-house, by adjusting the annual and
|
||
diurnal motions of the earth and sun, so as to answer and coincide with
|
||
all accidental turnings of the wind.
|
||
|
||
I was complaining of a small fit of the colic, upon which my conductor
|
||
led me into a room where a great physician resided, who was famous for
|
||
curing that disease, by contrary operations from the same instrument.
|
||
He had a large pair of bellows, with a long slender muzzle of ivory.
|
||
This he conveyed eight inches up the anus, and drawing in the wind, he
|
||
affirmed he could make the guts as lank as a dried bladder. But when
|
||
the disease was more stubborn and violent, he let in the muzzle while
|
||
the bellows were full of wind, which he discharged into the body of the
|
||
patient; then withdrew the instrument to replenish it, clapping his
|
||
thumb strongly against the orifice of the fundament; and this being
|
||
repeated three or four times, the adventitious wind would rush out,
|
||
bringing the noxious along with it, (like water put into a pump), and
|
||
the patient recovered. I saw him try both experiments upon a dog, but
|
||
could not discern any effect from the former. After the latter the
|
||
animal was ready to burst, and made so violent a discharge as was very
|
||
offensive to me and my companions. The dog died on the spot, and we
|
||
left the doctor endeavouring to recover him, by the same operation.
|
||
|
||
I visited many other apartments, but shall not trouble my reader with
|
||
all the curiosities I observed, being studious of brevity.
|
||
|
||
I had hitherto seen only one side of the academy, the other being
|
||
appropriated to the advancers of speculative learning, of whom I shall
|
||
say something, when I have mentioned one illustrious person more, who
|
||
is called among them “the universal artist.” He told us “he had been
|
||
thirty years employing his thoughts for the improvement of human life.”
|
||
He had two large rooms full of wonderful curiosities, and fifty men at
|
||
work. Some were condensing air into a dry tangible substance, by
|
||
extracting the nitre, and letting the aqueous or fluid particles
|
||
percolate; others softening marble, for pillows and pin-cushions;
|
||
others petrifying the hoofs of a living horse, to preserve them from
|
||
foundering. The artist himself was at that time busy upon two great
|
||
designs; the first, to sow land with chaff, wherein he affirmed the
|
||
true seminal virtue to be contained, as he demonstrated by several
|
||
experiments, which I was not skilful enough to comprehend. The other
|
||
was, by a certain composition of gums, minerals, and vegetables,
|
||
outwardly applied, to prevent the growth of wool upon two young lambs;
|
||
and he hoped, in a reasonable time to propagate the breed of naked
|
||
sheep, all over the kingdom.
|
||
|
||
We crossed a walk to the other part of the academy, where, as I have
|
||
already said, the projectors in speculative learning resided.
|
||
|
||
The first professor I saw, was in a very large room, with forty pupils
|
||
about him. After salutation, observing me to look earnestly upon a
|
||
frame, which took up the greatest part of both the length and breadth
|
||
of the room, he said, “Perhaps I might wonder to see him employed in a
|
||
project for improving speculative knowledge, by practical and
|
||
mechanical operations. But the world would soon be sensible of its
|
||
usefulness; and he flattered himself, that a more noble, exalted
|
||
thought never sprang in any other man’s head. Every one knew how
|
||
laborious the usual method is of attaining to arts and sciences;
|
||
whereas, by his contrivance, the most ignorant person, at a reasonable
|
||
charge, and with a little bodily labour, might write books in
|
||
philosophy, poetry, politics, laws, mathematics, and theology, without
|
||
the least assistance from genius or study.” He then led me to the
|
||
frame, about the sides, whereof all his pupils stood in ranks. It was
|
||
twenty feet square, placed in the middle of the room. The superficies
|
||
was composed of several bits of wood, about the bigness of a die, but
|
||
some larger than others. They were all linked together by slender
|
||
wires. These bits of wood were covered, on every square, with paper
|
||
pasted on them; and on these papers were written all the words of their
|
||
language, in their several moods, tenses, and declensions; but without
|
||
any order. The professor then desired me “to observe; for he was going
|
||
to set his engine at work.” The pupils, at his command, took each of
|
||
them hold of an iron handle, whereof there were forty fixed round the
|
||
edges of the frame; and giving them a sudden turn, the whole
|
||
disposition of the words was entirely changed. He then commanded
|
||
six-and-thirty of the lads, to read the several lines softly, as they
|
||
appeared upon the frame; and where they found three or four words
|
||
together that might make part of a sentence, they dictated to the four
|
||
remaining boys, who were scribes. This work was repeated three or four
|
||
times, and at every turn, the engine was so contrived, that the words
|
||
shifted into new places, as the square bits of wood moved upside down.
|
||
|
||
The frame
|
||
|
||
|
||
Six hours a day the young students were employed in this labour; and
|
||
the professor showed me several volumes in large folio, already
|
||
collected, of broken sentences, which he intended to piece together,
|
||
and out of those rich materials, to give the world a complete body of
|
||
all arts and sciences; which, however, might be still improved, and
|
||
much expedited, if the public would raise a fund for making and
|
||
employing five hundred such frames in Lagado, and oblige the managers
|
||
to contribute in common their several collections.
|
||
|
||
He assured me “that this invention had employed all his thoughts from
|
||
his youth; that he had emptied the whole vocabulary into his frame, and
|
||
made the strictest computation of the general proportion there is in
|
||
books between the numbers of particles, nouns, and verbs, and other
|
||
parts of speech.”
|
||
|
||
I made my humblest acknowledgment to this illustrious person, for his
|
||
great communicativeness; and promised, “if ever I had the good fortune
|
||
to return to my native country, that I would do him justice, as the
|
||
sole inventor of this wonderful machine;” the form and contrivance of
|
||
which I desired leave to delineate on paper, as in the figure here
|
||
annexed. I told him, “although it were the custom of our learned in
|
||
Europe to steal inventions from each other, who had thereby at least
|
||
this advantage, that it became a controversy which was the right owner;
|
||
yet I would take such caution, that he should have the honour entire,
|
||
without a rival.”
|
||
|
||
We next went to the school of languages, where three professors sat in
|
||
consultation upon improving that of their own country.
|
||
|
||
The first project was to shorten discourse by cutting polysyllables
|
||
into one, and leaving out verbs and participles, because, in reality,
|
||
all things imaginable are but nouns.
|
||
|
||
The other project was, a scheme for entirely abolishing all words
|
||
whatsoever; and this was urged as a great advantage in point of health,
|
||
as well as brevity. For it is plain, that every word we speak is, in
|
||
some degree, a diminution of our lungs by corrosion, and, consequently,
|
||
contributes to the shortening of our lives. An expedient was therefore
|
||
offered, “that since words are only names for _things_, it would be
|
||
more convenient for all men to carry about them such things as were
|
||
necessary to express a particular business they are to discourse on.”
|
||
And this invention would certainly have taken place, to the great ease
|
||
as well as health of the subject, if the women, in conjunction with the
|
||
vulgar and illiterate, had not threatened to raise a rebellion unless
|
||
they might be allowed the liberty to speak with their tongues, after
|
||
the manner of their forefathers; such constant irreconcilable enemies
|
||
to science are the common people. However, many of the most learned and
|
||
wise adhere to the new scheme of expressing themselves by things; which
|
||
has only this inconvenience attending it, that if a man’s business be
|
||
very great, and of various kinds, he must be obliged, in proportion, to
|
||
carry a greater bundle of things upon his back, unless he can afford
|
||
one or two strong servants to attend him. I have often beheld two of
|
||
those sages almost sinking under the weight of their packs, like
|
||
pedlars among us, who, when they met in the street, would lay down
|
||
their loads, open their sacks, and hold conversation for an hour
|
||
together; then put up their implements, help each other to resume their
|
||
burdens, and take their leave.
|
||
|
||
But for short conversations, a man may carry implements in his pockets,
|
||
and under his arms, enough to supply him; and in his house, he cannot
|
||
be at a loss. Therefore the room where company meet who practise this
|
||
art, is full of all things, ready at hand, requisite to furnish matter
|
||
for this kind of artificial converse.
|
||
|
||
Another great advantage proposed by this invention was, that it would
|
||
serve as a universal language, to be understood in all civilised
|
||
nations, whose goods and utensils are generally of the same kind, or
|
||
nearly resembling, so that their uses might easily be comprehended. And
|
||
thus ambassadors would be qualified to treat with foreign princes, or
|
||
ministers of state, to whose tongues they were utter strangers.
|
||
|
||
I was at the mathematical school, where the master taught his pupils
|
||
after a method scarce imaginable to us in Europe. The proposition, and
|
||
demonstration, were fairly written on a thin wafer, with ink composed
|
||
of a cephalic tincture. This, the student was to swallow upon a fasting
|
||
stomach, and for three days following, eat nothing but bread and water.
|
||
As the wafer digested, the tincture mounted to his brain, bearing the
|
||
proposition along with it. But the success has not hitherto been
|
||
answerable, partly by some error in the _quantum_ or composition, and
|
||
partly by the perverseness of lads, to whom this bolus is so nauseous,
|
||
that they generally steal aside, and discharge it upwards, before it
|
||
can operate; neither have they been yet persuaded to use so long an
|
||
abstinence, as the prescription requires.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VI.
|
||
|
||
A further account of the academy. The author proposes some
|
||
improvements, which are honourably received.
|
||
|
||
|
||
In the school of political projectors, I was but ill entertained; the
|
||
professors appearing, in my judgment, wholly out of their senses, which
|
||
is a scene that never fails to make me melancholy. These unhappy people
|
||
were proposing schemes for persuading monarchs to choose favourites
|
||
upon the score of their wisdom, capacity, and virtue; of teaching
|
||
ministers to consult the public good; of rewarding merit, great
|
||
abilities, eminent services; of instructing princes to know their true
|
||
interest, by placing it on the same foundation with that of their
|
||
people; of choosing for employments persons qualified to exercise them,
|
||
with many other wild, impossible chimeras, that never entered before
|
||
into the heart of man to conceive; and confirmed in me the old
|
||
observation, “that there is nothing so extravagant and irrational,
|
||
which some philosophers have not maintained for truth.”
|
||
|
||
But, however, I shall so far do justice to this part of the Academy, as
|
||
to acknowledge that all of them were not so visionary. There was a most
|
||
ingenious doctor, who seemed to be perfectly versed in the whole nature
|
||
and system of government. This illustrious person had very usefully
|
||
employed his studies, in finding out effectual remedies for all
|
||
diseases and corruptions to which the several kinds of public
|
||
administration are subject, by the vices or infirmities of those who
|
||
govern, as well as by the licentiousness of those who are to obey. For
|
||
instance: whereas all writers and reasoners have agreed, that there is
|
||
a strict universal resemblance between the natural and the political
|
||
body; can there be any thing more evident, than that the health of both
|
||
must be preserved, and the diseases cured, by the same prescriptions?
|
||
It is allowed, that senates and great councils are often troubled with
|
||
redundant, ebullient, and other peccant humours; with many diseases of
|
||
the head, and more of the heart; with strong convulsions, with grievous
|
||
contractions of the nerves and sinews in both hands, but especially the
|
||
right; with spleen, flatus, vertigos, and deliriums; with scrofulous
|
||
tumours, full of fetid purulent matter; with sour frothy ructations:
|
||
with canine appetites, and crudeness of digestion, besides many others,
|
||
needless to mention. This doctor therefore proposed, “that upon the
|
||
meeting of the senate, certain physicians should attend it the three
|
||
first days of their sitting, and at the close of each day’s debate feel
|
||
the pulses of every senator; after which, having maturely considered
|
||
and consulted upon the nature of the several maladies, and the methods
|
||
of cure, they should on the fourth day return to the senate house,
|
||
attended by their apothecaries stored with proper medicines; and before
|
||
the members sat, administer to each of them lenitives, aperitives,
|
||
abstersives, corrosives, restringents, palliatives, laxatives,
|
||
cephalalgics, icterics, apophlegmatics, acoustics, as their several
|
||
cases required; and, according as these medicines should operate,
|
||
repeat, alter, or omit them, at the next meeting.”
|
||
|
||
This project could not be of any great expense to the public; and might
|
||
in my poor opinion, be of much use for the despatch of business, in
|
||
those countries where senates have any share in the legislative power;
|
||
beget unanimity, shorten debates, open a few mouths which are now
|
||
closed, and close many more which are now open; curb the petulancy of
|
||
the young, and correct the positiveness of the old; rouse the stupid,
|
||
and damp the pert.
|
||
|
||
Again, because it is a general complaint, that the favourites of
|
||
princes are troubled with short and weak memories; the same doctor
|
||
proposed, “that whoever attended a first minister, after having told
|
||
his business, with the utmost brevity and in the plainest words,
|
||
should, at his departure, give the said minister a tweak by the nose,
|
||
or a kick in the belly, or tread on his corns, or lug him thrice by
|
||
both ears, or run a pin into his breech; or pinch his arm black and
|
||
blue, to prevent forgetfulness; and at every levee day, repeat the same
|
||
operation, till the business were done, or absolutely refused.”
|
||
|
||
He likewise directed, “that every senator in the great council of a
|
||
nation, after he had delivered his opinion, and argued in the defence
|
||
of it, should be obliged to give his vote directly contrary; because if
|
||
that were done, the result would infallibly terminate in the good of
|
||
the public.”
|
||
|
||
When parties in a state are violent, he offered a wonderful contrivance
|
||
to reconcile them. The method is this: You take a hundred leaders of
|
||
each party; you dispose them into couples of such whose heads are
|
||
nearest of a size; then let two nice operators saw off the occiput of
|
||
each couple at the same time, in such a manner that the brain may be
|
||
equally divided. Let the occiputs, thus cut off, be interchanged,
|
||
applying each to the head of his opposite party-man. It seems indeed to
|
||
be a work that requires some exactness, but the professor assured us,
|
||
“that if it were dexterously performed, the cure would be infallible.”
|
||
For he argued thus: “that the two half brains being left to debate the
|
||
matter between themselves within the space of one skull, would soon
|
||
come to a good understanding, and produce that moderation, as well as
|
||
regularity of thinking, so much to be wished for in the heads of those,
|
||
who imagine they come into the world only to watch and govern its
|
||
motion: and as to the difference of brains, in quantity or quality,
|
||
among those who are directors in faction,” the doctor assured us, from
|
||
his own knowledge, that “it was a perfect trifle.”
|
||
|
||
I heard a very warm debate between two professors, about the most
|
||
commodious and effectual ways and means of raising money, without
|
||
grieving the subject. The first affirmed, “the justest method would be,
|
||
to lay a certain tax upon vices and folly; and the sum fixed upon every
|
||
man to be rated, after the fairest manner, by a jury of his
|
||
neighbours.” The second was of an opinion directly contrary; “to tax
|
||
those qualities of body and mind, for which men chiefly value
|
||
themselves; the rate to be more or less, according to the degrees of
|
||
excelling; the decision whereof should be left entirely to their own
|
||
breast.” The highest tax was upon men who are the greatest favourites
|
||
of the other sex, and the assessments, according to the number and
|
||
nature of the favours they have received; for which, they are allowed
|
||
to be their own vouchers. Wit, valour, and politeness, were likewise
|
||
proposed to be largely taxed, and collected in the same manner, by
|
||
every person’s giving his own word for the quantum of what he
|
||
possessed. But as to honour, justice, wisdom, and learning, they should
|
||
not be taxed at all; because they are qualifications of so singular a
|
||
kind, that no man will either allow them in his neighbour or value them
|
||
in himself.
|
||
|
||
The women were proposed to be taxed according to their beauty and skill
|
||
in dressing, wherein they had the same privilege with the men, to be
|
||
determined by their own judgment. But constancy, chastity, good sense,
|
||
and good nature, were not rated, because they would not bear the charge
|
||
of collecting.
|
||
|
||
To keep senators in the interest of the crown, it was proposed that the
|
||
members should raffle for employments; every man first taking an oath,
|
||
and giving security, that he would vote for the court, whether he won
|
||
or not; after which, the losers had, in their turn, the liberty of
|
||
raffling upon the next vacancy. Thus, hope and expectation would be
|
||
kept alive; none would complain of broken promises, but impute their
|
||
disappointments wholly to fortune, whose shoulders are broader and
|
||
stronger than those of a ministry.
|
||
|
||
Another professor showed me a large paper of instructions for
|
||
discovering plots and conspiracies against the government. He advised
|
||
great statesmen to examine into the diet of all suspected persons;
|
||
their times of eating; upon which side they lay in bed; with which hand
|
||
they wipe their posteriors; take a strict view of their excrements,
|
||
and, from the colour, the odour, the taste, the consistence, the
|
||
crudeness or maturity of digestion, form a judgment of their thoughts
|
||
and designs; because men are never so serious, thoughtful, and intent,
|
||
as when they are at stool, which he found by frequent experiment; for,
|
||
in such conjunctures, when he used, merely as a trial, to consider
|
||
which was the best way of murdering the king, his ordure would have a
|
||
tincture of green; but quite different, when he thought only of raising
|
||
an insurrection, or burning the metropolis.
|
||
|
||
The whole discourse was written with great acuteness, containing many
|
||
observations, both curious and useful for politicians; but, as I
|
||
conceived, not altogether complete. This I ventured to tell the author,
|
||
and offered, if he pleased, to supply him with some additions. He
|
||
received my proposition with more compliance than is usual among
|
||
writers, especially those of the projecting species, professing “he
|
||
would be glad to receive further information.”
|
||
|
||
I told him, “that in the kingdom of Tribnia, [454a] by the natives
|
||
called Langden, [454b] where I had sojourned some time in my travels,
|
||
the bulk of the people consist in a manner wholly of discoverers,
|
||
witnesses, informers, accusers, prosecutors, evidences, swearers,
|
||
together with their several subservient and subaltern instruments, all
|
||
under the colours, the conduct, and the pay of ministers of state, and
|
||
their deputies. The plots, in that kingdom, are usually the workmanship
|
||
of those persons who desire to raise their own characters of profound
|
||
politicians; to restore new vigour to a crazy administration; to stifle
|
||
or divert general discontents; to fill their coffers with forfeitures;
|
||
and raise, or sink the opinion of public credit, as either shall best
|
||
answer their private advantage. It is first agreed and settled among
|
||
them, what suspected persons shall be accused of a plot; then,
|
||
effectual care is taken to secure all their letters and papers, and put
|
||
the owners in chains. These papers are delivered to a set of artists,
|
||
very dexterous in finding out the mysterious meanings of words,
|
||
syllables, and letters: for instance, they can discover a close stool,
|
||
to signify a privy council; a flock of geese, a senate; a lame dog, an
|
||
invader; a codshead; a ——; the plague, a standing army; a buzzard, a
|
||
prime minister; the gout, a high priest; a gibbet, a secretary of
|
||
state; a chamber pot, a committee of grandees; a sieve, a court lady; a
|
||
broom, a revolution; a mouse-trap, an employment; a bottomless pit, a
|
||
treasury; a sink, a court; a cap and bells, a favourite; a broken reed,
|
||
a court of justice; an empty tun, a general; a running sore, the
|
||
administration. [455]
|
||
|
||
“When this method fails, they have two others more effectual, which the
|
||
learned among them call acrostics and anagrams. First, they can
|
||
decipher all initial letters into political meanings. Thus _N_. shall
|
||
signify a plot; _B_. a regiment of horse; _L_. a fleet at sea; or,
|
||
secondly, by transposing the letters of the alphabet in any suspected
|
||
paper, they can lay open the deepest designs of a discontented party.
|
||
So, for example, if I should say, in a letter to a friend, ‘Our brother
|
||
Tom has just got the piles,’ a skilful decipherer would discover, that
|
||
the same letters which compose that sentence, may be analysed into the
|
||
following words, ‘Resist, a plot is brought home; The tour.’ And this
|
||
is the anagrammatic method.”
|
||
|
||
The professor made me great acknowledgments for communicating these
|
||
observations, and promised to make honourable mention of me in his
|
||
treatise.
|
||
|
||
I saw nothing in this country that could invite me to a longer
|
||
continuance, and began to think of returning home to England.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VII.
|
||
|
||
The author leaves Lagado: arrives at Maldonada. No ship ready. He takes
|
||
a short voyage to Glubbdubdrib. His reception by the governor.
|
||
|
||
|
||
The continent, of which this kingdom is apart, extends itself, as I
|
||
have reason to believe, eastward, to that unknown tract of America
|
||
westward of California; and north, to the Pacific Ocean, which is not
|
||
above a hundred and fifty miles from Lagado; where there is a good
|
||
port, and much commerce with the great island of Luggnagg, situated to
|
||
the north-west about 29 degrees north latitude, and 140 longitude. This
|
||
island of Luggnagg stands south-eastward of Japan, about a hundred
|
||
leagues distant. There is a strict alliance between the Japanese
|
||
emperor and the king of Luggnagg; which affords frequent opportunities
|
||
of sailing from one island to the other. I determined therefore to
|
||
direct my course this way, in order to direct my return to Europe. I
|
||
hired two mules, with a guide, to show me the way, and carry my small
|
||
baggage. I took leave of my noble protector, who had shown me so much
|
||
favour, and made me a generous present at my departure.
|
||
|
||
My journey was without any accident or adventure worth relating. When I
|
||
arrived at the port of Maldonada (for so it is called) there was no
|
||
ship in the harbour bound for Luggnagg, nor likely to be in some time.
|
||
The town is about as large as Portsmouth. I soon fell into some
|
||
acquaintance, and was very hospitably received. A gentleman of
|
||
distinction said to me, “that since the ships bound for Luggnagg could
|
||
not be ready in less than a month, it might be no disagreeable
|
||
amusement for me to take a trip to the little island of Glubbdubdrib,
|
||
about five leagues off to the south-west.” He offered himself and a
|
||
friend to accompany me, and that I should be provided with a small
|
||
convenient bark for the voyage.
|
||
|
||
Glubbdubdrib, as nearly as I can interpret the word, signifies the
|
||
island of sorcerers or magicians. It is about one third as large as the
|
||
Isle of Wight, and extremely fruitful: it is governed by the head of a
|
||
certain tribe, who are all magicians. This tribe marries only among
|
||
each other, and the eldest in succession is prince or governor. He has
|
||
a noble palace, and a park of about three thousand acres, surrounded by
|
||
a wall of hewn stone twenty feet high. In this park are several small
|
||
enclosures for cattle, corn, and gardening.
|
||
|
||
The governor and his family are served and attended by domestics of a
|
||
kind somewhat unusual. By his skill in necromancy he has a power of
|
||
calling whom he pleases from the dead, and commanding their service for
|
||
twenty-four hours, but no longer; nor can he call the same persons up
|
||
again in less than three months, except upon very extraordinary
|
||
occasions.
|
||
|
||
When we arrived at the island, which was about eleven in the morning,
|
||
one of the gentlemen who accompanied me went to the governor, and
|
||
desired admittance for a stranger, who came on purpose to have the
|
||
honour of attending on his highness. This was immediately granted, and
|
||
we all three entered the gate of the palace between two rows of guards,
|
||
armed and dressed after a very antic manner, and with something in
|
||
their countenances that made my flesh creep with a horror I cannot
|
||
express. We passed through several apartments, between servants of the
|
||
same sort, ranked on each side as before, till we came to the chamber
|
||
of presence; where, after three profound obeisances, and a few general
|
||
questions, we were permitted to sit on three stools, near the lowest
|
||
step of his highness’s throne. He understood the language of
|
||
Balnibarbi, although it was different from that of this island. He
|
||
desired me to give him some account of my travels; and, to let me see
|
||
that I should be treated without ceremony, he dismissed all his
|
||
attendants with a turn of his finger; at which, to my great
|
||
astonishment, they vanished in an instant, like visions in a dream when
|
||
we awake on a sudden. I could not recover myself in some time, till the
|
||
governor assured me, “that I should receive no hurt;” and observing my
|
||
two companions to be under no concern, who had been often entertained
|
||
in the same manner, I began to take courage, and related to his
|
||
highness a short history of my several adventures; yet not without some
|
||
hesitation, and frequently looking behind me to the place where I had
|
||
seen those domestic spectres. I had the honour to dine with the
|
||
governor, where a new set of ghosts served up the meat, and waited at
|
||
table. I now observed myself to be less terrified than I had been in
|
||
the morning. I stayed till sunset, but humbly desired his highness to
|
||
excuse me for not accepting his invitation of lodging in the palace. My
|
||
two friends and I lay at a private house in the town adjoining, which
|
||
is the capital of this little island; and the next morning we returned
|
||
to pay our duty to the governor, as he was pleased to command us.
|
||
|
||
After this manner we continued in the island for ten days, most part of
|
||
every day with the governor, and at night in our lodging. I soon grew
|
||
so familiarized to the sight of spirits, that after the third or fourth
|
||
time they gave me no emotion at all: or, if I had any apprehensions
|
||
left, my curiosity prevailed over them. For his highness the governor
|
||
ordered me “to call up whatever persons I would choose to name, and in
|
||
whatever numbers, among all the dead from the beginning of the world to
|
||
the present time, and command them to answer any questions I should
|
||
think fit to ask; with this condition, that my questions must be
|
||
confined within the compass of the times they lived in. And one thing I
|
||
might depend upon, that they would certainly tell me the truth, for
|
||
lying was a talent of no use in the lower world.”
|
||
|
||
I made my humble acknowledgments to his highness for so great a favour.
|
||
We were in a chamber, from whence there was a fair prospect into the
|
||
park. And because my first inclination was to be entertained with
|
||
scenes of pomp and magnificence, I desired to see Alexander the Great
|
||
at the head of his army, just after the battle of Arbela: which, upon a
|
||
motion of the governor’s finger, immediately appeared in a large field,
|
||
under the window where we stood. Alexander was called up into the room:
|
||
it was with great difficulty that I understood his Greek, and had but
|
||
little of my own. He assured me upon his honour “that he was not
|
||
poisoned, but died of a bad fever by excessive drinking.”
|
||
|
||
Next, I saw Hannibal passing the Alps, who told me “he had not a drop
|
||
of vinegar in his camp.”
|
||
|
||
I saw Cæsar and Pompey at the head of their troops, just ready to
|
||
engage. I saw the former, in his last great triumph. I desired that the
|
||
senate of Rome might appear before me, in one large chamber, and an
|
||
assembly of somewhat a later age in counterview, in another. The first
|
||
seemed to be an assembly of heroes and demigods; the other, a knot of
|
||
pedlars, pick-pockets, highwaymen, and bullies.
|
||
|
||
The governor, at my request, gave the sign for Cæsar and Brutus to
|
||
advance towards us. I was struck with a profound veneration at the
|
||
sight of Brutus, and could easily discover the most consummate virtue,
|
||
the greatest intrepidity and firmness of mind, the truest love of his
|
||
country, and general benevolence for mankind, in every lineament of his
|
||
countenance. I observed, with much pleasure, that these two persons
|
||
were in good intelligence with each other; and Cæsar freely confessed
|
||
to me, “that the greatest actions of his own life were not equal, by
|
||
many degrees, to the glory of taking it away.” I had the honour to have
|
||
much conversation with Brutus; and was told, “that his ancestor Junius,
|
||
Socrates, Epaminondas, Cato the younger, Sir Thomas More, and himself
|
||
were perpetually together:” a sextumvirate, to which all the ages of
|
||
the world cannot add a seventh.
|
||
|
||
It would be tedious to trouble the reader with relating what vast
|
||
numbers of illustrious persons were called up to gratify that
|
||
insatiable desire I had to see the world in every period of antiquity
|
||
placed before me. I chiefly fed my eyes with beholding the destroyers
|
||
of tyrants and usurpers, and the restorers of liberty to oppressed and
|
||
injured nations. But it is impossible to express the satisfaction I
|
||
received in my own mind, after such a manner as to make it a suitable
|
||
entertainment to the reader.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VIII.
|
||
|
||
A further account of Glubbdubdrib. Ancient and modern history
|
||
corrected.
|
||
|
||
|
||
Having a desire to see those ancients who were most renowned for wit
|
||
and learning, I set apart one day on purpose. I proposed that Homer and
|
||
Aristotle might appear at the head of all their commentators; but these
|
||
were so numerous, that some hundreds were forced to attend in the
|
||
court, and outward rooms of the palace. I knew, and could distinguish
|
||
those two heroes, at first sight, not only from the crowd, but from
|
||
each other. Homer was the taller and comelier person of the two, walked
|
||
very erect for one of his age, and his eyes were the most quick and
|
||
piercing I ever beheld. Aristotle stooped much, and made use of a
|
||
staff. His visage was meagre, his hair lank and thin, and his voice
|
||
hollow. I soon discovered that both of them were perfect strangers to
|
||
the rest of the company, and had never seen or heard of them before;
|
||
and I had a whisper from a ghost who shall be nameless, “that these
|
||
commentators always kept in the most distant quarters from their
|
||
principals, in the lower world, through a consciousness of shame and
|
||
guilt, because they had so horribly misrepresented the meaning of those
|
||
authors to posterity.” I introduced Didymus and Eustathius to Homer,
|
||
and prevailed on him to treat them better than perhaps they deserved,
|
||
for he soon found they wanted a genius to enter into the spirit of a
|
||
poet. But Aristotle was out of all patience with the account I gave him
|
||
of Scotus and Ramus, as I presented them to him; and he asked them,
|
||
“whether the rest of the tribe were as great dunces as themselves?”
|
||
|
||
I then desired the governor to call up Descartes and Gassendi, with
|
||
whom I prevailed to explain their systems to Aristotle. This great
|
||
philosopher freely acknowledged his own mistakes in natural philosophy,
|
||
because he proceeded in many things upon conjecture, as all men must
|
||
do; and he found that Gassendi, who had made the doctrine of Epicurus
|
||
as palatable as he could, and the _vortices_ of Descartes, were equally
|
||
to be exploded. He predicted the same fate to _attraction_, whereof the
|
||
present learned are such zealous asserters. He said, “that new systems
|
||
of nature were but new fashions, which would vary in every age; and
|
||
even those, who pretend to demonstrate them from mathematical
|
||
principles, would flourish but a short period of time, and be out of
|
||
vogue when that was determined.”
|
||
|
||
I spent five days in conversing with many others of the ancient
|
||
learned. I saw most of the first Roman emperors. I prevailed on the
|
||
governor to call up Heliogabalus’s cooks to dress us a dinner, but they
|
||
could not show us much of their skill, for want of materials. A helot
|
||
of Agesilaus made us a dish of Spartan broth, but I was not able to get
|
||
down a second spoonful.
|
||
|
||
The two gentlemen, who conducted me to the island, were pressed by
|
||
their private affairs to return in three days, which I employed in
|
||
seeing some of the modern dead, who had made the greatest figure, for
|
||
two or three hundred years past, in our own and other countries of
|
||
Europe; and having been always a great admirer of old illustrious
|
||
families, I desired the governor would call up a dozen or two of kings,
|
||
with their ancestors in order for eight or nine generations. But my
|
||
disappointment was grievous and unexpected. For, instead of a long
|
||
train with royal diadems, I saw in one family two fiddlers, three
|
||
spruce courtiers, and an Italian prelate. In another, a barber, an
|
||
abbot, and two cardinals. I have too great a veneration for crowned
|
||
heads, to dwell any longer on so nice a subject. But as to counts,
|
||
marquises, dukes, earls, and the like, I was not so scrupulous. And I
|
||
confess, it was not without some pleasure, that I found myself able to
|
||
trace the particular features, by which certain families are
|
||
distinguished, up to their originals. I could plainly discover whence
|
||
one family derives a long chin; why a second has abounded with knaves
|
||
for two generations, and fools for two more; why a third happened to be
|
||
crack-brained, and a fourth to be sharpers; whence it came, what
|
||
Polydore Virgil says of a certain great house, _Nec vir fortis_, _nec
|
||
femina casta_; how cruelty, falsehood, and cowardice, grew to be
|
||
characteristics by which certain families are distinguished as much as
|
||
by their coats of arms; who first brought the pox into a noble house,
|
||
which has lineally descended scrofulous tumours to their posterity.
|
||
Neither could I wonder at all this, when I saw such an interruption of
|
||
lineages, by pages, lackeys, valets, coachmen, gamesters, fiddlers,
|
||
players, captains, and pickpockets.
|
||
|
||
I was chiefly disgusted with modern history. For having strictly
|
||
examined all the persons of greatest name in the courts of princes, for
|
||
a hundred years past, I found how the world had been misled by
|
||
prostitute writers, to ascribe the greatest exploits in war, to
|
||
cowards; the wisest counsel, to fools; sincerity, to flatterers; Roman
|
||
virtue, to betrayers of their country; piety, to atheists; chastity, to
|
||
sodomites; truth, to informers: how many innocent and excellent persons
|
||
had been condemned to death or banishment by the practising of great
|
||
ministers upon the corruption of judges, and the malice of factions:
|
||
how many villains had been exalted to the highest places of trust,
|
||
power, dignity, and profit: how great a share in the motions and events
|
||
of courts, councils, and senates might be challenged by bawds, whores,
|
||
pimps, parasites, and buffoons. How low an opinion I had of human
|
||
wisdom and integrity, when I was truly informed of the springs and
|
||
motives of great enterprises and revolutions in the world, and of the
|
||
contemptible accidents to which they owed their success.
|
||
|
||
Here I discovered the roguery and ignorance of those who pretend to
|
||
write anecdotes, or secret history; who send so many kings to their
|
||
graves with a cup of poison; will repeat the discourse between a prince
|
||
and chief minister, where no witness was by; unlock the thoughts and
|
||
cabinets of ambassadors and secretaries of state; and have the
|
||
perpetual misfortune to be mistaken. Here I discovered the true causes
|
||
of many great events that have surprised the world; how a whore can
|
||
govern the back-stairs, the back-stairs a council, and the council a
|
||
senate. A general confessed, in my presence, “that he got a victory
|
||
purely by the force of cowardice and ill conduct;” and an admiral,
|
||
“that, for want of proper intelligence, he beat the enemy, to whom he
|
||
intended to betray the fleet.” Three kings protested to me, “that in
|
||
their whole reigns they never did once prefer any person of merit,
|
||
unless by mistake, or treachery of some minister in whom they confided;
|
||
neither would they do it if they were to live again:” and they showed,
|
||
with great strength of reason, “that the royal throne could not be
|
||
supported without corruption, because that positive, confident, restiff
|
||
temper, which virtue infused into a man, was a perpetual clog to public
|
||
business.”
|
||
|
||
I had the curiosity to inquire in a particular manner, by what methods
|
||
great numbers had procured to themselves high titles of honour, and
|
||
prodigious estates; and I confined my inquiry to a very modern period:
|
||
however, without grating upon present times, because I would be sure to
|
||
give no offence even to foreigners (for I hope the reader need not be
|
||
told, that I do not in the least intend my own country, in what I say
|
||
upon this occasion,) a great number of persons concerned were called
|
||
up; and, upon a very slight examination, discovered such a scene of
|
||
infamy, that I cannot reflect upon it without some seriousness.
|
||
Perjury, oppression, subornation, fraud, pandarism, and the like
|
||
infirmities, were among the most excusable arts they had to mention;
|
||
and for these I gave, as it was reasonable, great allowance. But when
|
||
some confessed they owed their greatness and wealth to sodomy, or
|
||
incest; others, to the prostituting of their own wives and daughters;
|
||
others, to the betraying of their country or their prince; some, to
|
||
poisoning; more to the perverting of justice, in order to destroy the
|
||
innocent, I hope I may be pardoned, if these discoveries inclined me a
|
||
little to abate of that profound veneration, which I am naturally apt
|
||
to pay to persons of high rank, who ought to be treated with the utmost
|
||
respect due to their sublime dignity, by us their inferiors.
|
||
|
||
I had often read of some great services done to princes and states, and
|
||
desired to see the persons by whom those services were performed. Upon
|
||
inquiry I was told, “that their names were to be found on no record,
|
||
except a few of them, whom history has represented as the vilest of
|
||
rogues and traitors.” As to the rest, I had never once heard of them.
|
||
They all appeared with dejected looks, and in the meanest habit; most
|
||
of them telling me, “they died in poverty and disgrace, and the rest on
|
||
a scaffold or a gibbet.”
|
||
|
||
Among others, there was one person, whose case appeared a little
|
||
singular. He had a youth about eighteen years old standing by his side.
|
||
He told me, “he had for many years been commander of a ship; and in the
|
||
sea fight at Actium had the good fortune to break through the enemy’s
|
||
great line of battle, sink three of their capital ships, and take a
|
||
fourth, which was the sole cause of Antony’s flight, and of the victory
|
||
that ensued; that the youth standing by him, his only son, was killed
|
||
in the action.” He added, “that upon the confidence of some merit, the
|
||
war being at an end, he went to Rome, and solicited at the court of
|
||
Augustus to be preferred to a greater ship, whose commander had been
|
||
killed; but, without any regard to his pretensions, it was given to a
|
||
boy who had never seen the sea, the son of Libertina, who waited on one
|
||
of the emperor’s mistresses. Returning back to his own vessel, he was
|
||
charged with neglect of duty, and the ship given to a favourite page of
|
||
Publicola, the vice-admiral; whereupon he retired to a poor farm at a
|
||
great distance from Rome, and there ended his life.” I was so curious
|
||
to know the truth of this story, that I desired Agrippa might be
|
||
called, who was admiral in that fight. He appeared, and confirmed the
|
||
whole account: but with much more advantage to the captain, whose
|
||
modesty had extenuated or concealed a great part of his merit.
|
||
|
||
I was surprised to find corruption grown so high and so quick in that
|
||
empire, by the force of luxury so lately introduced; which made me less
|
||
wonder at many parallel cases in other countries, where vices of all
|
||
kinds have reigned so much longer, and where the whole praise, as well
|
||
as pillage, has been engrossed by the chief commander, who perhaps had
|
||
the least title to either.
|
||
|
||
As every person called up made exactly the same appearance he had done
|
||
in the world, it gave me melancholy reflections to observe how much the
|
||
race of humankind was degenerated among us within these hundred years
|
||
past; how the pox, under all its consequences and denominations had
|
||
altered every lineament of an English countenance; shortened the size
|
||
of bodies, unbraced the nerves, relaxed the sinews and muscles,
|
||
introduced a sallow complexion, and rendered the flesh loose and
|
||
rancid.
|
||
|
||
I descended so low, as to desire some English yeoman of the old stamp
|
||
might be summoned to appear; once so famous for the simplicity of their
|
||
manners, diet, and dress; for justice in their dealings; for their true
|
||
spirit of liberty; for their valour, and love of their country. Neither
|
||
could I be wholly unmoved, after comparing the living with the dead,
|
||
when I considered how all these pure native virtues were prostituted
|
||
for a piece of money by their grand-children; who, in selling their
|
||
votes and managing at elections, have acquired every vice and
|
||
corruption that can possibly be learned in a court.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER IX.
|
||
|
||
The author returns to Maldonada. Sails to the kingdom of Luggnagg. The
|
||
author confined. He is sent for to court. The manner of his admittance.
|
||
The king’s great lenity to his subjects.
|
||
|
||
|
||
The day of our departure being come, I took leave of his highness, the
|
||
Governor of Glubbdubdrib, and returned with my two companions to
|
||
Maldonada, where, after a fortnight’s waiting, a ship was ready to sail
|
||
for Luggnagg. The two gentlemen, and some others, were so generous and
|
||
kind as to furnish me with provisions, and see me on board. I was a
|
||
month in this voyage. We had one violent storm, and were under a
|
||
necessity of steering westward to get into the trade wind, which holds
|
||
for above sixty leagues. On the 21st of April, 1708, we sailed into the
|
||
river of Clumegnig, which is a seaport town, at the south-east point of
|
||
Luggnagg. We cast anchor within a league of the town, and made a signal
|
||
for a pilot. Two of them came on board in less than half an hour, by
|
||
whom we were guided between certain shoals and rocks, which are very
|
||
dangerous in the passage, to a large basin, where a fleet may ride in
|
||
safety within a cable’s length of the town-wall.
|
||
|
||
Some of our sailors, whether out of treachery or inadvertence, had
|
||
informed the pilots “that I was a stranger, and great traveller;”
|
||
whereof these gave notice to a custom-house officer, by whom I was
|
||
examined very strictly upon my landing. This officer spoke to me in the
|
||
language of Balnibarbi, which, by the force of much commerce, is
|
||
generally understood in that town, especially by seamen and those
|
||
employed in the customs. I gave him a short account of some
|
||
particulars, and made my story as plausible and consistent as I could;
|
||
but I thought it necessary to disguise my country, and call myself a
|
||
Hollander; because my intentions were for Japan, and I knew the Dutch
|
||
were the only Europeans permitted to enter into that kingdom. I
|
||
therefore told the officer, “that having been shipwrecked on the coast
|
||
of Balnibarbi, and cast on a rock, I was received up into Laputa, or
|
||
the flying island (of which he had often heard), and was now
|
||
endeavouring to get to Japan, whence I might find a convenience of
|
||
returning to my own country.” The officer said, “I must be confined
|
||
till he could receive orders from court, for which he would write
|
||
immediately, and hoped to receive an answer in a fortnight.” I was
|
||
carried to a convenient lodging with a sentry placed at the door;
|
||
however, I had the liberty of a large garden, and was treated with
|
||
humanity enough, being maintained all the time at the king’s charge. I
|
||
was invited by several persons, chiefly out of curiosity, because it
|
||
was reported that I came from countries very remote, of which they had
|
||
never heard.
|
||
|
||
I hired a young man, who came in the same ship, to be an interpreter;
|
||
he was a native of Luggnagg, but had lived some years at Maldonada, and
|
||
was a perfect master of both languages. By his assistance, I was able
|
||
to hold a conversation with those who came to visit me; but this
|
||
consisted only of their questions, and my answers.
|
||
|
||
The despatch came from court about the time we expected. It contained a
|
||
warrant for conducting me and my retinue to _Traldragdubh_, or
|
||
_Trildrogdrib_ (for it is pronounced both ways as near as I can
|
||
remember), by a party of ten horse. All my retinue was that poor lad
|
||
for an interpreter, whom I persuaded into my service, and, at my humble
|
||
request, we had each of us a mule to ride on. A messenger was
|
||
despatched half a day’s journey before us, to give the king notice of
|
||
my approach, and to desire, “that his majesty would please to appoint a
|
||
day and hour, when it would by his gracious pleasure that I might have
|
||
the honour to lick the dust before his footstool.” This is the court
|
||
style, and I found it to be more than matter of form: for, upon my
|
||
admittance two days after my arrival, I was commanded to crawl upon my
|
||
belly, and lick the floor as I advanced; but, on account of my being a
|
||
stranger, care was taken to have it made so clean, that the dust was
|
||
not offensive. However, this was a peculiar grace, not allowed to any
|
||
but persons of the highest rank, when they desire an admittance. Nay,
|
||
sometimes the floor is strewed with dust on purpose, when the person to
|
||
be admitted happens to have powerful enemies at court; and I have seen
|
||
a great lord with his mouth so crammed, that when he had crept to the
|
||
proper distance from the throne; he was not able to speak a word.
|
||
Neither is there any remedy; because it is capital for those who
|
||
receive an audience to spit or wipe their mouths in his majesty’s
|
||
presence. There is indeed another custom, which I cannot altogether
|
||
approve of: when the king has a mind to put any of his nobles to death
|
||
in a gentle indulgent manner, he commands the floor to be strewed with
|
||
a certain brown powder of a deadly composition, which being licked up,
|
||
infallibly kills him in twenty-four hours. But in justice to this
|
||
prince’s great clemency, and the care he has of his subjects’ lives
|
||
(wherein it were much to be wished that the Monarchs of Europe would
|
||
imitate him), it must be mentioned for his honour, that strict orders
|
||
are given to have the infected parts of the floor well washed after
|
||
every such execution, which, if his domestics neglect, they are in
|
||
danger of incurring his royal displeasure. I myself heard him give
|
||
directions, that one of his pages should be whipped, whose turn it was
|
||
to give notice about washing the floor after an execution, but
|
||
maliciously had omitted it; by which neglect a young lord of great
|
||
hopes, coming to an audience, was unfortunately poisoned, although the
|
||
king at that time had no design against his life. But this good prince
|
||
was so gracious as to forgive the poor page his whipping, upon promise
|
||
that he would do so no more, without special orders.
|
||
|
||
To return from this digression. When I had crept within four yards of
|
||
the throne, I raised myself gently upon my knees, and then striking my
|
||
forehead seven times against the ground, I pronounced the following
|
||
words, as they had been taught me the night before, _Ickpling
|
||
gloffthrobb squutserumm blhiop mlashnalt zwin tnodbalkguffh slhiophad
|
||
gurdlubh asht_. This is the compliment, established by the laws of the
|
||
land, for all persons admitted to the king’s presence. It may be
|
||
rendered into English thus: “May your celestial majesty outlive the
|
||
sun, eleven moons and a half!” To this the king returned some answer,
|
||
which, although I could not understand, yet I replied as I had been
|
||
directed: _Fluft drin yalerick dwuldom prastrad mirpush_, which
|
||
properly signifies, “My tongue is in the mouth of my friend;” and by
|
||
this expression was meant, that I desired leave to bring my
|
||
interpreter; whereupon the young man already mentioned was accordingly
|
||
introduced, by whose intervention I answered as many questions as his
|
||
majesty could put in above an hour. I spoke in the Balnibarbian tongue,
|
||
and my interpreter delivered my meaning in that of Luggnagg.
|
||
|
||
The king was much delighted with my company, and ordered his
|
||
_bliffmarklub_, or high-chamberlain, to appoint a lodging in the court
|
||
for me and my interpreter; with a daily allowance for my table, and a
|
||
large purse of gold for my common expenses.
|
||
|
||
I staid three months in this country, out of perfect obedience to his
|
||
majesty; who was pleased highly to favour me, and made me very
|
||
honourable offers. But I thought it more consistent with prudence and
|
||
justice to pass the remainder of my days with my wife and family.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER X.
|
||
|
||
The Luggnaggians commended. A particular description of the
|
||
Struldbrugs, with many conversations between the author and some
|
||
eminent persons upon that subject.
|
||
|
||
|
||
The Luggnaggians are a polite and generous people; and although they
|
||
are not without some share of that pride which is peculiar to all
|
||
Eastern countries, yet they show themselves courteous to strangers,
|
||
especially such who are countenanced by the court. I had many
|
||
acquaintance, and among persons of the best fashion; and being always
|
||
attended by my interpreter, the conversation we had was not
|
||
disagreeable.
|
||
|
||
One day, in much good company, I was asked by a person of quality,
|
||
“whether I had seen any of their _struldbrugs_, or immortals?” I said,
|
||
“I had not;” and desired he would explain to me “what he meant by such
|
||
an appellation, applied to a mortal creature.” He told me “that
|
||
sometimes, though very rarely, a child happened to be born in a family,
|
||
with a red circular spot in the forehead, directly over the left
|
||
eyebrow, which was an infallible mark that it should never die.” The
|
||
spot, as he described it, “was about the compass of a silver
|
||
threepence, but in the course of time grew larger, and changed its
|
||
colour; for at twelve years old it became green, so continued till five
|
||
and twenty, then turned to a deep blue: at five and forty it grew coal
|
||
black, and as large as an English shilling; but never admitted any
|
||
further alteration.” He said, “these births were so rare, that he did
|
||
not believe there could be above eleven hundred struldbrugs, of both
|
||
sexes, in the whole kingdom; of which he computed about fifty in the
|
||
metropolis, and, among the rest, a young girl born; about three years
|
||
ago: that these productions were not peculiar to any family, but a mere
|
||
effect of chance; and the children of the _struldbrugs_ themselves were
|
||
equally mortal with the rest of the people.”
|
||
|
||
I freely own myself to have been struck with inexpressible delight,
|
||
upon hearing this account: and the person who gave it me happening to
|
||
understand the Balnibarbian language, which I spoke very well, I could
|
||
not forbear breaking out into expressions, perhaps a little too
|
||
extravagant. I cried out, as in a rapture, “Happy nation, where every
|
||
child hath at least a chance for being immortal! Happy people, who
|
||
enjoy so many living examples of ancient virtue, and have masters ready
|
||
to instruct them in the wisdom of all former ages! but happiest, beyond
|
||
all comparison, are those excellent _struldbrugs_, who, being born
|
||
exempt from that universal calamity of human nature, have their minds
|
||
free and disengaged, without the weight and depression of spirits
|
||
caused by the continual apprehensions of death!” I discovered my
|
||
admiration, “that I had not observed any of these illustrious persons
|
||
at court; the black spot on the forehead being so remarkable a
|
||
distinction, that I could not have easily overlooked it: and it was
|
||
impossible that his majesty, a most judicious prince, should not
|
||
provide himself with a good number of such wise and able counsellors.
|
||
Yet perhaps the virtue of those reverend sages was too strict for the
|
||
corrupt and libertine manners of a court: and we often find by
|
||
experience, that young men are too opinionated and volatile to be
|
||
guided by the sober dictates of their seniors. However, since the king
|
||
was pleased to allow me access to his royal person, I was resolved,
|
||
upon the very first occasion, to deliver my opinion to him on this
|
||
matter freely and at large, by the help of my interpreter; and whether
|
||
he would please to take my advice or not, yet in one thing I was
|
||
determined, that his majesty having frequently offered me an
|
||
establishment in this country, I would, with great thankfulness, accept
|
||
the favour, and pass my life here in the conversation of those superior
|
||
beings the _struldbrugs_, if they would please to admit me.”
|
||
|
||
The gentleman to whom I addressed my discourse, because (as I have
|
||
already observed) he spoke the language of Balnibarbi, said to me, with
|
||
a sort of a smile which usually arises from pity to the ignorant, “that
|
||
he was glad of any occasion to keep me among them, and desired my
|
||
permission to explain to the company what I had spoke.” He did so, and
|
||
they talked together for some time in their own language, whereof I
|
||
understood not a syllable, neither could I observe by their
|
||
countenances, what impression my discourse had made on them. After a
|
||
short silence, the same person told me, “that his friends and mine (so
|
||
he thought fit to express himself) were very much pleased with the
|
||
judicious remarks I had made on the great happiness and advantages of
|
||
immortal life, and they were desirous to know, in a particular manner,
|
||
what scheme of living I should have formed to myself, if it had fallen
|
||
to my lot to have been born a _struldbrug_.”
|
||
|
||
I answered, “it was easy to be eloquent on so copious and delightful a
|
||
subject, especially to me, who had been often apt to amuse myself with
|
||
visions of what I should do, if I were a king, a general, or a great
|
||
lord: and upon this very case, I had frequently run over the whole
|
||
system how I should employ myself, and pass the time, if I were sure to
|
||
live for ever.
|
||
|
||
“That, if it had been my good fortune to come into the world a
|
||
_struldbrug_, as soon as I could discover my own happiness, by
|
||
understanding the difference between life and death, I would first
|
||
resolve, by all arts and methods, whatsoever, to procure myself riches.
|
||
In the pursuit of which, by thrift and management, I might reasonably
|
||
expect, in about two hundred years, to be the wealthiest man in the
|
||
kingdom. In the second place, I would, from my earliest youth, apply
|
||
myself to the study of arts and sciences, by which I should arrive in
|
||
time to excel all others in learning. Lastly, I would carefully record
|
||
every action and event of consequence, that happened in the public,
|
||
impartially draw the characters of the several successions of princes
|
||
and great ministers of state, with my own observations on every point.
|
||
I would exactly set down the several changes in customs, language,
|
||
fashions of dress, diet, and diversions. By all which acquirements, I
|
||
should be a living treasure of knowledge and wisdom, and certainly
|
||
become the oracle of the nation.
|
||
|
||
“I would never marry after threescore, but live in a hospitable manner,
|
||
yet still on the saving side. I would entertain myself in forming and
|
||
directing the minds of hopeful young men, by convincing them, from my
|
||
own remembrance, experience, and observation, fortified by numerous
|
||
examples, of the usefulness of virtue in public and private life. But
|
||
my choice and constant companions should be a set of my own immortal
|
||
brotherhood; among whom, I would elect a dozen from the most ancient,
|
||
down to my own contemporaries. Where any of these wanted fortunes, I
|
||
would provide them with convenient lodges round my own estate, and have
|
||
some of them always at my table; only mingling a few of the most
|
||
valuable among you mortals, whom length of time would harden me to lose
|
||
with little or no reluctance, and treat your posterity after the same
|
||
manner; just as a man diverts himself with the annual succession of
|
||
pinks and tulips in his garden, without regretting the loss of those
|
||
which withered the preceding year.
|
||
|
||
“These _struldbrugs_ and I would mutually communicate our observations
|
||
and memorials, through the course of time; remark the several
|
||
gradations by which corruption steals into the world, and oppose it in
|
||
every step, by giving perpetual warning and instruction to mankind;
|
||
which, added to the strong influence of our own example, would probably
|
||
prevent that continual degeneracy of human nature so justly complained
|
||
of in all ages.
|
||
|
||
“Add to this, the pleasure of seeing the various revolutions of states
|
||
and empires; the changes in the lower and upper world; ancient cities
|
||
in ruins, and obscure villages become the seats of kings; famous rivers
|
||
lessening into shallow brooks; the ocean leaving one coast dry, and
|
||
overwhelming another; the discovery of many countries yet unknown;
|
||
barbarity overrunning the politest nations, and the most barbarous
|
||
become civilized. I should then see the discovery of the longitude, the
|
||
perpetual motion, the universal medicine, and many other great
|
||
inventions, brought to the utmost perfection.
|
||
|
||
“What wonderful discoveries should we make in astronomy, by outliving
|
||
and confirming our own predictions; by observing the progress and
|
||
return of comets, with the changes of motion in the sun, moon, and
|
||
stars!”
|
||
|
||
I enlarged upon many other topics, which the natural desire of endless
|
||
life, and sublunary happiness, could easily furnish me with. When I had
|
||
ended, and the sum of my discourse had been interpreted, as before, to
|
||
the rest of the company, there was a good deal of talk among them in
|
||
the language of the country, not without some laughter at my expense.
|
||
At last, the same gentleman who had been my interpreter, said, “he was
|
||
desired by the rest to set me right in a few mistakes, which I had
|
||
fallen into through the common imbecility of human nature, and upon
|
||
that allowance was less answerable for them. That this breed of
|
||
_struldbrugs_ was peculiar to their country, for there were no such
|
||
people either in Balnibarbi or Japan, where he had the honour to be
|
||
ambassador from his majesty, and found the natives in both those
|
||
kingdoms very hard to believe that the fact was possible: and it
|
||
appeared from my astonishment when he first mentioned the matter to me,
|
||
that I received it as a thing wholly new, and scarcely to be credited.
|
||
That in the two kingdoms above mentioned, where, during his residence,
|
||
he had conversed very much, he observed long life to be the universal
|
||
desire and wish of mankind. That whoever had one foot in the grave was
|
||
sure to hold back the other as strongly as he could. That the oldest
|
||
had still hopes of living one day longer, and looked on death as the
|
||
greatest evil, from which nature always prompted him to retreat. Only
|
||
in this island of Luggnagg the appetite for living was not so eager,
|
||
from the continual example of the _struldbrugs_ before their eyes.
|
||
|
||
“That the system of living contrived by me, was unreasonable and
|
||
unjust; because it supposed a perpetuity of youth, health, and vigour,
|
||
which no man could be so foolish to hope, however extravagant he may be
|
||
in his wishes. That the question therefore was not, whether a man would
|
||
choose to be always in the prime of youth, attended with prosperity and
|
||
health; but how he would pass a perpetual life under all the usual
|
||
disadvantages which old age brings along with it. For although few men
|
||
will avow their desires of being immortal, upon such hard conditions,
|
||
yet in the two kingdoms before mentioned, of Balnibarbi and Japan, he
|
||
observed that every man desired to put off death some time longer, let
|
||
it approach ever so late: and he rarely heard of any man who died
|
||
willingly, except he were incited by the extremity of grief or torture.
|
||
And he appealed to me, whether in those countries I had travelled, as
|
||
well as my own, I had not observed the same general disposition.”
|
||
|
||
After this preface, he gave me a particular account of the
|
||
_struldbrugs_ among them. He said, “they commonly acted like mortals
|
||
till about thirty years old; after which, by degrees, they grew
|
||
melancholy and dejected, increasing in both till they came to
|
||
fourscore. This he learned from their own confession: for otherwise,
|
||
there not being above two or three of that species born in an age, they
|
||
were too few to form a general observation by. When they came to
|
||
fourscore years, which is reckoned the extremity of living in this
|
||
country, they had not only all the follies and infirmities of other old
|
||
men, but many more which arose from the dreadful prospect of never
|
||
dying. They were not only opinionative, peevish, covetous, morose,
|
||
vain, talkative, but incapable of friendship, and dead to all natural
|
||
affection, which never descended below their grandchildren. Envy and
|
||
impotent desires are their prevailing passions. But those objects
|
||
against which their envy seems principally directed, are the vices of
|
||
the younger sort and the deaths of the old. By reflecting on the
|
||
former, they find themselves cut off from all possibility of pleasure;
|
||
and whenever they see a funeral, they lament and repine that others
|
||
have gone to a harbour of rest to which they themselves never can hope
|
||
to arrive. They have no remembrance of anything but what they learned
|
||
and observed in their youth and middle-age, and even that is very
|
||
imperfect; and for the truth or particulars of any fact, it is safer to
|
||
depend on common tradition, than upon their best recollections. The
|
||
least miserable among them appear to be those who turn to dotage, and
|
||
entirely lose their memories; these meet with more pity and assistance,
|
||
because they want many bad qualities which abound in others.
|
||
|
||
“If a _struldbrug_ happen to marry one of his own kind, the marriage is
|
||
dissolved of course, by the courtesy of the kingdom, as soon as the
|
||
younger of the two comes to be fourscore; for the law thinks it a
|
||
reasonable indulgence, that those who are condemned, without any fault
|
||
of their own, to a perpetual continuance in the world, should not have
|
||
their misery doubled by the load of a wife.
|
||
|
||
“As soon as they have completed the term of eighty years, they are
|
||
looked on as dead in law; their heirs immediately succeed to their
|
||
estates; only a small pittance is reserved for their support; and the
|
||
poor ones are maintained at the public charge. After that period, they
|
||
are held incapable of any employment of trust or profit; they cannot
|
||
purchase lands, or take leases; neither are they allowed to be
|
||
witnesses in any cause, either civil or criminal, not even for the
|
||
decision of meers and bounds.
|
||
|
||
“At ninety, they lose their teeth and hair; they have at that age no
|
||
distinction of taste, but eat and drink whatever they can get, without
|
||
relish or appetite. The diseases they were subject to still continue,
|
||
without increasing or diminishing. In talking, they forget the common
|
||
appellation of things, and the names of persons, even of those who are
|
||
their nearest friends and relations. For the same reason, they never
|
||
can amuse themselves with reading, because their memory will not serve
|
||
to carry them from the beginning of a sentence to the end; and by this
|
||
defect, they are deprived of the only entertainment whereof they might
|
||
otherwise be capable.
|
||
|
||
“The language of this country being always upon the flux, the
|
||
_struldbrugs_ of one age do not understand those of another; neither
|
||
are they able, after two hundred years, to hold any conversation
|
||
(farther than by a few general words) with their neighbours the
|
||
mortals; and thus they lie under the disadvantage of living like
|
||
foreigners in their own country.”
|
||
|
||
This was the account given me of the _struldbrugs_, as near as I can
|
||
remember. I afterwards saw five or six of different ages, the youngest
|
||
not above two hundred years old, who were brought to me at several
|
||
times by some of my friends; but although they were told, “that I was a
|
||
great traveller, and had seen all the world,” they had not the least
|
||
curiosity to ask me a question; only desired “I would give them
|
||
_slumskudask_,” or a token of remembrance; which is a modest way of
|
||
begging, to avoid the law, that strictly forbids it, because they are
|
||
provided for by the public, although indeed with a very scanty
|
||
allowance.
|
||
|
||
They are despised and hated by all sorts of people. When one of them is
|
||
born, it is reckoned ominous, and their birth is recorded very
|
||
particularly so that you may know their age by consulting the register,
|
||
which, however, has not been kept above a thousand years past, or at
|
||
least has been destroyed by time or public disturbances. But the usual
|
||
way of computing how old they are, is by asking them what kings or
|
||
great persons they can remember, and then consulting history; for
|
||
infallibly the last prince in their mind did not begin his reign after
|
||
they were fourscore years old.
|
||
|
||
They were the most mortifying sight I ever beheld; and the women more
|
||
horrible than the men. Besides the usual deformities in extreme old
|
||
age, they acquired an additional ghastliness, in proportion to their
|
||
number of years, which is not to be described; and among half a dozen,
|
||
I soon distinguished which was the eldest, although there was not above
|
||
a century or two between them.
|
||
|
||
The reader will easily believe, that from what I had heard and seen, my
|
||
keen appetite for perpetuity of life was much abated. I grew heartily
|
||
ashamed of the pleasing visions I had formed; and thought no tyrant
|
||
could invent a death into which I would not run with pleasure, from
|
||
such a life. The king heard of all that had passed between me and my
|
||
friends upon this occasion, and rallied me very pleasantly; wishing I
|
||
could send a couple of _struldbrugs_ to my own country, to arm our
|
||
people against the fear of death; but this, it seems, is forbidden by
|
||
the fundamental laws of the kingdom, or else I should have been well
|
||
content with the trouble and expense of transporting them.
|
||
|
||
I could not but agree, that the laws of this kingdom relative to the
|
||
_struldbrugs_ were founded upon the strongest reasons, and such as any
|
||
other country would be under the necessity of enacting, in the like
|
||
circumstances. Otherwise, as avarice is the necessary consequence of
|
||
old age, those immortals would in time become proprietors of the whole
|
||
nation, and engross the civil power, which, for want of abilities to
|
||
manage, must end in the ruin of the public.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER XI.
|
||
|
||
The author leaves Luggnagg, and sails to Japan. From thence he returns
|
||
in a Dutch ship to Amsterdam, and from Amsterdam to England.
|
||
|
||
|
||
I thought this account of the _struldbrugs_ might be some entertainment
|
||
to the reader, because it seems to be a little out of the common way;
|
||
at least I do not remember to have met the like in any book of travels
|
||
that has come to my hands; and if I am deceived, my excuse must be,
|
||
that it is necessary for travellers who describe the same country, very
|
||
often to agree in dwelling on the same particulars, without deserving
|
||
the censure of having borrowed or transcribed from those who wrote
|
||
before them.
|
||
|
||
There is indeed a perpetual commerce between this kingdom and the great
|
||
empire of Japan; and it is very probable, that the Japanese authors may
|
||
have given some account of the _struldbrugs_; but my stay in Japan was
|
||
so short, and I was so entirely a stranger to the language, that I was
|
||
not qualified to make any inquiries. But I hope the Dutch, upon this
|
||
notice, will be curious and able enough to supply my defects.
|
||
|
||
His majesty having often pressed me to accept some employment in his
|
||
court, and finding me absolutely determined to return to my native
|
||
country, was pleased to give me his license to depart; and honoured me
|
||
with a letter of recommendation, under his own hand, to the Emperor of
|
||
Japan. He likewise presented me with four hundred and forty-four large
|
||
pieces of gold (this nation delighting in even numbers), and a red
|
||
diamond, which I sold in England for eleven hundred pounds.
|
||
|
||
On the 6th day of May, 1709, I took a solemn leave of his majesty, and
|
||
all my friends. This prince was so gracious as to order a guard to
|
||
conduct me to Glanguenstald, which is a royal port to the south-west
|
||
part of the island. In six days I found a vessel ready to carry me to
|
||
Japan, and spent fifteen days in the voyage. We landed at a small
|
||
port-town called Xamoschi, situated on the south-east part of Japan;
|
||
the town lies on the western point, where there is a narrow strait
|
||
leading northward into a long arm of the sea, upon the north-west part
|
||
of which, Yedo, the metropolis, stands. At landing, I showed the
|
||
custom-house officers my letter from the king of Luggnagg to his
|
||
imperial majesty. They knew the seal perfectly well; it was as broad as
|
||
the palm of my hand. The impression was, _A king lifting up a lame
|
||
beggar from the earth_. The magistrates of the town, hearing of my
|
||
letter, received me as a public minister. They provided me with
|
||
carriages and servants, and bore my charges to Yedo; where I was
|
||
admitted to an audience, and delivered my letter, which was opened with
|
||
great ceremony, and explained to the Emperor by an interpreter, who
|
||
then gave me notice, by his majesty’s order, “that I should signify my
|
||
request, and, whatever it were, it should be granted, for the sake of
|
||
his royal brother of Luggnagg.” This interpreter was a person employed
|
||
to transact affairs with the Hollanders. He soon conjectured, by my
|
||
countenance, that I was a European, and therefore repeated his
|
||
majesty’s commands in Low Dutch, which he spoke perfectly well. I
|
||
answered, as I had before determined, “that I was a Dutch merchant,
|
||
shipwrecked in a very remote country, whence I had travelled by sea and
|
||
land to Luggnagg, and then took shipping for Japan; where I knew my
|
||
countrymen often traded, and with some of these I hoped to get an
|
||
opportunity of returning into Europe: I therefore most humbly entreated
|
||
his royal favour, to give order that I should be conducted in safety to
|
||
Nangasac.” To this I added another petition, “that for the sake of my
|
||
patron the king of Luggnagg, his majesty would condescend to excuse my
|
||
performing the ceremony imposed on my countrymen, of trampling upon the
|
||
crucifix, because I had been thrown into his kingdom by my misfortunes,
|
||
without any intention of trading.” When this latter petition was
|
||
interpreted to the Emperor, he seemed a little surprised; and said, “he
|
||
believed I was the first of my countrymen who ever made any scruple in
|
||
this point; and that he began to doubt, whether I was a real Hollander,
|
||
or not; but rather suspected I must be a Christian. However, for the
|
||
reasons I had offered, but chiefly to gratify the king of Luggnagg by
|
||
an uncommon mark of his favour, he would comply with the singularity of
|
||
my humour; but the affair must be managed with dexterity, and his
|
||
officers should be commanded to let me pass, as it were by
|
||
forgetfulness. For he assured me, that if the secret should be
|
||
discovered by my countrymen the Dutch, they would cut my throat in the
|
||
voyage.” I returned my thanks, by the interpreter, for so unusual a
|
||
favour; and some troops being at that time on their march to Nangasac,
|
||
the commanding officer had orders to convey me safe thither, with
|
||
particular instructions about the business of the crucifix.
|
||
|
||
On the 9th day of June, 1709, I arrived at Nangasac, after a very long
|
||
and troublesome journey. I soon fell into the company of some Dutch
|
||
sailors belonging to the Amboyna, of Amsterdam, a stout ship of 450
|
||
tons. I had lived long in Holland, pursuing my studies at Leyden, and I
|
||
spoke Dutch well. The seamen soon knew from whence I came last: they
|
||
were curious to inquire into my voyages and course of life. I made up a
|
||
story as short and probable as I could, but concealed the greatest
|
||
part. I knew many persons in Holland. I was able to invent names for my
|
||
parents, whom I pretended to be obscure people in the province of
|
||
Gelderland. I would have given the captain (one Theodorus Vangrult)
|
||
what he pleased to ask for my voyage to Holland; but understanding I
|
||
was a surgeon, he was contented to take half the usual rate, on
|
||
condition that I would serve him in the way of my calling. Before we
|
||
took shipping, I was often asked by some of the crew, whether I had
|
||
performed the ceremony above mentioned. I evaded the question by
|
||
general answers; “that I had satisfied the Emperor and court in all
|
||
particulars.” However, a malicious rogue of a skipper went to an
|
||
officer, and pointing to me, told him, “I had not yet trampled on the
|
||
crucifix;” but the other, who had received instructions to let me pass,
|
||
gave the rascal twenty strokes on the shoulders with a bamboo; after
|
||
which I was no more troubled with such questions.
|
||
|
||
Nothing happened worth mentioning in this voyage. We sailed with a fair
|
||
wind to the Cape of Good Hope, where we staid only to take in fresh
|
||
water. On the 10th of April, 1710, we arrived safe at Amsterdam, having
|
||
lost only three men by sickness in the voyage, and a fourth, who fell
|
||
from the foremast into the sea, not far from the coast of Guinea. From
|
||
Amsterdam I soon after set sail for England, in a small vessel
|
||
belonging to that city.
|
||
|
||
On the 16th of April, 1710, we put in at the Downs. I landed next
|
||
morning, and saw once more my native country, after an absence of five
|
||
years and six months complete. I went straight to Redriff, where I
|
||
arrived the same day at two in the afternoon, and found my wife and
|
||
family in good health.
|
||
|
||
|
||
PART IV. A VOYAGE TO THE COUNTRY OF THE HOUYHNHNMS.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER I.
|
||
|
||
The author sets out as captain of a ship. His men conspire against him,
|
||
confine him a long time to his cabin, and set him on shore in an
|
||
unknown land. He travels up into the country. The Yahoos, a strange
|
||
sort of animal, described. The author meets two Houyhnhnms.
|
||
|
||
|
||
I continued at home with my wife and children about five months in a
|
||
very happy condition, if I could have learned the lesson of knowing
|
||
when I was well. I left my poor wife big with child, and accepted an
|
||
advantageous offer made me to be captain of the Adventurer, a stout
|
||
merchantman of 350 tons: for I understood navigation well, and being
|
||
grown weary of a surgeon’s employment at sea, which, however, I could
|
||
exercise upon occasion, I took a skilful young man of that calling, one
|
||
Robert Purefoy, into my ship. We set sail from Portsmouth upon the 7th
|
||
day of August, 1710; on the 14th we met with Captain Pocock, of
|
||
Bristol, at Teneriffe, who was going to the bay of Campechy to cut
|
||
logwood. On the 16th, he was parted from us by a storm; I heard since
|
||
my return, that his ship foundered, and none escaped but one cabin boy.
|
||
He was an honest man, and a good sailor, but a little too positive in
|
||
his own opinions, which was the cause of his destruction, as it has
|
||
been with several others; for if he had followed my advice, he might
|
||
have been safe at home with his family at this time, as well as myself.
|
||
|
||
I had several men who died in my ship of calentures, so that I was
|
||
forced to get recruits out of Barbadoes and the Leeward Islands, where
|
||
I touched, by the direction of the merchants who employed me; which I
|
||
had soon too much cause to repent: for I found afterwards, that most of
|
||
them had been buccaneers. I had fifty hands on board; and my orders
|
||
were, that I should trade with the Indians in the South-Sea, and make
|
||
what discoveries I could. These rogues, whom I had picked up, debauched
|
||
my other men, and they all formed a conspiracy to seize the ship, and
|
||
secure me; which they did one morning, rushing into my cabin, and
|
||
binding me hand and foot, threatening to throw me overboard, if I
|
||
offered to stir. I told them, “I was their prisoner, and would submit.”
|
||
This they made me swear to do, and then they unbound me, only fastening
|
||
one of my legs with a chain, near my bed, and placed a sentry at my
|
||
door with his piece charged, who was commanded to shoot me dead if I
|
||
attempted my liberty. They sent me down victuals and drink, and took
|
||
the government of the ship to themselves. Their design was to turn
|
||
pirates, and plunder the Spaniards, which they could not do till they
|
||
got more men. But first they resolved to sell the goods in the ship,
|
||
and then go to Madagascar for recruits, several among them having died
|
||
since my confinement. They sailed many weeks, and traded with the
|
||
Indians; but I knew not what course they took, being kept a close
|
||
prisoner in my cabin, and expecting nothing less than to be murdered,
|
||
as they often threatened me.
|
||
|
||
Upon the 9th day of May, 1711, one James Welch came down to my cabin,
|
||
and said, “he had orders from the captain to set me ashore.” I
|
||
expostulated with him, but in vain; neither would he so much as tell me
|
||
who their new captain was. They forced me into the long-boat, letting
|
||
me put on my best suit of clothes, which were as good as new, and take
|
||
a small bundle of linen, but no arms, except my hanger; and they were
|
||
so civil as not to search my pockets, into which I conveyed what money
|
||
I had, with some other little necessaries. They rowed about a league,
|
||
and then set me down on a strand. I desired them to tell me what
|
||
country it was. They all swore, “they knew no more than myself;” but
|
||
said, “that the captain” (as they called him) “was resolved, after they
|
||
had sold the lading, to get rid of me in the first place where they
|
||
could discover land.” They pushed off immediately, advising me to make
|
||
haste for fear of being overtaken by the tide, and so bade me farewell.
|
||
|
||
In this desolate condition I advanced forward, and soon got upon firm
|
||
ground, where I sat down on a bank to rest myself, and consider what I
|
||
had best do. When I was a little refreshed, I went up into the country,
|
||
resolving to deliver myself to the first savages I should meet, and
|
||
purchase my life from them by some bracelets, glass rings, and other
|
||
toys, which sailors usually provide themselves with in those voyages,
|
||
and whereof I had some about me. The land was divided by long rows of
|
||
trees, not regularly planted, but naturally growing; there was great
|
||
plenty of grass, and several fields of oats. I walked very
|
||
circumspectly, for fear of being surprised, or suddenly shot with an
|
||
arrow from behind, or on either side. I fell into a beaten road, where
|
||
I saw many tracts of human feet, and some of cows, but most of horses.
|
||
At last I beheld several animals in a field, and one or two of the same
|
||
kind sitting in trees. Their shape was very singular and deformed,
|
||
which a little discomposed me, so that I lay down behind a thicket to
|
||
observe them better. Some of them coming forward near the place where I
|
||
lay, gave me an opportunity of distinctly marking their form. Their
|
||
heads and breasts were covered with a thick hair, some frizzled, and
|
||
others lank; they had beards like goats, and a long ridge of hair down
|
||
their backs, and the fore parts of their legs and feet; but the rest of
|
||
their bodies was bare, so that I might see their skins, which were of a
|
||
brown buff colour. They had no tails, nor any hair at all on their
|
||
buttocks, except about the anus, which, I presume, nature had placed
|
||
there to defend them as they sat on the ground, for this posture they
|
||
used, as well as lying down, and often stood on their hind feet. They
|
||
climbed high trees as nimbly as a squirrel, for they had strong
|
||
extended claws before and behind, terminating in sharp points, and
|
||
hooked. They would often spring, and bound, and leap, with prodigious
|
||
agility. The females were not so large as the males; they had long lank
|
||
hair on their heads, but none on their faces, nor any thing more than a
|
||
sort of down on the rest of their bodies, except about the anus and
|
||
pudenda. The dugs hung between their forefeet, and often reached almost
|
||
to the ground as they walked. The hair of both sexes was of several
|
||
colours, brown, red, black, and yellow. Upon the whole, I never beheld,
|
||
in all my travels, so disagreeable an animal, or one against which I
|
||
naturally conceived so strong an antipathy. So that, thinking I had
|
||
seen enough, full of contempt and aversion, I got up, and pursued the
|
||
beaten road, hoping it might direct me to the cabin of some Indian. I
|
||
had not got far, when I met one of these creatures full in my way, and
|
||
coming up directly to me. The ugly monster, when he saw me, distorted
|
||
several ways, every feature of his visage, and stared, as at an object
|
||
he had never seen before; then approaching nearer, lifted up his
|
||
fore-paw, whether out of curiosity or mischief I could not tell; but I
|
||
drew my hanger, and gave him a good blow with the flat side of it, for
|
||
I durst not strike with the edge, fearing the inhabitants might be
|
||
provoked against me, if they should come to know that I had killed or
|
||
maimed any of their cattle. When the beast felt the smart, he drew
|
||
back, and roared so loud, that a herd of at least forty came flocking
|
||
about me from the next field, howling and making odious faces; but I
|
||
ran to the body of a tree, and leaning my back against it, kept them
|
||
off by waving my hanger. Several of this cursed brood, getting hold of
|
||
the branches behind, leaped up into the tree, whence they began to
|
||
discharge their excrements on my head; however, I escaped pretty well
|
||
by sticking close to the stem of the tree, but was almost stifled with
|
||
the filth, which fell about me on every side.
|
||
|
||
In the midst of this distress, I observed them all to run away on a
|
||
sudden as fast as they could; at which I ventured to leave the tree and
|
||
pursue the road, wondering what it was that could put them into this
|
||
fright. But looking on my left hand, I saw a horse walking softly in
|
||
the field; which my persecutors having sooner discovered, was the cause
|
||
of their flight. The horse started a little, when he came near me, but
|
||
soon recovering himself, looked full in my face with manifest tokens of
|
||
wonder; he viewed my hands and feet, walking round me several times. I
|
||
would have pursued my journey, but he placed himself directly in the
|
||
way, yet looking with a very mild aspect, never offering the least
|
||
violence. We stood gazing at each other for some time; at last I took
|
||
the boldness to reach my hand towards his neck with a design to stroke
|
||
it, using the common style and whistle of jockeys, when they are going
|
||
to handle a strange horse. But this animal seemed to receive my
|
||
civilities with disdain, shook his head, and bent his brows, softly
|
||
raising up his right fore-foot to remove my hand. Then he neighed three
|
||
or four times, but in so different a cadence, that I almost began to
|
||
think he was speaking to himself, in some language of his own.
|
||
|
||
While he and I were thus employed, another horse came up; who applying
|
||
himself to the first in a very formal manner, they gently struck each
|
||
other’s right hoof before, neighing several times by turns, and varying
|
||
the sound, which seemed to be almost articulate. They went some paces
|
||
off, as if it were to confer together, walking side by side, backward
|
||
and forward, like persons deliberating upon some affair of weight, but
|
||
often turning their eyes towards me, as it were to watch that I might
|
||
not escape. I was amazed to see such actions and behaviour in brute
|
||
beasts; and concluded with myself, that if the inhabitants of this
|
||
country were endued with a proportionable degree of reason, they must
|
||
needs be the wisest people upon earth. This thought gave me so much
|
||
comfort, that I resolved to go forward, until I could discover some
|
||
house or village, or meet with any of the natives, leaving the two
|
||
horses to discourse together as they pleased. But the first, who was a
|
||
dapple gray, observing me to steal off, neighed after me in so
|
||
expressive a tone, that I fancied myself to understand what he meant;
|
||
whereupon I turned back, and came near to him to expect his farther
|
||
commands: but concealing my fear as much as I could, for I began to be
|
||
in some pain how this adventure might terminate; and the reader will
|
||
easily believe I did not much like my present situation.
|
||
|
||
The two horses came up close to me, looking with great earnestness upon
|
||
my face and hands. The gray steed rubbed my hat all round with his
|
||
right fore-hoof, and discomposed it so much that I was forced to adjust
|
||
it better by taking it off and settling it again; whereat, both he and
|
||
his companion (who was a brown bay) appeared to be much surprised: the
|
||
latter felt the lappet of my coat, and finding it to hang loose about
|
||
me, they both looked with new signs of wonder. He stroked my right
|
||
hand, seeming to admire the softness and colour; but he squeezed it so
|
||
hard between his hoof and his pastern, that I was forced to roar; after
|
||
which they both touched me with all possible tenderness. They were
|
||
under great perplexity about my shoes and stockings, which they felt
|
||
very often, neighing to each other, and using various gestures, not
|
||
unlike those of a philosopher, when he would attempt to solve some new
|
||
and difficult phenomenon.
|
||
|
||
Upon the whole, the behaviour of these animals was so orderly and
|
||
rational, so acute and judicious, that I at last concluded they must
|
||
needs be magicians, who had thus metamorphosed themselves upon some
|
||
design, and seeing a stranger in the way, resolved to divert themselves
|
||
with him; or, perhaps, were really amazed at the sight of a man so very
|
||
different in habit, feature, and complexion, from those who might
|
||
probably live in so remote a climate. Upon the strength of this
|
||
reasoning, I ventured to address them in the following manner:
|
||
“Gentlemen, if you be conjurers, as I have good cause to believe, you
|
||
can understand my language; therefore I make bold to let your worships
|
||
know that I am a poor distressed Englishman, driven by his misfortunes
|
||
upon your coast; and I entreat one of you to let me ride upon his back,
|
||
as if he were a real horse, to some house or village where I can be
|
||
relieved. In return of which favour, I will make you a present of this
|
||
knife and bracelet,” taking them out of my pocket. The two creatures
|
||
stood silent while I spoke, seeming to listen with great attention, and
|
||
when I had ended, they neighed frequently towards each other, as if
|
||
they were engaged in serious conversation. I plainly observed that
|
||
their language expressed the passions very well, and the words might,
|
||
with little pains, be resolved into an alphabet more easily than the
|
||
Chinese.
|
||
|
||
I could frequently distinguish the word _Yahoo_, which was repeated by
|
||
each of them several times: and although it was impossible for me to
|
||
conjecture what it meant, yet while the two horses were busy in
|
||
conversation, I endeavoured to practise this word upon my tongue; and
|
||
as soon as they were silent, I boldly pronounced _Yahoo_ in a loud
|
||
voice, imitating at the same time, as near as I could, the neighing of
|
||
a horse; at which they were both visibly surprised; and the gray
|
||
repeated the same word twice, as if he meant to teach me the right
|
||
accent; wherein I spoke after him as well as I could, and found myself
|
||
perceivably to improve every time, though very far from any degree of
|
||
perfection. Then the bay tried me with a second word, much harder to be
|
||
pronounced; but reducing it to the English orthography, may be spelt
|
||
thus, _Houyhnhnm_. I did not succeed in this so well as in the former;
|
||
but after two or three farther trials, I had better fortune; and they
|
||
both appeared amazed at my capacity.
|
||
|
||
After some further discourse, which I then conjectured might relate to
|
||
me, the two friends took their leaves, with the same compliment of
|
||
striking each other’s hoof; and the gray made me signs that I should
|
||
walk before him; wherein I thought it prudent to comply, till I could
|
||
find a better director. When I offered to slacken my pace, he would cry
|
||
_hhuun hhuun_: I guessed his meaning, and gave him to understand, as
|
||
well as I could, “that I was weary, and not able to walk faster;” upon
|
||
which he would stand a while to let me rest.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER II.
|
||
|
||
The author conducted by a Houyhnhnm to his house. The house described.
|
||
The author’s reception. The food of the Houyhnhnms. The author in
|
||
distress for want of meat, is at last relieved. His manner of feeding
|
||
in this country.
|
||
|
||
|
||
Having travelled about three miles, we came to a long kind of building,
|
||
made of timber stuck in the ground, and wattled across; the roof was
|
||
low and covered with straw. I now began to be a little comforted; and
|
||
took out some toys, which travellers usually carry for presents to the
|
||
savage Indians of America, and other parts, in hopes the people of the
|
||
house would be thereby encouraged to receive me kindly. The horse made
|
||
me a sign to go in first; it was a large room with a smooth clay floor,
|
||
and a rack and manger, extending the whole length on one side. There
|
||
were three nags and two mares, not eating, but some of them sitting
|
||
down upon their hams, which I very much wondered at; but wondered more
|
||
to see the rest employed in domestic business; these seemed but
|
||
ordinary cattle. However, this confirmed my first opinion, that a
|
||
people who could so far civilize brute animals, must needs excel in
|
||
wisdom all the nations of the world. The gray came in just after, and
|
||
thereby prevented any ill treatment which the others might have given
|
||
me. He neighed to them several times in a style of authority, and
|
||
received answers.
|
||
|
||
Beyond this room there were three others, reaching the length of the
|
||
house, to which you passed through three doors, opposite to each other,
|
||
in the manner of a vista. We went through the second room towards the
|
||
third. Here the gray walked in first, beckoning me to attend: I waited
|
||
in the second room, and got ready my presents for the master and
|
||
mistress of the house; they were two knives, three bracelets of false
|
||
pearls, a small looking-glass, and a bead necklace. The horse neighed
|
||
three or four times, and I waited to hear some answers in a human
|
||
voice, but I heard no other returns than in the same dialect, only one
|
||
or two a little shriller than his. I began to think that this house
|
||
must belong to some person of great note among them, because there
|
||
appeared so much ceremony before I could gain admittance. But, that a
|
||
man of quality should be served all by horses, was beyond my
|
||
comprehension. I feared my brain was disturbed by my sufferings and
|
||
misfortunes. I roused myself, and looked about me in the room where I
|
||
was left alone: this was furnished like the first, only after a more
|
||
elegant manner. I rubbed my eyes often, but the same objects still
|
||
occurred. I pinched my arms and sides to awake myself, hoping I might
|
||
be in a dream. I then absolutely concluded, that all these appearances
|
||
could be nothing else but necromancy and magic. But I had no time to
|
||
pursue these reflections; for the gray horse came to the door, and made
|
||
me a sign to follow him into the third room where I saw a very comely
|
||
mare, together with a colt and foal, sitting on their haunches upon
|
||
mats of straw, not unartfully made, and perfectly neat and clean.
|
||
|
||
The mare soon after my entrance rose from her mat, and coming up close,
|
||
after having nicely observed my hands and face, gave me a most
|
||
contemptuous look; and turning to the horse, I heard the word _Yahoo_
|
||
often repeated betwixt them; the meaning of which word I could not then
|
||
comprehend, although it was the first I had learned to pronounce. But I
|
||
was soon better informed, to my everlasting mortification; for the
|
||
horse, beckoning to me with his head, and repeating the _hhuun_,
|
||
_hhuun_, as he did upon the road, which I understood was to attend him,
|
||
led me out into a kind of court, where was another building, at some
|
||
distance from the house. Here we entered, and I saw three of those
|
||
detestable creatures, which I first met after my landing, feeding upon
|
||
roots, and the flesh of some animals, which I afterwards found to be
|
||
that of asses and dogs, and now and then a cow, dead by accident or
|
||
disease. They were all tied by the neck with strong withes, fastened to
|
||
a beam; they held their food between the claws of their forefeet, and
|
||
tore it with their teeth.
|
||
|
||
The master horse ordered a sorrel nag, one of his servants, to untie
|
||
the largest of these animals, and take him into the yard. The beast and
|
||
I were brought close together, and by our countenances diligently
|
||
compared both by master and servant, who thereupon repeated several
|
||
times the word _Yahoo_. My horror and astonishment are not to be
|
||
described, when I observed in this abominable animal, a perfect human
|
||
figure: the face of it indeed was flat and broad, the nose depressed,
|
||
the lips large, and the mouth wide; but these differences are common to
|
||
all savage nations, where the lineaments of the countenance are
|
||
distorted, by the natives suffering their infants to lie grovelling on
|
||
the earth, or by carrying them on their backs, nuzzling with their face
|
||
against the mothers’ shoulders. The forefeet of the _Yahoo_ differed
|
||
from my hands in nothing else but the length of the nails, the
|
||
coarseness and brownness of the palms, and the hairiness on the backs.
|
||
There was the same resemblance between our feet, with the same
|
||
differences; which I knew very well, though the horses did not, because
|
||
of my shoes and stockings; the same in every part of our bodies except
|
||
as to hairiness and colour, which I have already described.
|
||
|
||
The great difficulty that seemed to stick with the two horses, was to
|
||
see the rest of my body so very different from that of a _Yahoo_, for
|
||
which I was obliged to my clothes, whereof they had no conception. The
|
||
sorrel nag offered me a root, which he held (after their manner, as we
|
||
shall describe in its proper place) between his hoof and pastern; I
|
||
took it in my hand, and, having smelt it, returned it to him again as
|
||
civilly as I could. He brought out of the _Yahoos_’ kennel a piece of
|
||
ass’s flesh; but it smelt so offensively that I turned from it with
|
||
loathing: he then threw it to the _Yahoo_, by whom it was greedily
|
||
devoured. He afterwards showed me a wisp of hay, and a fetlock full of
|
||
oats; but I shook my head, to signify that neither of these were food
|
||
for me. And indeed I now apprehended that I must absolutely starve, if
|
||
I did not get to some of my own species; for as to those filthy
|
||
_Yahoos_, although there were few greater lovers of mankind at that
|
||
time than myself, yet I confess I never saw any sensitive being so
|
||
detestable on all accounts; and the more I came near them the more
|
||
hateful they grew, while I stayed in that country. This the master
|
||
horse observed by my behaviour, and therefore sent the _Yahoo_ back to
|
||
his kennel. He then put his fore-hoof to his mouth, at which I was much
|
||
surprised, although he did it with ease, and with a motion that
|
||
appeared perfectly natural, and made other signs, to know what I would
|
||
eat; but I could not return him such an answer as he was able to
|
||
apprehend; and if he had understood me, I did not see how it was
|
||
possible to contrive any way for finding myself nourishment. While we
|
||
were thus engaged, I observed a cow passing by, whereupon I pointed to
|
||
her, and expressed a desire to go and milk her. This had its effect;
|
||
for he led me back into the house, and ordered a mare-servant to open a
|
||
room, where a good store of milk lay in earthen and wooden vessels,
|
||
after a very orderly and cleanly manner. She gave me a large bowlful,
|
||
of which I drank very heartily, and found myself well refreshed.
|
||
|
||
About noon, I saw coming towards the house a kind of vehicle drawn like
|
||
a sledge by four _Yahoos_. There was in it an old steed, who seemed to
|
||
be of quality; he alighted with his hind-feet forward, having by
|
||
accident got a hurt in his left fore-foot. He came to dine with our
|
||
horse, who received him with great civility. They dined in the best
|
||
room, and had oats boiled in milk for the second course, which the old
|
||
horse ate warm, but the rest cold. Their mangers were placed circular
|
||
in the middle of the room, and divided into several partitions, round
|
||
which they sat on their haunches, upon bosses of straw. In the middle
|
||
was a large rack, with angles answering to every partition of the
|
||
manger; so that each horse and mare ate their own hay, and their own
|
||
mash of oats and milk, with much decency and regularity. The behaviour
|
||
of the young colt and foal appeared very modest, and that of the master
|
||
and mistress extremely cheerful and complaisant to their guest. The
|
||
gray ordered me to stand by him; and much discourse passed between him
|
||
and his friend concerning me, as I found by the stranger’s often
|
||
looking on me, and the frequent repetition of the word _Yahoo_.
|
||
|
||
I happened to wear my gloves, which the master gray observing, seemed
|
||
perplexed, discovering signs of wonder what I had done to my forefeet.
|
||
He put his hoof three or four times to them, as if he would signify,
|
||
that I should reduce them to their former shape, which I presently did,
|
||
pulling off both my gloves, and putting them into my pocket. This
|
||
occasioned farther talk; and I saw the company was pleased with my
|
||
behaviour, whereof I soon found the good effects. I was ordered to
|
||
speak the few words I understood; and while they were at dinner, the
|
||
master taught me the names for oats, milk, fire, water, and some
|
||
others, which I could readily pronounce after him, having from my youth
|
||
a great facility in learning languages.
|
||
|
||
When dinner was done, the master horse took me aside, and by signs and
|
||
words made me understand the concern he was in that I had nothing to
|
||
eat. Oats in their tongue are called _hlunnh_. This word I pronounced
|
||
two or three times; for although I had refused them at first, yet, upon
|
||
second thoughts, I considered that I could contrive to make of them a
|
||
kind of bread, which might be sufficient, with milk, to keep me alive,
|
||
till I could make my escape to some other country, and to creatures of
|
||
my own species. The horse immediately ordered a white mare servant of
|
||
his family to bring me a good quantity of oats in a sort of wooden
|
||
tray. These I heated before the fire, as well as I could, and rubbed
|
||
them till the husks came off, which I made a shift to winnow from the
|
||
grain. I ground and beat them between two stones; then took water, and
|
||
made them into a paste or cake, which I toasted at the fire and eat
|
||
warm with milk. It was at first a very insipid diet, though common
|
||
enough in many parts of Europe, but grew tolerable by time; and having
|
||
been often reduced to hard fare in my life, this was not the first
|
||
experiment I had made how easily nature is satisfied. And I cannot but
|
||
observe, that I never had one hour’s sickness while I stayed in this
|
||
island. It is true, I sometimes made a shift to catch a rabbit, or
|
||
bird, by springs made of _Yahoo’s_ hairs; and I often gathered
|
||
wholesome herbs, which I boiled, and ate as salads with my bread; and
|
||
now and then, for a rarity, I made a little butter, and drank the whey.
|
||
I was at first at a great loss for salt, but custom soon reconciled me
|
||
to the want of it; and I am confident that the frequent use of salt
|
||
among us is an effect of luxury, and was first introduced only as a
|
||
provocative to drink, except where it is necessary for preserving flesh
|
||
in long voyages, or in places remote from great markets; for we observe
|
||
no animal to be fond of it but man, and as to myself, when I left this
|
||
country, it was a great while before I could endure the taste of it in
|
||
anything that I ate.
|
||
|
||
This is enough to say upon the subject of my diet, wherewith other
|
||
travellers fill their books, as if the readers were personally
|
||
concerned whether we fare well or ill. However, it was necessary to
|
||
mention this matter, lest the world should think it impossible that I
|
||
could find sustenance for three years in such a country, and among such
|
||
inhabitants.
|
||
|
||
When it grew towards evening, the master horse ordered a place for me
|
||
to lodge in; it was but six yards from the house and separated from the
|
||
stable of the _Yahoos_. Here I got some straw, and covering myself with
|
||
my own clothes, slept very sound. But I was in a short time better
|
||
accommodated, as the reader shall know hereafter, when I come to treat
|
||
more particularly about my way of living.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER III.
|
||
|
||
The author studies to learn the language. The Houyhnhnm, his master,
|
||
assists in teaching him. The language described. Several Houyhnhnms of
|
||
quality come out of curiosity to see the author. He gives his master a
|
||
short account of his voyage.
|
||
|
||
|
||
My principal endeavour was to learn the language, which my master (for
|
||
so I shall henceforth call him), and his children, and every servant of
|
||
his house, were desirous to teach me; for they looked upon it as a
|
||
prodigy, that a brute animal should discover such marks of a rational
|
||
creature. I pointed to every thing, and inquired the name of it, which
|
||
I wrote down in my journal-book when I was alone, and corrected my bad
|
||
accent by desiring those of the family to pronounce it often. In this
|
||
employment, a sorrel nag, one of the under-servants, was very ready to
|
||
assist me.
|
||
|
||
In speaking, they pronounced through the nose and throat, and their
|
||
language approaches nearest to the High-Dutch, or German, of any I know
|
||
in Europe; but is much more graceful and significant. The emperor
|
||
Charles V. made almost the same observation, when he said “that if he
|
||
were to speak to his horse, it should be in High-Dutch.”
|
||
|
||
The curiosity and impatience of my master were so great, that he spent
|
||
many hours of his leisure to instruct me. He was convinced (as he
|
||
afterwards told me) that I must be a _Yahoo_; but my teachableness,
|
||
civility, and cleanliness, astonished him; which were qualities
|
||
altogether opposite to those animals. He was most perplexed about my
|
||
clothes, reasoning sometimes with himself, whether they were a part of
|
||
my body: for I never pulled them off till the family were asleep, and
|
||
got them on before they waked in the morning. My master was eager to
|
||
learn “whence I came; how I acquired those appearances of reason, which
|
||
I discovered in all my actions; and to know my story from my own mouth,
|
||
which he hoped he should soon do by the great proficiency I made in
|
||
learning and pronouncing their words and sentences.” To help my memory,
|
||
I formed all I learned into the English alphabet, and writ the words
|
||
down, with the translations. This last, after some time, I ventured to
|
||
do in my master’s presence. It cost me much trouble to explain to him
|
||
what I was doing; for the inhabitants have not the least idea of books
|
||
or literature.
|
||
|
||
In about ten weeks time, I was able to understand most of his
|
||
questions; and in three months, could give him some tolerable answers.
|
||
He was extremely curious to know “from what part of the country I came,
|
||
and how I was taught to imitate a rational creature; because the
|
||
_Yahoos_ (whom he saw I exactly resembled in my head, hands, and face,
|
||
that were only visible), with some appearance of cunning, and the
|
||
strongest disposition to mischief, were observed to be the most
|
||
unteachable of all brutes.” I answered, “that I came over the sea, from
|
||
a far place, with many others of my own kind, in a great hollow vessel
|
||
made of the bodies of trees: that my companions forced me to land on
|
||
this coast, and then left me to shift for myself.” It was with some
|
||
difficulty, and by the help of many signs, that I brought him to
|
||
understand me. He replied, “that I must needs be mistaken, or that I
|
||
said the thing which was not;” for they have no word in their language
|
||
to express lying or falsehood. “He knew it was impossible that there
|
||
could be a country beyond the sea, or that a parcel of brutes could
|
||
move a wooden vessel whither they pleased upon water. He was sure no
|
||
_Houyhnhnm_ alive could make such a vessel, nor would trust _Yahoos_ to
|
||
manage it.”
|
||
|
||
The word _Houyhnhnm_, in their tongue, signifies a _horse_, and, in its
|
||
etymology, the _perfection of nature_. I told my master, “that I was at
|
||
a loss for expression, but would improve as fast as I could; and hoped,
|
||
in a short time, I should be able to tell him wonders.” He was pleased
|
||
to direct his own mare, his colt, and foal, and the servants of the
|
||
family, to take all opportunities of instructing me; and every day, for
|
||
two or three hours, he was at the same pains himself. Several horses
|
||
and mares of quality in the neighbourhood came often to our house, upon
|
||
the report spread of “a wonderful _Yahoo_, that could speak like a
|
||
_Houyhnhnm_, and seemed, in his words and actions, to discover some
|
||
glimmerings of reason.” These delighted to converse with me: they put
|
||
many questions, and received such answers as I was able to return. By
|
||
all these advantages I made so great a progress, that, in five months
|
||
from my arrival I understood whatever was spoken, and could express
|
||
myself tolerably well.
|
||
|
||
The _Houyhnhnms_, who came to visit my master out of a design of seeing
|
||
and talking with me, could hardly believe me to be a right _Yahoo_,
|
||
because my body had a different covering from others of my kind. They
|
||
were astonished to observe me without the usual hair or skin, except on
|
||
my head, face, and hands; but I discovered that secret to my master
|
||
upon an accident which happened about a fortnight before.
|
||
|
||
I have already told the reader, that every night, when the family were
|
||
gone to bed, it was my custom to strip, and cover myself with my
|
||
clothes. It happened, one morning early, that my master sent for me by
|
||
the sorrel nag, who was his valet. When he came I was fast asleep, my
|
||
clothes fallen off on one side, and my shirt above my waist. I awaked
|
||
at the noise he made, and observed him to deliver his message in some
|
||
disorder; after which he went to my master, and in a great fright gave
|
||
him a very confused account of what he had seen. This I presently
|
||
discovered, for, going as soon as I was dressed to pay my attendance
|
||
upon his honour, he asked me “the meaning of what his servant had
|
||
reported, that I was not the same thing when I slept, as I appeared to
|
||
be at other times; that his valet assured him, some part of me was
|
||
white, some yellow, at least not so white, and some brown.”
|
||
|
||
I had hitherto concealed the secret of my dress, in order to
|
||
distinguish myself, as much as possible, from that cursed race of
|
||
_Yahoos_; but now I found it in vain to do so any longer. Besides, I
|
||
considered that my clothes and shoes would soon wear out, which already
|
||
were in a declining condition, and must be supplied by some contrivance
|
||
from the hides of _Yahoos_, or other brutes; whereby the whole secret
|
||
would be known. I therefore told my master, “that in the country whence
|
||
I came, those of my kind always covered their bodies with the hairs of
|
||
certain animals prepared by art, as well for decency as to avoid the
|
||
inclemencies of air, both hot and cold; of which, as to my own person,
|
||
I would give him immediate conviction, if he pleased to command me:
|
||
only desiring his excuse, if I did not expose those parts that nature
|
||
taught us to conceal.” He said, “my discourse was all very strange, but
|
||
especially the last part; for he could not understand, why nature
|
||
should teach us to conceal what nature had given; that neither himself
|
||
nor family were ashamed of any parts of their bodies; but, however, I
|
||
might do as I pleased.” Whereupon I first unbuttoned my coat, and
|
||
pulled it off. I did the same with my waistcoat. I drew off my shoes,
|
||
stockings, and breeches. I let my shirt down to my waist, and drew up
|
||
the bottom; fastening it like a girdle about my middle, to hide my
|
||
nakedness.
|
||
|
||
My master observed the whole performance with great signs of curiosity
|
||
and admiration. He took up all my clothes in his pastern, one piece
|
||
after another, and examined them diligently; he then stroked my body
|
||
very gently, and looked round me several times; after which, he said,
|
||
it was plain I must be a perfect _Yahoo_; but that I differed very much
|
||
from the rest of my species in the softness, whiteness, and smoothness
|
||
of my skin; my want of hair in several parts of my body; the shape and
|
||
shortness of my claws behind and before; and my affectation of walking
|
||
continually on my two hinder feet. He desired to see no more; and gave
|
||
me leave to put on my clothes again, for I was shuddering with cold.
|
||
|
||
I expressed my uneasiness at his giving me so often the appellation of
|
||
_Yahoo_, an odious animal, for which I had so utter a hatred and
|
||
contempt: I begged he would forbear applying that word to me, and make
|
||
the same order in his family and among his friends whom he suffered to
|
||
see me. I requested likewise, “that the secret of my having a false
|
||
covering to my body, might be known to none but himself, at least as
|
||
long as my present clothing should last; for as to what the sorrel nag,
|
||
his valet, had observed, his honour might command him to conceal it.”
|
||
|
||
All this my master very graciously consented to; and thus the secret
|
||
was kept till my clothes began to wear out, which I was forced to
|
||
supply by several contrivances that shall hereafter be mentioned. In
|
||
the meantime, he desired “I would go on with my utmost diligence to
|
||
learn their language, because he was more astonished at my capacity for
|
||
speech and reason, than at the figure of my body, whether it were
|
||
covered or not;” adding, “that he waited with some impatience to hear
|
||
the wonders which I promised to tell him.”
|
||
|
||
From thenceforward he doubled the pains he had been at to instruct me:
|
||
he brought me into all company, and made them treat me with civility;
|
||
“because,” as he told them, privately, “this would put me into good
|
||
humour, and make me more diverting.”
|
||
|
||
Every day, when I waited on him, beside the trouble he was at in
|
||
teaching, he would ask me several questions concerning myself, which I
|
||
answered as well as I could, and by these means he had already received
|
||
some general ideas, though very imperfect. It would be tedious to
|
||
relate the several steps by which I advanced to a more regular
|
||
conversation; but the first account I gave of myself in any order and
|
||
length was to this purpose:
|
||
|
||
“That I came from a very far country, as I already had attempted to
|
||
tell him, with about fifty more of my own species; that we travelled
|
||
upon the seas in a great hollow vessel made of wood, and larger than
|
||
his honour’s house. I described the ship to him in the best terms I
|
||
could, and explained, by the help of my handkerchief displayed, how it
|
||
was driven forward by the wind. That upon a quarrel among us, I was set
|
||
on shore on this coast, where I walked forward, without knowing
|
||
whither, till he delivered me from the persecution of those execrable
|
||
_Yahoos_.” He asked me, “who made the ship, and how it was possible
|
||
that the _Houyhnhnms_ of my country would leave it to the management of
|
||
brutes?” My answer was, “that I durst proceed no further in my
|
||
relation, unless he would give me his word and honour that he would not
|
||
be offended, and then I would tell him the wonders I had so often
|
||
promised.” He agreed; and I went on by assuring him, that the ship was
|
||
made by creatures like myself; who, in all the countries I had
|
||
travelled, as well as in my own, were the only governing rational
|
||
animals; and that upon my arrival hither, I was as much astonished to
|
||
see the _Houyhnhnms_ act like rational beings, as he, or his friends,
|
||
could be, in finding some marks of reason in a creature he was pleased
|
||
to call a _Yahoo_; to which I owned my resemblance in every part, but
|
||
could not account for their degenerate and brutal nature. I said
|
||
farther, “that if good fortune ever restored me to my native country,
|
||
to relate my travels hither, as I resolved to do, everybody would
|
||
believe, that I said the thing that was not, that I invented the story
|
||
out of my own head; and (with all possible respect to himself, his
|
||
family, and friends, and under his promise of not being offended) our
|
||
countrymen would hardly think it probable that a _Houyhnhnm_ should be
|
||
the presiding creature of a nation, and a _Yahoo_ the brute.”
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER IV.
|
||
|
||
The Houyhnhnms’ notion of truth and falsehood. The author’s discourse
|
||
disapproved by his master. The author gives a more particular account
|
||
of himself, and the accidents of his voyage.
|
||
|
||
|
||
My master heard me with great appearances of uneasiness in his
|
||
countenance; because _doubting_, or not believing, are so little known
|
||
in this country, that the inhabitants cannot tell how to behave
|
||
themselves under such circumstances. And I remember, in frequent
|
||
discourses with my master concerning the nature of manhood in other
|
||
parts of the world, having occasion to talk of _lying_ and _false
|
||
representation_, it was with much difficulty that he comprehended what
|
||
I meant, although he had otherwise a most acute judgment. For he argued
|
||
thus: “that the use of speech was to make us understand one another,
|
||
and to receive information of facts; now, if any one _said the thing
|
||
which was not_, these ends were defeated, because I cannot properly be
|
||
said to understand him; and I am so far from receiving information,
|
||
that he leaves me worse than in ignorance; for I am led to believe a
|
||
thing black, when it is white, and short, when it is long.” And these
|
||
were all the notions he had concerning that faculty of _lying_, so
|
||
perfectly well understood, and so universally practised, among human
|
||
creatures.
|
||
|
||
To return from this digression. When I asserted that the _Yahoos_ were
|
||
the only governing animals in my country, which my master said was
|
||
altogether past his conception, he desired to know, “whether we had
|
||
_Houyhnhnms_ among us, and what was their employment?” I told him, “we
|
||
had great numbers; that in summer they grazed in the fields, and in
|
||
winter were kept in houses with hay and oats, where _Yahoo_ servants
|
||
were employed to rub their skins smooth, comb their manes, pick their
|
||
feet, serve them with food, and make their beds.” “I understand you
|
||
well,” said my master: “it is now very plain, from all you have spoken,
|
||
that whatever share of reason the _Yahoos_ pretend to, the _Houyhnhnms_
|
||
are your masters; I heartily wish our _Yahoos_ would be so tractable.”
|
||
I begged “his honour would please to excuse me from proceeding any
|
||
further, because I was very certain that the account he expected from
|
||
me would be highly displeasing.” But he insisted in commanding me to
|
||
let him know the best and the worst. I told him “he should be obeyed.”
|
||
I owned “that the _Houyhnhnms_ among us, whom we called horses, were
|
||
the most generous and comely animals we had; that they excelled in
|
||
strength and swiftness; and when they belonged to persons of quality,
|
||
were employed in travelling, racing, or drawing chariots; they were
|
||
treated with much kindness and care, till they fell into diseases, or
|
||
became foundered in the feet; but then they were sold, and used to all
|
||
kind of drudgery till they died; after which their skins were stripped,
|
||
and sold for what they were worth, and their bodies left to be devoured
|
||
by dogs and birds of prey. But the common race of horses had not so
|
||
good fortune, being kept by farmers and carriers, and other mean
|
||
people, who put them to greater labour, and fed them worse.” I
|
||
described, as well as I could, our way of riding; the shape and use of
|
||
a bridle, a saddle, a spur, and a whip; of harness and wheels. I added,
|
||
“that we fastened plates of a certain hard substance, called iron, at
|
||
the bottom of their feet, to preserve their hoofs from being broken by
|
||
the stony ways, on which we often travelled.”
|
||
|
||
My master, after some expressions of great indignation, wondered “how
|
||
we dared to venture upon a _Houyhnhnm’s_ back; for he was sure, that
|
||
the weakest servant in his house would be able to shake off the
|
||
strongest _Yahoo_; or by lying down and rolling on his back, squeeze
|
||
the brute to death.” I answered “that our horses were trained up, from
|
||
three or four years old, to the several uses we intended them for; that
|
||
if any of them proved intolerably vicious, they were employed for
|
||
carriages; that they were severely beaten, while they were young, for
|
||
any mischievous tricks; that the males, designed for the common use of
|
||
riding or draught, were generally castrated about two years after their
|
||
birth, to take down their spirits, and make them more tame and gentle;
|
||
that they were indeed sensible of rewards and punishments; but his
|
||
honour would please to consider, that they had not the least tincture
|
||
of reason, any more than the _Yahoos_ in this country.”
|
||
|
||
It put me to the pains of many circumlocutions, to give my master a
|
||
right idea of what I spoke; for their language does not abound in
|
||
variety of words, because their wants and passions are fewer than among
|
||
us. But it is impossible to express his noble resentment at our savage
|
||
treatment of the _Houyhnhnm_ race; particularly after I had explained
|
||
the manner and use of castrating horses among us, to hinder them from
|
||
propagating their kind, and to render them more servile. He said, “if
|
||
it were possible there could be any country where _Yahoos_ alone were
|
||
endued with reason, they certainly must be the governing animal;
|
||
because reason in time will always prevail against brutal strength.
|
||
But, considering the frame of our bodies, and especially of mine, he
|
||
thought no creature of equal bulk was so ill-contrived for employing
|
||
that reason in the common offices of life;” whereupon he desired to
|
||
know “whether those among whom I lived resembled me, or the _Yahoos_ of
|
||
his country?” I assured him, “that I was as well shaped as most of my
|
||
age; but the younger, and the females, were much more soft and tender,
|
||
and the skins of the latter generally as white as milk.” He said, “I
|
||
differed indeed from other _Yahoos_, being much more cleanly, and not
|
||
altogether so deformed; but, in point of real advantage, he thought I
|
||
differed for the worse: that my nails were of no use either to my fore
|
||
or hinder feet; as to my forefeet, he could not properly call them by
|
||
that name, for he never observed me to walk upon them; that they were
|
||
too soft to bear the ground; that I generally went with them uncovered;
|
||
neither was the covering I sometimes wore on them of the same shape, or
|
||
so strong as that on my feet behind: that I could not walk with any
|
||
security, for if either of my hinder feet slipped, I must inevitably
|
||
fall.” He then began to find fault with other parts of my body: “the
|
||
flatness of my face, the prominence of my nose, my eyes placed directly
|
||
in front, so that I could not look on either side without turning my
|
||
head: that I was not able to feed myself, without lifting one of my
|
||
forefeet to my mouth: and therefore nature had placed those joints to
|
||
answer that necessity. He knew not what could be the use of those
|
||
several clefts and divisions in my feet behind; that these were too
|
||
soft to bear the hardness and sharpness of stones, without a covering
|
||
made from the skin of some other brute; that my whole body wanted a
|
||
fence against heat and cold, which I was forced to put on and off every
|
||
day, with tediousness and trouble: and lastly, that he observed every
|
||
animal in this country naturally to abhor the _Yahoos_, whom the weaker
|
||
avoided, and the stronger drove from them. So that, supposing us to
|
||
have the gift of reason, he could not see how it were possible to cure
|
||
that natural antipathy, which every creature discovered against us; nor
|
||
consequently how we could tame and render them serviceable. However, he
|
||
would,” as he said, “debate the matter no farther, because he was more
|
||
desirous to know my own story, the country where I was born, and the
|
||
several actions and events of my life, before I came hither.”
|
||
|
||
I assured him, “how extremely desirous I was that he should be
|
||
satisfied on every point; but I doubted much, whether it would be
|
||
possible for me to explain myself on several subjects, whereof his
|
||
honour could have no conception; because I saw nothing in his country
|
||
to which I could resemble them; that, however, I would do my best, and
|
||
strive to express myself by similitudes, humbly desiring his assistance
|
||
when I wanted proper words;” which he was pleased to promise me.
|
||
|
||
I said, “my birth was of honest parents, in an island called England;
|
||
which was remote from his country, as many days’ journey as the
|
||
strongest of his honour’s servants could travel in the annual course of
|
||
the sun; that I was bred a surgeon, whose trade it is to cure wounds
|
||
and hurts in the body, gotten by accident or violence; that my country
|
||
was governed by a female man, whom we called queen; that I left it to
|
||
get riches, whereby I might maintain myself and family, when I should
|
||
return; that, in my last voyage, I was commander of the ship, and had
|
||
about fifty _Yahoos_ under me, many of which died at sea, and I was
|
||
forced to supply them by others picked out from several nations; that
|
||
our ship was twice in danger of being sunk, the first time by a great
|
||
storm, and the second by striking against a rock.” Here my master
|
||
interposed, by asking me, “how I could persuade strangers, out of
|
||
different countries, to venture with me, after the losses I had
|
||
sustained, and the hazards I had run?” I said, “they were fellows of
|
||
desperate fortunes, forced to fly from the places of their birth on
|
||
account of their poverty or their crimes. Some were undone by lawsuits;
|
||
others spent all they had in drinking, whoring, and gaming; others fled
|
||
for treason; many for murder, theft, poisoning, robbery, perjury,
|
||
forgery, coining false money, for committing rapes, or sodomy; for
|
||
flying from their colours, or deserting to the enemy; and most of them
|
||
had broken prison; none of these durst return to their native
|
||
countries, for fear of being hanged, or of starving in a jail; and
|
||
therefore they were under the necessity of seeking a livelihood in
|
||
other places.”
|
||
|
||
During this discourse, my master was pleased to interrupt me several
|
||
times. I had made use of many circumlocutions in describing to him the
|
||
nature of the several crimes for which most of our crew had been forced
|
||
to fly their country. This labour took up several days’ conversation,
|
||
before he was able to comprehend me. He was wholly at a loss to know
|
||
what could be the use or necessity of practising those vices. To clear
|
||
up which, I endeavoured to give some ideas of the desire of power and
|
||
riches; of the terrible effects of lust, intemperance, malice, and
|
||
envy. All this I was forced to define and describe by putting cases and
|
||
making suppositions. After which, like one whose imagination was struck
|
||
with something never seen or heard of before, he would lift up his eyes
|
||
with amazement and indignation. Power, government, war, law,
|
||
punishment, and a thousand other things, had no terms wherein that
|
||
language could express them, which made the difficulty almost
|
||
insuperable, to give my master any conception of what I meant. But
|
||
being of an excellent understanding, much improved by contemplation and
|
||
converse, he at last arrived at a competent knowledge of what human
|
||
nature, in our parts of the world, is capable to perform, and desired I
|
||
would give him some particular account of that land which we call
|
||
Europe, but especially of my own country.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER V.
|
||
|
||
The author at his master’s command, informs him of the state of
|
||
England. The causes of war among the princes of Europe. The author
|
||
begins to explain the English constitution.
|
||
|
||
|
||
The reader may please to observe, that the following extract of many
|
||
conversations I had with my master, contains a summary of the most
|
||
material points which were discoursed at several times for above two
|
||
years; his honour often desiring fuller satisfaction, as I farther
|
||
improved in the _Houyhnhnm_ tongue. I laid before him, as well as I
|
||
could, the whole state of Europe; I discoursed of trade and
|
||
manufactures, of arts and sciences; and the answers I gave to all the
|
||
questions he made, as they arose upon several subjects, were a fund of
|
||
conversation not to be exhausted. But I shall here only set down the
|
||
substance of what passed between us concerning my own country, reducing
|
||
it in order as well as I can, without any regard to time or other
|
||
circumstances, while I strictly adhere to truth. My only concern is,
|
||
that I shall hardly be able to do justice to my master’s arguments and
|
||
expressions, which must needs suffer by my want of capacity, as well as
|
||
by a translation into our barbarous English.
|
||
|
||
In obedience, therefore, to his honour’s commands, I related to him the
|
||
Revolution under the Prince of Orange; the long war with France,
|
||
entered into by the said prince, and renewed by his successor, the
|
||
present queen, wherein the greatest powers of Christendom were engaged,
|
||
and which still continued: I computed, at his request, “that about a
|
||
million of _Yahoos_ might have been killed in the whole progress of it;
|
||
and perhaps a hundred or more cities taken, and five times as many
|
||
ships burnt or sunk.”
|
||
|
||
He asked me, “what were the usual causes or motives that made one
|
||
country go to war with another?” I answered “they were innumerable; but
|
||
I should only mention a few of the chief. Sometimes the ambition of
|
||
princes, who never think they have land or people enough to govern;
|
||
sometimes the corruption of ministers, who engage their master in a
|
||
war, in order to stifle or divert the clamour of the subjects against
|
||
their evil administration. Difference in opinions has cost many
|
||
millions of lives: for instance, whether flesh be bread, or bread be
|
||
flesh; whether the juice of a certain berry be blood or wine; whether
|
||
whistling be a vice or a virtue; whether it be better to kiss a post,
|
||
or throw it into the fire; what is the best colour for a coat, whether
|
||
black, white, red, or gray; and whether it should be long or short,
|
||
narrow or wide, dirty or clean; with many more. Neither are any wars so
|
||
furious and bloody, or of so long a continuance, as those occasioned by
|
||
difference in opinion, especially if it be in things indifferent.
|
||
|
||
“Sometimes the quarrel between two princes is to decide which of them
|
||
shall dispossess a third of his dominions, where neither of them
|
||
pretend to any right. Sometimes one prince quarrels with another for
|
||
fear the other should quarrel with him. Sometimes a war is entered
|
||
upon, because the enemy is too strong; and sometimes, because he is too
|
||
weak. Sometimes our neighbours want the things which we have, or have
|
||
the things which we want, and we both fight, till they take ours, or
|
||
give us theirs. It is a very justifiable cause of a war, to invade a
|
||
country after the people have been wasted by famine, destroyed by
|
||
pestilence, or embroiled by factions among themselves. It is
|
||
justifiable to enter into war against our nearest ally, when one of his
|
||
towns lies convenient for us, or a territory of land, that would render
|
||
our dominions round and complete. If a prince sends forces into a
|
||
nation, where the people are poor and ignorant, he may lawfully put
|
||
half of them to death, and make slaves of the rest, in order to
|
||
civilize and reduce them from their barbarous way of living. It is a
|
||
very kingly, honourable, and frequent practice, when one prince desires
|
||
the assistance of another, to secure him against an invasion, that the
|
||
assistant, when he has driven out the invader, should seize on the
|
||
dominions himself, and kill, imprison, or banish, the prince he came to
|
||
relieve. Alliance by blood, or marriage, is a frequent cause of war
|
||
between princes; and the nearer the kindred is, the greater their
|
||
disposition to quarrel; poor nations are hungry, and rich nations are
|
||
proud; and pride and hunger will ever be at variance. For these
|
||
reasons, the trade of a soldier is held the most honourable of all
|
||
others; because a soldier is a _Yahoo_ hired to kill, in cold blood, as
|
||
many of his own species, who have never offended him, as possibly he
|
||
can.
|
||
|
||
“There is likewise a kind of beggarly princes in Europe, not able to
|
||
make war by themselves, who hire out their troops to richer nations,
|
||
for so much a day to each man; of which they keep three-fourths to
|
||
themselves, and it is the best part of their maintenance: such are
|
||
those in many northern parts of Europe.”
|
||
|
||
“What you have told me,” said my master, “upon the subject of war, does
|
||
indeed discover most admirably the effects of that reason you pretend
|
||
to: however, it is happy that the shame is greater than the danger; and
|
||
that nature has left you utterly incapable of doing much mischief. For,
|
||
your mouths lying flat with your faces, you can hardly bite each other
|
||
to any purpose, unless by consent. Then as to the claws upon your feet
|
||
before and behind, they are so short and tender, that one of our
|
||
_Yahoos_ would drive a dozen of yours before him. And therefore, in
|
||
recounting the numbers of those who have been killed in battle, I
|
||
cannot but think you have said the thing which is not.”
|
||
|
||
I could not forbear shaking my head, and smiling a little at his
|
||
ignorance. And being no stranger to the art of war, I gave him a
|
||
description of cannons, culverins, muskets, carabines, pistols,
|
||
bullets, powder, swords, bayonets, battles, sieges, retreats, attacks,
|
||
undermines, countermines, bombardments, sea fights, ships sunk with a
|
||
thousand men, twenty thousand killed on each side, dying groans, limbs
|
||
flying in the air, smoke, noise, confusion, trampling to death under
|
||
horses’ feet, flight, pursuit, victory; fields strewed with carcases,
|
||
left for food to dogs and wolves and birds of prey; plundering,
|
||
stripping, ravishing, burning, and destroying. And to set forth the
|
||
valour of my own dear countrymen, I assured him, “that I had seen them
|
||
blow up a hundred enemies at once in a siege, and as many in a ship,
|
||
and beheld the dead bodies drop down in pieces from the clouds, to the
|
||
great diversion of the spectators.”
|
||
|
||
I was going on to more particulars, when my master commanded me
|
||
silence. He said, “whoever understood the nature of _Yahoos_, might
|
||
easily believe it possible for so vile an animal to be capable of every
|
||
action I had named, if their strength and cunning equalled their
|
||
malice. But as my discourse had increased his abhorrence of the whole
|
||
species, so he found it gave him a disturbance in his mind to which he
|
||
was wholly a stranger before. He thought his ears, being used to such
|
||
abominable words, might, by degrees, admit them with less detestation:
|
||
that although he hated the _Yahoos_ of this country, yet he no more
|
||
blamed them for their odious qualities, than he did a _gnnayh_ (a bird
|
||
of prey) for its cruelty, or a sharp stone for cutting his hoof. But
|
||
when a creature pretending to reason could be capable of such
|
||
enormities, he dreaded lest the corruption of that faculty might be
|
||
worse than brutality itself. He seemed therefore confident, that,
|
||
instead of reason we were only possessed of some quality fitted to
|
||
increase our natural vices; as the reflection from a troubled stream
|
||
returns the image of an ill-shapen body, not only larger but more
|
||
distorted.”
|
||
|
||
He added, “that he had heard too much upon the subject of war, both in
|
||
this and some former discourses. There was another point, which a
|
||
little perplexed him at present. I had informed him, that some of our
|
||
crew left their country on account of being ruined by law; that I had
|
||
already explained the meaning of the word; but he was at a loss how it
|
||
should come to pass, that the law, which was intended for every man’s
|
||
preservation, should be any man’s ruin. Therefore he desired to be
|
||
further satisfied what I meant by law, and the dispensers thereof,
|
||
according to the present practice in my own country; because he thought
|
||
nature and reason were sufficient guides for a reasonable animal, as we
|
||
pretended to be, in showing us what we ought to do, and what to avoid.”
|
||
|
||
I assured his honour, “that law was a science in which I had not much
|
||
conversed, further than by employing advocates, in vain, upon some
|
||
injustices that had been done me: however, I would give him all the
|
||
satisfaction I was able.”
|
||
|
||
I said, “there was a society of men among us, bred up from their youth
|
||
in the art of proving, by words multiplied for the purpose, that white
|
||
is black, and black is white, according as they are paid. To this
|
||
society all the rest of the people are slaves. For example, if my
|
||
neighbour has a mind to my cow, he has a lawyer to prove that he ought
|
||
to have my cow from me. I must then hire another to defend my right, it
|
||
being against all rules of law that any man should be allowed to speak
|
||
for himself. Now, in this case, I, who am the right owner, lie under
|
||
two great disadvantages: first, my lawyer, being practised almost from
|
||
his cradle in defending falsehood, is quite out of his element when he
|
||
would be an advocate for justice, which is an unnatural office he
|
||
always attempts with great awkwardness, if not with ill-will. The
|
||
second disadvantage is, that my lawyer must proceed with great caution,
|
||
or else he will be reprimanded by the judges, and abhorred by his
|
||
brethren, as one that would lessen the practice of the law. And
|
||
therefore I have but two methods to preserve my cow. The first is, to
|
||
gain over my adversary’s lawyer with a double fee, who will then betray
|
||
his client by insinuating that he hath justice on his side. The second
|
||
way is for my lawyer to make my cause appear as unjust as he can, by
|
||
allowing the cow to belong to my adversary: and this, if it be
|
||
skilfully done, will certainly bespeak the favour of the bench. Now
|
||
your honour is to know, that these judges are persons appointed to
|
||
decide all controversies of property, as well as for the trial of
|
||
criminals, and picked out from the most dexterous lawyers, who are
|
||
grown old or lazy; and having been biassed all their lives against
|
||
truth and equity, lie under such a fatal necessity of favouring fraud,
|
||
perjury, and oppression, that I have known some of them refuse a large
|
||
bribe from the side where justice lay, rather than injure the faculty,
|
||
by doing any thing unbecoming their nature or their office.
|
||
|
||
“It is a maxim among these lawyers that whatever has been done before,
|
||
may legally be done again: and therefore they take special care to
|
||
record all the decisions formerly made against common justice, and the
|
||
general reason of mankind. These, under the name of precedents, they
|
||
produce as authorities to justify the most iniquitous opinions; and the
|
||
judges never fail of directing accordingly.
|
||
|
||
“In pleading, they studiously avoid entering into the merits of the
|
||
cause; but are loud, violent, and tedious, in dwelling upon all
|
||
circumstances which are not to the purpose. For instance, in the case
|
||
already mentioned; they never desire to know what claim or title my
|
||
adversary has to my cow; but whether the said cow were red or black;
|
||
her horns long or short; whether the field I graze her in be round or
|
||
square; whether she was milked at home or abroad; what diseases she is
|
||
subject to, and the like; after which they consult precedents, adjourn
|
||
the cause from time to time, and in ten, twenty, or thirty years, come
|
||
to an issue.
|
||
|
||
“It is likewise to be observed, that this society has a peculiar cant
|
||
and jargon of their own, that no other mortal can understand, and
|
||
wherein all their laws are written, which they take special care to
|
||
multiply; whereby they have wholly confounded the very essence of truth
|
||
and falsehood, of right and wrong; so that it will take thirty years to
|
||
decide, whether the field left me by my ancestors for six generations
|
||
belongs to me, or to a stranger three hundred miles off.
|
||
|
||
“In the trial of persons accused for crimes against the state, the
|
||
method is much more short and commendable: the judge first sends to
|
||
sound the disposition of those in power, after which he can easily hang
|
||
or save a criminal, strictly preserving all due forms of law.”
|
||
|
||
Here my master interposing, said, “it was a pity, that creatures
|
||
endowed with such prodigious abilities of mind, as these lawyers, by
|
||
the description I gave of them, must certainly be, were not rather
|
||
encouraged to be instructors of others in wisdom and knowledge.” In
|
||
answer to which I assured his honour, “that in all points out of their
|
||
own trade, they were usually the most ignorant and stupid generation
|
||
among us, the most despicable in common conversation, avowed enemies to
|
||
all knowledge and learning, and equally disposed to pervert the general
|
||
reason of mankind in every other subject of discourse as in that of
|
||
their own profession.”
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VI.
|
||
|
||
A continuation of the state of England under Queen Anne. The character
|
||
of a first minister of state in European courts.
|
||
|
||
|
||
My master was yet wholly at a loss to understand what motives could
|
||
incite this race of lawyers to perplex, disquiet, and weary themselves,
|
||
and engage in a confederacy of injustice, merely for the sake of
|
||
injuring their fellow-animals; neither could he comprehend what I meant
|
||
in saying, they did it for hire. Whereupon I was at much pains to
|
||
describe to him the use of money, the materials it was made of, and the
|
||
value of the metals; “that when a _Yahoo_ had got a great store of this
|
||
precious substance, he was able to purchase whatever he had a mind to;
|
||
the finest clothing, the noblest houses, great tracts of land, the most
|
||
costly meats and drinks, and have his choice of the most beautiful
|
||
females. Therefore since money alone was able to perform all these
|
||
feats, our _Yahoos_ thought they could never have enough of it to
|
||
spend, or to save, as they found themselves inclined, from their
|
||
natural bent either to profusion or avarice; that the rich man enjoyed
|
||
the fruit of the poor man’s labour, and the latter were a thousand to
|
||
one in proportion to the former; that the bulk of our people were
|
||
forced to live miserably, by labouring every day for small wages, to
|
||
make a few live plentifully.”
|
||
|
||
I enlarged myself much on these, and many other particulars to the same
|
||
purpose; but his honour was still to seek; for he went upon a
|
||
supposition, that all animals had a title to their share in the
|
||
productions of the earth, and especially those who presided over the
|
||
rest. Therefore he desired I would let him know, “what these costly
|
||
meats were, and how any of us happened to want them?” Whereupon I
|
||
enumerated as many sorts as came into my head, with the various methods
|
||
of dressing them, which could not be done without sending vessels by
|
||
sea to every part of the world, as well for liquors to drink as for
|
||
sauces and innumerable other conveniences. I assured him “that this
|
||
whole globe of earth must be at least three times gone round before one
|
||
of our better female _Yahoos_ could get her breakfast, or a cup to put
|
||
it in.” He said “that must needs be a miserable country which cannot
|
||
furnish food for its own inhabitants. But what he chiefly wondered at
|
||
was, how such vast tracts of ground as I described should be wholly
|
||
without fresh water, and the people put to the necessity of sending
|
||
over the sea for drink.” I replied “that England (the dear place of my
|
||
nativity) was computed to produce three times the quantity of food more
|
||
than its inhabitants are able to consume, as well as liquors extracted
|
||
from grain, or pressed out of the fruit of certain trees, which made
|
||
excellent drink, and the same proportion in every other convenience of
|
||
life. But, in order to feed the luxury and intemperance of the males,
|
||
and the vanity of the females, we sent away the greatest part of our
|
||
necessary things to other countries, whence, in return, we brought the
|
||
materials of diseases, folly, and vice, to spend among ourselves. Hence
|
||
it follows of necessity, that vast numbers of our people are compelled
|
||
to seek their livelihood by begging, robbing, stealing, cheating,
|
||
pimping, flattering, suborning, forswearing, forging, gaming, lying,
|
||
fawning, hectoring, voting, scribbling, star-gazing, poisoning,
|
||
whoring, canting, libelling, freethinking, and the like occupations:”
|
||
every one of which terms I was at much pains to make him understand.
|
||
|
||
“That wine was not imported among us from foreign countries to supply
|
||
the want of water or other drinks, but because it was a sort of liquid
|
||
which made us merry by putting us out of our senses, diverted all
|
||
melancholy thoughts, begat wild extravagant imaginations in the brain,
|
||
raised our hopes and banished our fears, suspended every office of
|
||
reason for a time, and deprived us of the use of our limbs, till we
|
||
fell into a profound sleep; although it must be confessed, that we
|
||
always awaked sick and dispirited; and that the use of this liquor
|
||
filled us with diseases which made our lives uncomfortable and short.
|
||
|
||
“But beside all this, the bulk of our people supported themselves by
|
||
furnishing the necessities or conveniences of life to the rich and to
|
||
each other. For instance, when I am at home, and dressed as I ought to
|
||
be, I carry on my body the workmanship of a hundred tradesmen; the
|
||
building and furniture of my house employ as many more, and five times
|
||
the number to adorn my wife.”
|
||
|
||
I was going on to tell him of another sort of people, who get their
|
||
livelihood by attending the sick, having, upon some occasions, informed
|
||
his honour that many of my crew had died of diseases. But here it was
|
||
with the utmost difficulty that I brought him to apprehend what I
|
||
meant. “He could easily conceive, that a _Houyhnhnm_, grew weak and
|
||
heavy a few days before his death, or by some accident might hurt a
|
||
limb; but that nature, who works all things to perfection, should
|
||
suffer any pains to breed in our bodies, he thought impossible, and
|
||
desired to know the reason of so unaccountable an evil.”
|
||
|
||
I told him “we fed on a thousand things which operated contrary to each
|
||
other; that we ate when we were not hungry, and drank without the
|
||
provocation of thirst; that we sat whole nights drinking strong
|
||
liquors, without eating a bit, which disposed us to sloth, inflamed our
|
||
bodies, and precipitated or prevented digestion; that prostitute female
|
||
_Yahoos_ acquired a certain malady, which bred rottenness in the bones
|
||
of those who fell into their embraces; that this, and many other
|
||
diseases, were propagated from father to son; so that great numbers
|
||
came into the world with complicated maladies upon them; that it would
|
||
be endless to give him a catalogue of all diseases incident to human
|
||
bodies, for they would not be fewer than five or six hundred, spread
|
||
over every limb and joint—in short, every part, external and intestine,
|
||
having diseases appropriated to itself. To remedy which, there was a
|
||
sort of people bred up among us in the profession, or pretence, of
|
||
curing the sick. And because I had some skill in the faculty, I would,
|
||
in gratitude to his honour, let him know the whole mystery and method
|
||
by which they proceed.
|
||
|
||
“Their fundamental is, that all diseases arise from repletion; whence
|
||
they conclude, that a great evacuation of the body is necessary, either
|
||
through the natural passage or upwards at the mouth. Their next
|
||
business is from herbs, minerals, gums, oils, shells, salts, juices,
|
||
sea-weed, excrements, barks of trees, serpents, toads, frogs, spiders,
|
||
dead men’s flesh and bones, birds, beasts, and fishes, to form a
|
||
composition, for smell and taste, the most abominable, nauseous, and
|
||
detestable, they can possibly contrive, which the stomach immediately
|
||
rejects with loathing, and this they call a vomit; or else, from the
|
||
same store-house, with some other poisonous additions, they command us
|
||
to take in at the orifice above or below (just as the physician then
|
||
happens to be disposed) a medicine equally annoying and disgustful to
|
||
the bowels; which, relaxing the belly, drives down all before it; and
|
||
this they call a purge, or a clyster. For nature (as the physicians
|
||
allege) having intended the superior anterior orifice only for the
|
||
intromission of solids and liquids, and the inferior posterior for
|
||
ejection, these artists ingeniously considering that in all diseases
|
||
nature is forced out of her seat, therefore, to replace her in it, the
|
||
body must be treated in a manner directly contrary, by interchanging
|
||
the use of each orifice; forcing solids and liquids in at the anus, and
|
||
making evacuations at the mouth.
|
||
|
||
“But, besides real diseases, we are subject to many that are only
|
||
imaginary, for which the physicians have invented imaginary cures;
|
||
these have their several names, and so have the drugs that are proper
|
||
for them; and with these our female _Yahoos_ are always infested.
|
||
|
||
“One great excellency in this tribe, is their skill at prognostics,
|
||
wherein they seldom fail; their predictions in real diseases, when they
|
||
rise to any degree of malignity, generally portending death, which is
|
||
always in their power, when recovery is not: and therefore, upon any
|
||
unexpected signs of amendment, after they have pronounced their
|
||
sentence, rather than be accused as false prophets, they know how to
|
||
approve their sagacity to the world, by a seasonable dose.
|
||
|
||
“They are likewise of special use to husbands and wives who are grown
|
||
weary of their mates; to eldest sons, to great ministers of state, and
|
||
often to princes.”
|
||
|
||
I had formerly, upon occasion, discoursed with my master upon the
|
||
nature of government in general, and particularly of our own excellent
|
||
constitution, deservedly the wonder and envy of the whole world. But
|
||
having here accidentally mentioned a minister of state, he commanded
|
||
me, some time after, to inform him, “what species of _Yahoo_ I
|
||
particularly meant by that appellation.”
|
||
|
||
I told him, “that a first or chief minister of state, who was the
|
||
person I intended to describe, was the creature wholly exempt from joy
|
||
and grief, love and hatred, pity and anger; at least, makes use of no
|
||
other passions, but a violent desire of wealth, power, and titles; that
|
||
he applies his words to all uses, except to the indication of his mind;
|
||
that he never tells a truth but with an intent that you should take it
|
||
for a lie; nor a lie, but with a design that you should take it for a
|
||
truth; that those he speaks worst of behind their backs are in the
|
||
surest way of preferment; and whenever he begins to praise you to
|
||
others, or to yourself, you are from that day forlorn. The worst mark
|
||
you can receive is a promise, especially when it is confirmed with an
|
||
oath; after which, every wise man retires, and gives over all hopes.
|
||
|
||
“There are three methods, by which a man may rise to be chief minister.
|
||
The first is, by knowing how, with prudence, to dispose of a wife, a
|
||
daughter, or a sister; the second, by betraying or undermining his
|
||
predecessor; and the third is, by a furious zeal, in public assemblies,
|
||
against the corruptions of the court. But a wise prince would rather
|
||
choose to employ those who practise the last of these methods; because
|
||
such zealots prove always the most obsequious and subservient to the
|
||
will and passions of their master. That these ministers, having all
|
||
employments at their disposal, preserve themselves in power, by bribing
|
||
the majority of a senate or great council; and at last, by an
|
||
expedient, called an act of indemnity” (whereof I described the nature
|
||
to him), “they secure themselves from after-reckonings, and retire from
|
||
the public laden with the spoils of the nation.
|
||
|
||
“The palace of a chief minister is a seminary to breed up others in his
|
||
own trade: the pages, lackeys, and porters, by imitating their master,
|
||
become ministers of state in their several districts, and learn to
|
||
excel in the three principal ingredients, of insolence, lying, and
|
||
bribery. Accordingly, they have a subaltern court paid to them by
|
||
persons of the best rank; and sometimes by the force of dexterity and
|
||
impudence, arrive, through several gradations, to be successors to
|
||
their lord.
|
||
|
||
“He is usually governed by a decayed wench, or favourite footman, who
|
||
are the tunnels through which all graces are conveyed, and may properly
|
||
be called, in the last resort, the governors of the kingdom.”
|
||
|
||
One day, in discourse, my master, having heard me mention the nobility
|
||
of my country, was pleased to make me a compliment which I could not
|
||
pretend to deserve: “that he was sure I must have been born of some
|
||
noble family, because I far exceeded in shape, colour, and cleanliness,
|
||
all the _Yahoos_ of his nation, although I seemed to fail in strength
|
||
and agility, which must be imputed to my different way of living from
|
||
those other brutes; and besides I was not only endowed with the faculty
|
||
of speech, but likewise with some rudiments of reason, to a degree
|
||
that, with all his acquaintance, I passed for a prodigy.”
|
||
|
||
He made me observe, “that among the _Houyhnhnms_, the white, the
|
||
sorrel, and the iron-gray, were not so exactly shaped as the bay, the
|
||
dapple-gray, and the black; nor born with equal talents of mind, or a
|
||
capacity to improve them; and therefore continued always in the
|
||
condition of servants, without ever aspiring to match out of their own
|
||
race, which in that country would be reckoned monstrous and unnatural.”
|
||
|
||
I made his honour my most humble acknowledgments for the good opinion
|
||
he was pleased to conceive of me, but assured him at the same time,
|
||
“that my birth was of the lower sort, having been born of plain honest
|
||
parents, who were just able to give me a tolerable education; that
|
||
nobility, among us, was altogether a different thing from the idea he
|
||
had of it; that our young noblemen are bred from their childhood in
|
||
idleness and luxury; that, as soon as years will permit, they consume
|
||
their vigour, and contract odious diseases among lewd females; and when
|
||
their fortunes are almost ruined, they marry some woman of mean birth,
|
||
disagreeable person, and unsound constitution (merely for the sake of
|
||
money), whom they hate and despise. That the productions of such
|
||
marriages are generally scrofulous, rickety, or deformed children; by
|
||
which means the family seldom continues above three generations, unless
|
||
the wife takes care to provide a healthy father, among her neighbours
|
||
or domestics, in order to improve and continue the breed. That a weak
|
||
diseased body, a meagre countenance, and sallow complexion, are the
|
||
true marks of noble blood; and a healthy robust appearance is so
|
||
disgraceful in a man of quality, that the world concludes his real
|
||
father to have been a groom or a coachman. The imperfections of his
|
||
mind run parallel with those of his body, being a composition of
|
||
spleen, dullness, ignorance, caprice, sensuality, and pride.
|
||
|
||
“Without the consent of this illustrious body, no law can be enacted,
|
||
repealed, or altered: and these nobles have likewise the decision of
|
||
all our possessions, without appeal.” [514]
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VII.
|
||
|
||
The author’s great love of his native country. His master’s
|
||
observations upon the constitution and administration of England, as
|
||
described by the author, with parallel cases and comparisons. His
|
||
master’s observations upon human nature.
|
||
|
||
|
||
The reader may be disposed to wonder how I could prevail on myself to
|
||
give so free a representation of my own species, among a race of
|
||
mortals who are already too apt to conceive the vilest opinion of
|
||
humankind, from that entire congruity between me and their _Yahoos_.
|
||
But I must freely confess, that the many virtues of those excellent
|
||
quadrupeds, placed in opposite view to human corruptions, had so far
|
||
opened my eyes and enlarged my understanding, that I began to view the
|
||
actions and passions of man in a very different light, and to think the
|
||
honour of my own kind not worth managing; which, besides, it was
|
||
impossible for me to do, before a person of so acute a judgment as my
|
||
master, who daily convinced me of a thousand faults in myself, whereof
|
||
I had not the least perception before, and which, with us, would never
|
||
be numbered even among human infirmities. I had likewise learned, from
|
||
his example, an utter detestation of all falsehood or disguise; and
|
||
truth appeared so amiable to me, that I determined upon sacrificing
|
||
every thing to it.
|
||
|
||
Let me deal so candidly with the reader as to confess that there was
|
||
yet a much stronger motive for the freedom I took in my representation
|
||
of things. I had not yet been a year in this country before I
|
||
contracted such a love and veneration for the inhabitants, that I
|
||
entered on a firm resolution never to return to humankind, but to pass
|
||
the rest of my life among these admirable _Houyhnhnms_, in the
|
||
contemplation and practice of every virtue, where I could have no
|
||
example or incitement to vice. But it was decreed by fortune, my
|
||
perpetual enemy, that so great a felicity should not fall to my share.
|
||
However, it is now some comfort to reflect, that in what I said of my
|
||
countrymen, I extenuated their faults as much as I durst before so
|
||
strict an examiner; and upon every article gave as favourable a turn as
|
||
the matter would bear. For, indeed, who is there alive that will not be
|
||
swayed by his bias and partiality to the place of his birth?
|
||
|
||
I have related the substance of several conversations I had with my
|
||
master during the greatest part of the time I had the honour to be in
|
||
his service; but have, indeed, for brevity sake, omitted much more than
|
||
is here set down.
|
||
|
||
When I had answered all his questions, and his curiosity seemed to be
|
||
fully satisfied, he sent for me one morning early, and commanded me to
|
||
sit down at some distance (an honour which he had never before
|
||
conferred upon me). He said, “he had been very seriously considering my
|
||
whole story, as far as it related both to myself and my country; that
|
||
he looked upon us as a sort of animals, to whose share, by what
|
||
accident he could not conjecture, some small pittance of reason had
|
||
fallen, whereof we made no other use, than by its assistance, to
|
||
aggravate our natural corruptions, and to acquire new ones, which
|
||
nature had not given us; that we disarmed ourselves of the few
|
||
abilities she had bestowed; had been very successful in multiplying our
|
||
original wants, and seemed to spend our whole lives in vain endeavours
|
||
to supply them by our own inventions; that, as to myself, it was
|
||
manifest I had neither the strength nor agility of a common _Yahoo_;
|
||
that I walked infirmly on my hinder feet; had found out a contrivance
|
||
to make my claws of no use or defence, and to remove the hair from my
|
||
chin, which was intended as a shelter from the sun and the weather:
|
||
lastly, that I could neither run with speed, nor climb trees like my
|
||
brethren,” as he called them, “the _Yahoos_ in his country.
|
||
|
||
“That our institutions of government and law were plainly owing to our
|
||
gross defects in reason, and by consequence in virtue; because reason
|
||
alone is sufficient to govern a rational creature; which was,
|
||
therefore, a character we had no pretence to challenge, even from the
|
||
account I had given of my own people; although he manifestly perceived,
|
||
that, in order to favour them, I had concealed many particulars, and
|
||
often said the thing which was not.
|
||
|
||
“He was the more confirmed in this opinion, because, he observed, that
|
||
as I agreed in every feature of my body with other _Yahoos_, except
|
||
where it was to my real disadvantage in point of strength, speed, and
|
||
activity, the shortness of my claws, and some other particulars where
|
||
nature had no part; so from the representation I had given him of our
|
||
lives, our manners, and our actions, he found as near a resemblance in
|
||
the disposition of our minds.” He said, “the _Yahoos_ were known to
|
||
hate one another, more than they did any different species of animals;
|
||
and the reason usually assigned was, the odiousness of their own
|
||
shapes, which all could see in the rest, but not in themselves. He had
|
||
therefore begun to think it not unwise in us to cover our bodies, and
|
||
by that invention conceal many of our deformities from each other,
|
||
which would else be hardly supportable. But he now found he had been
|
||
mistaken, and that the dissensions of those brutes in his country were
|
||
owing to the same cause with ours, as I had described them. For if,”
|
||
said he, “you throw among five _Yahoos_ as much food as would be
|
||
sufficient for fifty, they will, instead of eating peaceably, fall
|
||
together by the ears, each single one impatient to have all to itself;
|
||
and therefore a servant was usually employed to stand by while they
|
||
were feeding abroad, and those kept at home were tied at a distance
|
||
from each other: that if a cow died of age or accident, before a
|
||
_Houyhnhnm_ could secure it for his own _Yahoos_, those in the
|
||
neighbourhood would come in herds to seize it, and then would ensue
|
||
such a battle as I had described, with terrible wounds made by their
|
||
claws on both sides, although they seldom were able to kill one
|
||
another, for want of such convenient instruments of death as we had
|
||
invented. At other times, the like battles have been fought between the
|
||
_Yahoos_ of several neighbourhoods, without any visible cause; those of
|
||
one district watching all opportunities to surprise the next, before
|
||
they are prepared. But if they find their project has miscarried, they
|
||
return home, and, for want of enemies, engage in what I call a civil
|
||
war among themselves.
|
||
|
||
“That in some fields of his country there are certain shining stones of
|
||
several colours, whereof the _Yahoos_ are violently fond: and when part
|
||
of these stones is fixed in the earth, as it sometimes happens, they
|
||
will dig with their claws for whole days to get them out; then carry
|
||
them away, and hide them by heaps in their kennels; but still looking
|
||
round with great caution, for fear their comrades should find out their
|
||
treasure.” My master said, “he could never discover the reason of this
|
||
unnatural appetite, or how these stones could be of any use to a
|
||
_Yahoo_; but now he believed it might proceed from the same principle
|
||
of avarice which I had ascribed to mankind. That he had once, by way of
|
||
experiment, privately removed a heap of these stones from the place
|
||
where one of his _Yahoos_ had buried it; whereupon the sordid animal,
|
||
missing his treasure, by his loud lamenting brought the whole herd to
|
||
the place, there miserably howled, then fell to biting and tearing the
|
||
rest, began to pine away, would neither eat, nor sleep, nor work, till
|
||
he ordered a servant privately to convey the stones into the same hole,
|
||
and hide them as before; which, when his _Yahoo_ had found, he
|
||
presently recovered his spirits and good humour, but took good care to
|
||
remove them to a better hiding place, and has ever since been a very
|
||
serviceable brute.”
|
||
|
||
My master further assured me, which I also observed myself, “that in
|
||
the fields where the shining stones abound, the fiercest and most
|
||
frequent battles are fought, occasioned by perpetual inroads of the
|
||
neighbouring _Yahoos_.”
|
||
|
||
He said, “it was common, when two _Yahoos_ discovered such a stone in a
|
||
field, and were contending which of them should be the proprietor, a
|
||
third would take the advantage, and carry it away from them both;”
|
||
which my master would needs contend to have some kind of resemblance
|
||
with our suits at law; wherein I thought it for our credit not to
|
||
undeceive him; since the decision he mentioned was much more equitable
|
||
than many decrees among us; because the plaintiff and defendant there
|
||
lost nothing beside the stone they contended for: whereas our courts of
|
||
equity would never have dismissed the cause, while either of them had
|
||
any thing left.
|
||
|
||
My master, continuing his discourse, said, “there was nothing that
|
||
rendered the _Yahoos_ more odious, than their undistinguishing appetite
|
||
to devour every thing that came in their way, whether herbs, roots,
|
||
berries, the corrupted flesh of animals, or all mingled together: and
|
||
it was peculiar in their temper, that they were fonder of what they
|
||
could get by rapine or stealth, at a greater distance, than much better
|
||
food provided for them at home. If their prey held out, they would eat
|
||
till they were ready to burst; after which, nature had pointed out to
|
||
them a certain root that gave them a general evacuation.
|
||
|
||
“There was also another kind of root, very juicy, but somewhat rare and
|
||
difficult to be found, which the _Yahoos_ sought for with much
|
||
eagerness, and would suck it with great delight; it produced in them
|
||
the same effects that wine has upon us. It would make them sometimes
|
||
hug, and sometimes tear one another; they would howl, and grin, and
|
||
chatter, and reel, and tumble, and then fall asleep in the mud.”
|
||
|
||
I did indeed observe that the _Yahoos_ were the only animals in this
|
||
country subject to any diseases; which, however, were much fewer than
|
||
horses have among us, and contracted, not by any ill-treatment they
|
||
meet with, but by the nastiness and greediness of that sordid brute.
|
||
Neither has their language any more than a general appellation for
|
||
those maladies, which is borrowed from the name of the beast, and
|
||
called _hnea-yahoo_, or _Yahoo’s evil_; and the cure prescribed is a
|
||
mixture of their own dung and urine, forcibly put down the _Yahoo’s_
|
||
throat. This I have since often known to have been taken with success,
|
||
and do here freely recommend it to my countrymen for the public good,
|
||
as an admirable specific against all diseases produced by repletion.
|
||
|
||
“As to learning, government, arts, manufactures, and the like,” my
|
||
master confessed, “he could find little or no resemblance between the
|
||
_Yahoos_ of that country and those in ours; for he only meant to
|
||
observe what parity there was in our natures. He had heard, indeed,
|
||
some curious _Houyhnhnms_ observe, that in most herds there was a sort
|
||
of ruling _Yahoo_ (as among us there is generally some leading or
|
||
principal stag in a park), who was always more deformed in body, and
|
||
mischievous in disposition, than any of the rest; that this leader had
|
||
usually a favourite as like himself as he could get, whose employment
|
||
was to lick his master’s feet and posteriors, and drive the female
|
||
_Yahoos_ to his kennel; for which he was now and then rewarded with a
|
||
piece of ass’s flesh. This favourite is hated by the whole herd, and
|
||
therefore, to protect himself, keeps always near the person of his
|
||
leader. He usually continues in office till a worse can be found; but
|
||
the very moment he is discarded, his successor, at the head of all the
|
||
_Yahoos_ in that district, young and old, male and female, come in a
|
||
body, and discharge their excrements upon him from head to foot. But
|
||
how far this might be applicable to our courts, and favourites, and
|
||
ministers of state, my master said I could best determine.”
|
||
|
||
I durst make no return to this malicious insinuation, which debased
|
||
human understanding below the sagacity of a common hound, who has
|
||
judgment enough to distinguish and follow the cry of the ablest dog in
|
||
the pack, without being ever mistaken.
|
||
|
||
My master told me, “there were some qualities remarkable in the
|
||
_Yahoos_, which he had not observed me to mention, or at least very
|
||
slightly, in the accounts I had given of humankind.” He said, “those
|
||
animals, like other brutes, had their females in common; but in this
|
||
they differed, that the she _Yahoo_ would admit the males while she was
|
||
pregnant; and that the hes would quarrel and fight with the females, as
|
||
fiercely as with each other; both which practices were such degrees of
|
||
infamous brutality, as no other sensitive creature ever arrived at.
|
||
|
||
“Another thing he wondered at in the _Yahoos_, was their strange
|
||
disposition to nastiness and dirt; whereas there appears to be a
|
||
natural love of cleanliness in all other animals.” As to the two former
|
||
accusations, I was glad to let them pass without any reply, because I
|
||
had not a word to offer upon them in defence of my species, which
|
||
otherwise I certainly had done from my own inclinations. But I could
|
||
have easily vindicated humankind from the imputation of singularity
|
||
upon the last article, if there had been any swine in that country (as
|
||
unluckily for me there were not), which, although it may be a sweeter
|
||
quadruped than a _Yahoo_, cannot, I humbly conceive, in justice,
|
||
pretend to more cleanliness; and so his honour himself must have owned,
|
||
if he had seen their filthy way of feeding, and their custom of
|
||
wallowing and sleeping in the mud.
|
||
|
||
My master likewise mentioned another quality which his servants had
|
||
discovered in several Yahoos, and to him was wholly unaccountable. He
|
||
said, “a fancy would sometimes take a _Yahoo_ to retire into a corner,
|
||
to lie down, and howl, and groan, and spurn away all that came near
|
||
him, although he were young and fat, wanted neither food nor water, nor
|
||
did the servant imagine what could possibly ail him. And the only
|
||
remedy they found was, to set him to hard work, after which he would
|
||
infallibly come to himself.” To this I was silent out of partiality to
|
||
my own kind; yet here I could plainly discover the true seeds of
|
||
spleen, which only seizes on the lazy, the luxurious, and the rich;
|
||
who, if they were forced to undergo the same regimen, I would undertake
|
||
for the cure.
|
||
|
||
His honour had further observed, “that a female _Yahoo_ would often
|
||
stand behind a bank or a bush, to gaze on the young males passing by,
|
||
and then appear, and hide, using many antic gestures and grimaces, at
|
||
which time it was observed that she had a most offensive smell; and
|
||
when any of the males advanced, would slowly retire, looking often
|
||
back, and with a counterfeit show of fear, run off into some convenient
|
||
place, where she knew the male would follow her.
|
||
|
||
“At other times, if a female stranger came among them, three or four of
|
||
her own sex would get about her, and stare, and chatter, and grin, and
|
||
smell her all over; and then turn off with gestures, that seemed to
|
||
express contempt and disdain.”
|
||
|
||
Perhaps my master might refine a little in these speculations, which he
|
||
had drawn from what he observed himself, or had been told him by
|
||
others; however, I could not reflect without some amazement, and much
|
||
sorrow, that the rudiments of lewdness, coquetry, censure, and scandal,
|
||
should have place by instinct in womankind.
|
||
|
||
I expected every moment that my master would accuse the _Yahoos_ of
|
||
those unnatural appetites in both sexes, so common among us. But
|
||
nature, it seems, has not been so expert a school-mistress; and these
|
||
politer pleasures are entirely the productions of art and reason on our
|
||
side of the globe.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER VIII.
|
||
|
||
The author relates several particulars of the _Yahoos_. The great
|
||
virtues of the _Houyhnhnms_. The education and exercise of their youth.
|
||
Their general assembly.
|
||
|
||
|
||
As I ought to have understood human nature much better than I supposed
|
||
it possible for my master to do, so it was easy to apply the character
|
||
he gave of the _Yahoos_ to myself and my countrymen; and I believed I
|
||
could yet make further discoveries, from my own observation. I
|
||
therefore often begged his honour to let me go among the herds of
|
||
_Yahoos_ in the neighbourhood; to which he always very graciously
|
||
consented, being perfectly convinced that the hatred I bore these
|
||
brutes would never suffer me to be corrupted by them; and his honour
|
||
ordered one of his servants, a strong sorrel nag, very honest and
|
||
good-natured, to be my guard; without whose protection I durst not
|
||
undertake such adventures. For I have already told the reader how much
|
||
I was pestered by these odious animals, upon my first arrival; and I
|
||
afterwards failed very narrowly, three or four times, of falling into
|
||
their clutches, when I happened to stray at any distance without my
|
||
hanger. And I have reason to believe they had some imagination that I
|
||
was of their own species, which I often assisted myself by stripping up
|
||
my sleeves, and showing my naked arms and breast in their sight, when
|
||
my protector was with me. At which times they would approach as near as
|
||
they durst, and imitate my actions after the manner of monkeys, but
|
||
ever with great signs of hatred; as a tame jackdaw with cap and
|
||
stockings is always persecuted by the wild ones, when he happens to be
|
||
got among them.
|
||
|
||
They are prodigiously nimble from their infancy. However, I once caught
|
||
a young male of three years old, and endeavoured, by all marks of
|
||
tenderness, to make it quiet; but the little imp fell a squalling and
|
||
scratching and biting with such violence, that I was forced to let it
|
||
go; and it was high time, for a whole troop of old ones came about us
|
||
at the noise, but finding the cub was safe (for away it ran), and my
|
||
sorrel nag being by, they durst not venture near us. I observed the
|
||
young animal’s flesh to smell very rank, and the stink was somewhat
|
||
between a weasel and a fox, but much more disagreeable. I forgot
|
||
another circumstance (and perhaps I might have the reader’s pardon if
|
||
it were wholly omitted), that while I held the odious vermin in my
|
||
hands, it voided its filthy excrements of a yellow liquid substance all
|
||
over my clothes; but by good fortune there was a small brook hard by,
|
||
where I washed myself as clean as I could; although I durst not come
|
||
into my master’s presence until I were sufficiently aired.
|
||
|
||
By what I could discover, the _Yahoos_ appear to be the most
|
||
unteachable of all animals, their capacity never reaching higher than
|
||
to draw or carry burdens. Yet I am of opinion this defect arises
|
||
chiefly from a perverse, restive disposition; for they are cunning,
|
||
malicious, treacherous, and revengeful. They are strong and hardy, but
|
||
of a cowardly spirit, and, by consequence, insolent, abject, and cruel.
|
||
It is observed, that the red haired of both sexes are more libidinous
|
||
and mischievous than the rest, whom yet they much exceed in strength
|
||
and activity.
|
||
|
||
The _Houyhnhnms_ keep the _Yahoos_ for present use in huts not far from
|
||
the house; but the rest are sent abroad to certain fields, where they
|
||
dig up roots, eat several kinds of herbs, and search about for carrion,
|
||
or sometimes catch weasels and _luhimuhs_ (a sort of wild rat), which
|
||
they greedily devour. Nature has taught them to dig deep holes with
|
||
their nails on the side of a rising ground, wherein they lie by
|
||
themselves; only the kennels of the females are larger, sufficient to
|
||
hold two or three cubs.
|
||
|
||
They swim from their infancy like frogs, and are able to continue long
|
||
under water, where they often take fish, which the females carry home
|
||
to their young. And, upon this occasion, I hope the reader will pardon
|
||
my relating an odd adventure.
|
||
|
||
Being one day abroad with my protector the sorrel nag, and the weather
|
||
exceeding hot, I entreated him to let me bathe in a river that was
|
||
near. He consented, and I immediately stripped myself stark naked, and
|
||
went down softly into the stream. It happened that a young female
|
||
_Yahoo_, standing behind a bank, saw the whole proceeding, and inflamed
|
||
by desire, as the nag and I conjectured, came running with all speed,
|
||
and leaped into the water, within five yards of the place where I
|
||
bathed. I was never in my life so terribly frightened. The nag was
|
||
grazing at some distance, not suspecting any harm. She embraced me
|
||
after a most fulsome manner. I roared as loud as I could, and the nag
|
||
came galloping towards me, whereupon she quitted her grasp, with the
|
||
utmost reluctancy, and leaped upon the opposite bank, where she stood
|
||
gazing and howling all the time I was putting on my clothes.
|
||
|
||
This was a matter of diversion to my master and his family, as well as
|
||
of mortification to myself. For now I could no longer deny that I was a
|
||
real _Yahoo_ in every limb and feature, since the females had a natural
|
||
propensity to me, as one of their own species. Neither was the hair of
|
||
this brute of a red colour (which might have been some excuse for an
|
||
appetite a little irregular), but black as a sloe, and her countenance
|
||
did not make an appearance altogether so hideous as the rest of her
|
||
kind; for I think she could not be above eleven years old.
|
||
|
||
Having lived three years in this country, the reader, I suppose, will
|
||
expect that I should, like other travellers, give him some account of
|
||
the manners and customs of its inhabitants, which it was indeed my
|
||
principal study to learn.
|
||
|
||
As these noble _Houyhnhnms_ are endowed by nature with a general
|
||
disposition to all virtues, and have no conceptions or ideas of what is
|
||
evil in a rational creature, so their grand maxim is, to cultivate
|
||
reason, and to be wholly governed by it. Neither is reason among them a
|
||
point problematical, as with us, where men can argue with plausibility
|
||
on both sides of the question, but strikes you with immediate
|
||
conviction; as it must needs do, where it is not mingled, obscured, or
|
||
discoloured, by passion and interest. I remember it was with extreme
|
||
difficulty that I could bring my master to understand the meaning of
|
||
the word opinion, or how a point could be disputable; because reason
|
||
taught us to affirm or deny only where we are certain; and beyond our
|
||
knowledge we cannot do either. So that controversies, wranglings,
|
||
disputes, and positiveness, in false or dubious propositions, are evils
|
||
unknown among the _Houyhnhnms_. In the like manner, when I used to
|
||
explain to him our several systems of natural philosophy, he would
|
||
laugh, “that a creature pretending to reason, should value itself upon
|
||
the knowledge of other people’s conjectures, and in things where that
|
||
knowledge, if it were certain, could be of no use.” Wherein he agreed
|
||
entirely with the sentiments of Socrates, as Plato delivers them; which
|
||
I mention as the highest honour I can do that prince of philosophers. I
|
||
have often since reflected, what destruction such doctrine would make
|
||
in the libraries of Europe; and how many paths of fame would be then
|
||
shut up in the learned world.
|
||
|
||
Friendship and benevolence are the two principal virtues among the
|
||
_Houyhnhnms_; and these not confined to particular objects, but
|
||
universal to the whole race; for a stranger from the remotest part is
|
||
equally treated with the nearest neighbour, and wherever he goes, looks
|
||
upon himself as at home. They preserve decency and civility in the
|
||
highest degrees, but are altogether ignorant of ceremony. They have no
|
||
fondness for their colts or foals, but the care they take in educating
|
||
them proceeds entirely from the dictates of reason. And I observed my
|
||
master to show the same affection to his neighbour’s issue, that he had
|
||
for his own. They will have it that nature teaches them to love the
|
||
whole species, and it is reason only that makes a distinction of
|
||
persons, where there is a superior degree of virtue.
|
||
|
||
When the matron _Houyhnhnms_ have produced one of each sex, they no
|
||
longer accompany with their consorts, except they lose one of their
|
||
issue by some casualty, which very seldom happens; but in such a case
|
||
they meet again; or when the like accident befalls a person whose wife
|
||
is past bearing, some other couple bestow on him one of their own
|
||
colts, and then go together again until the mother is pregnant. This
|
||
caution is necessary, to prevent the country from being overburdened
|
||
with numbers. But the race of inferior _Houyhnhnms_, bred up to be
|
||
servants, is not so strictly limited upon this article: these are
|
||
allowed to produce three of each sex, to be domestics in the noble
|
||
families.
|
||
|
||
In their marriages, they are exactly careful to choose such colours as
|
||
will not make any disagreeable mixture in the breed. Strength is
|
||
chiefly valued in the male, and comeliness in the female; not upon the
|
||
account of love, but to preserve the race from degenerating; for where
|
||
a female happens to excel in strength, a consort is chosen, with regard
|
||
to comeliness.
|
||
|
||
Courtship, love, presents, jointures, settlements have no place in
|
||
their thoughts, or terms whereby to express them in their language. The
|
||
young couple meet, and are joined, merely because it is the
|
||
determination of their parents and friends; it is what they see done
|
||
every day, and they look upon it as one of the necessary actions of a
|
||
reasonable being. But the violation of marriage, or any other
|
||
unchastity, was never heard of; and the married pair pass their lives
|
||
with the same friendship and mutual benevolence, that they bear to all
|
||
others of the same species who come in their way, without jealousy,
|
||
fondness, quarrelling, or discontent.
|
||
|
||
In educating the youth of both sexes, their method is admirable, and
|
||
highly deserves our imitation. These are not suffered to taste a grain
|
||
of oats, except upon certain days, till eighteen years old; nor milk,
|
||
but very rarely; and in summer they graze two hours in the morning, and
|
||
as many in the evening, which their parents likewise observe; but the
|
||
servants are not allowed above half that time, and a great part of
|
||
their grass is brought home, which they eat at the most convenient
|
||
hours, when they can be best spared from work.
|
||
|
||
Temperance, industry, exercise, and cleanliness, are the lessons
|
||
equally enjoined to the young ones of both sexes: and my master thought
|
||
it monstrous in us, to give the females a different kind of education
|
||
from the males, except in some articles of domestic management;
|
||
whereby, as he truly observed, one half of our natives were good for
|
||
nothing but bringing children into the world; and to trust the care of
|
||
our children to such useless animals, he said, was yet a greater
|
||
instance of brutality.
|
||
|
||
But the _Houyhnhnms_ train up their youth to strength, speed, and
|
||
hardiness, by exercising them in running races up and down steep hills,
|
||
and over hard stony grounds; and when they are all in a sweat, they are
|
||
ordered to leap over head and ears into a pond or river. Four times a
|
||
year the youth of a certain district meet to show their proficiency in
|
||
running and leaping, and other feats of strength and agility; where the
|
||
victor is rewarded with a song in his or her praise. On this festival,
|
||
the servants drive a herd of _Yahoos_ into the field, laden with hay,
|
||
and oats, and milk, for a repast to the _Houyhnhnms_; after which,
|
||
these brutes are immediately driven back again, for fear of being
|
||
noisome to the assembly.
|
||
|
||
Every fourth year, at the vernal equinox, there is a representative
|
||
council of the whole nation, which meets in a plain about twenty miles
|
||
from our house, and continues about five or six days. Here they inquire
|
||
into the state and condition of the several districts; whether they
|
||
abound or be deficient in hay or oats, or cows, or _Yahoos_; and
|
||
wherever there is any want (which is but seldom) it is immediately
|
||
supplied by unanimous consent and contribution. Here likewise the
|
||
regulation of children is settled: as for instance, if a _Houyhnhnm_
|
||
has two males, he changes one of them with another that has two
|
||
females; and when a child has been lost by any casualty, where the
|
||
mother is past breeding, it is determined what family in the district
|
||
shall breed another to supply the loss.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER IX.
|
||
|
||
A grand debate at the general assembly of the _Houyhnhnms_, and how it
|
||
was determined. The learning of the _Houyhnhnms_. Their buildings.
|
||
Their manner of burials. The defectiveness of their language.
|
||
|
||
|
||
One of these grand assemblies was held in my time, about three months
|
||
before my departure, whither my master went as the representative of
|
||
our district. In this council was resumed their old debate, and indeed
|
||
the only debate that ever happened in their country; whereof my master,
|
||
after his return, gave me a very particular account.
|
||
|
||
The question to be debated was, “whether the _Yahoos_ should be
|
||
exterminated from the face of the earth?” One of the members for the
|
||
affirmative offered several arguments of great strength and weight,
|
||
alleging, “that as the _Yahoos_ were the most filthy, noisome, and
|
||
deformed animals which nature ever produced, so they were the most
|
||
restive and indocible, mischievous and malicious; they would privately
|
||
suck the teats of the _Houyhnhnms’_ cows, kill and devour their cats,
|
||
trample down their oats and grass, if they were not continually
|
||
watched, and commit a thousand other extravagancies.” He took notice of
|
||
a general tradition, “that _Yahoos_ had not been always in their
|
||
country; but that many ages ago, two of these brutes appeared together
|
||
upon a mountain; whether produced by the heat of the sun upon corrupted
|
||
mud and slime, or from the ooze and froth of the sea, was never known;
|
||
that these _Yahoos_ engendered, and their brood, in a short time, grew
|
||
so numerous as to overrun and infest the whole nation; that the
|
||
_Houyhnhnms_, to get rid of this evil, made a general hunting, and at
|
||
last enclosed the whole herd; and destroying the elder, every
|
||
_Houyhnhnm_ kept two young ones in a kennel, and brought them to such a
|
||
degree of tameness, as an animal, so savage by nature, can be capable
|
||
of acquiring, using them for draught and carriage; that there seemed to
|
||
be much truth in this tradition, and that those creatures could not be
|
||
_yinhniamshy_ (or _aborigines_ of the land), because of the violent
|
||
hatred the _Houyhnhnms_, as well as all other animals, bore them,
|
||
which, although their evil disposition sufficiently deserved, could
|
||
never have arrived at so high a degree if they had been _aborigines_,
|
||
or else they would have long since been rooted out; that the
|
||
inhabitants, taking a fancy to use the service of the _Yahoos_, had,
|
||
very imprudently, neglected to cultivate the breed of asses, which are
|
||
a comely animal, easily kept, more tame and orderly, without any
|
||
offensive smell, strong enough for labour, although they yield to the
|
||
other in agility of body, and if their braying be no agreeable sound,
|
||
it is far preferable to the horrible howlings of the _Yahoos_.”
|
||
|
||
Several others declared their sentiments to the same purpose, when my
|
||
master proposed an expedient to the assembly, whereof he had indeed
|
||
borrowed the hint from me. “He approved of the tradition mentioned by
|
||
the honourable member who spoke before, and affirmed, that the two
|
||
_Yahoos_ said to be seen first among them, had been driven thither over
|
||
the sea; that coming to land, and being forsaken by their companions,
|
||
they retired to the mountains, and degenerating by degrees, became in
|
||
process of time much more savage than those of their own species in the
|
||
country whence these two originals came. The reason of this assertion
|
||
was, that he had now in his possession a certain wonderful _Yahoo_
|
||
(meaning myself) which most of them had heard of, and many of them had
|
||
seen. He then related to them how he first found me; that my body was
|
||
all covered with an artificial composure of the skins and hairs of
|
||
other animals; that I spoke in a language of my own, and had thoroughly
|
||
learned theirs; that I had related to him the accidents which brought
|
||
me thither; that when he saw me without my covering, I was an exact
|
||
_Yahoo_ in every part, only of a whiter colour, less hairy, and with
|
||
shorter claws. He added, how I had endeavoured to persuade him, that in
|
||
my own and other countries, the _Yahoos_ acted as the governing,
|
||
rational animal, and held the _Houyhnhnms_ in servitude; that he
|
||
observed in me all the qualities of a _Yahoo_, only a little more
|
||
civilized by some tincture of reason, which, however, was in a degree
|
||
as far inferior to the _Houyhnhnm_ race, as the _Yahoos_ of their
|
||
country were to me; that, among other things, I mentioned a custom we
|
||
had of castrating _Houyhnhnms_ when they were young, in order to render
|
||
them tame; that the operation was easy and safe; that it was no shame
|
||
to learn wisdom from brutes, as industry is taught by the ant, and
|
||
building by the swallow (for so I translate the word _lyhannh_,
|
||
although it be a much larger fowl); that this invention might be
|
||
practised upon the younger _Yahoos_ here, which besides rendering them
|
||
tractable and fitter for use, would in an age put an end to the whole
|
||
species, without destroying life; that in the mean time the
|
||
_Houyhnhnms_ should be exhorted to cultivate the breed of asses, which,
|
||
as they are in all respects more valuable brutes, so they have this
|
||
advantage, to be fit for service at five years old, which the others
|
||
are not till twelve.”
|
||
|
||
This was all my master thought fit to tell me, at that time, of what
|
||
passed in the grand council. But he was pleased to conceal one
|
||
particular, which related personally to myself, whereof I soon felt the
|
||
unhappy effect, as the reader will know in its proper place, and whence
|
||
I date all the succeeding misfortunes of my life.
|
||
|
||
The _Houyhnhnms_ have no letters, and consequently their knowledge is
|
||
all traditional. But there happening few events of any moment among a
|
||
people so well united, naturally disposed to every virtue, wholly
|
||
governed by reason, and cut off from all commerce with other nations,
|
||
the historical part is easily preserved without burdening their
|
||
memories. I have already observed that they are subject to no diseases,
|
||
and therefore can have no need of physicians. However, they have
|
||
excellent medicines, composed of herbs, to cure accidental bruises and
|
||
cuts in the pastern or frog of the foot, by sharp stones, as well as
|
||
other maims and hurts in the several parts of the body.
|
||
|
||
They calculate the year by the revolution of the sun and moon, but use
|
||
no subdivisions into weeks. They are well enough acquainted with the
|
||
motions of those two luminaries, and understand the nature of eclipses;
|
||
and this is the utmost progress of their astronomy.
|
||
|
||
In poetry, they must be allowed to excel all other mortals; wherein the
|
||
justness of their similes, and the minuteness as well as exactness of
|
||
their descriptions, are indeed inimitable. Their verses abound very
|
||
much in both of these, and usually contain either some exalted notions
|
||
of friendship and benevolence or the praises of those who were victors
|
||
in races and other bodily exercises. Their buildings, although very
|
||
rude and simple, are not inconvenient, but well contrived to defend
|
||
them from all injuries of cold and heat. They have a kind of tree,
|
||
which at forty years old loosens in the root, and falls with the first
|
||
storm: it grows very straight, and being pointed like stakes with a
|
||
sharp stone (for the _Houyhnhnms_ know not the use of iron), they stick
|
||
them erect in the ground, about ten inches asunder, and then weave in
|
||
oat straw, or sometimes wattles, between them. The roof is made after
|
||
the same manner, and so are the doors.
|
||
|
||
The _Houyhnhnms_ use the hollow part, between the pastern and the hoof
|
||
of their fore-foot, as we do our hands, and this with greater dexterity
|
||
than I could at first imagine. I have seen a white mare of our family
|
||
thread a needle (which I lent her on purpose) with that joint. They
|
||
milk their cows, reap their oats, and do all the work which requires
|
||
hands, in the same manner. They have a kind of hard flints, which, by
|
||
grinding against other stones, they form into instruments, that serve
|
||
instead of wedges, axes, and hammers. With tools made of these flints,
|
||
they likewise cut their hay, and reap their oats, which there grow
|
||
naturally in several fields; the _Yahoos_ draw home the sheaves in
|
||
carriages, and the servants tread them in certain covered huts to get
|
||
out the grain, which is kept in stores. They make a rude kind of
|
||
earthen and wooden vessels, and bake the former in the sun.
|
||
|
||
If they can avoid casualties, they die only of old age, and are buried
|
||
in the obscurest places that can be found, their friends and relations
|
||
expressing neither joy nor grief at their departure; nor does the dying
|
||
person discover the least regret that he is leaving the world, any more
|
||
than if he were upon returning home from a visit to one of his
|
||
neighbours. I remember my master having once made an appointment with a
|
||
friend and his family to come to his house, upon some affair of
|
||
importance: on the day fixed, the mistress and her two children came
|
||
very late; she made two excuses, first for her husband, who, as she
|
||
said, happened that very morning to _shnuwnh_. The word is strongly
|
||
expressive in their language, but not easily rendered into English; it
|
||
signifies, “to retire to his first mother.” Her excuse for not coming
|
||
sooner, was, that her husband dying late in the morning, she was a good
|
||
while consulting her servants about a convenient place where his body
|
||
should be laid; and I observed, she behaved herself at our house as
|
||
cheerfully as the rest. She died about three months after.
|
||
|
||
They live generally to seventy, or seventy-five years, very seldom to
|
||
fourscore. Some weeks before their death, they feel a gradual decay;
|
||
but without pain. During this time they are much visited by their
|
||
friends, because they cannot go abroad with their usual ease and
|
||
satisfaction. However, about ten days before their death, which they
|
||
seldom fail in computing, they return the visits that have been made
|
||
them by those who are nearest in the neighbourhood, being carried in a
|
||
convenient sledge drawn by _Yahoos_; which vehicle they use, not only
|
||
upon this occasion, but when they grow old, upon long journeys, or when
|
||
they are lamed by any accident: and therefore when the dying
|
||
_Houyhnhnms_ return those visits, they take a solemn leave of their
|
||
friends, as if they were going to some remote part of the country,
|
||
where they designed to pass the rest of their lives.
|
||
|
||
I know not whether it may be worth observing, that the _Houyhnhnms_
|
||
have no word in their language to express any thing that is evil,
|
||
except what they borrow from the deformities or ill qualities of the
|
||
_Yahoos_. Thus they denote the folly of a servant, an omission of a
|
||
child, a stone that cuts their feet, a continuance of foul or
|
||
unseasonable weather, and the like, by adding to each the epithet of
|
||
_Yahoo_. For instance, _hhnm Yahoo_; _whnaholm Yahoo_, _ynlhmndwihlma
|
||
Yahoo_, and an ill-contrived house _ynholmhnmrohlnw Yahoo_.
|
||
|
||
I could, with great pleasure, enlarge further upon the manners and
|
||
virtues of this excellent people; but intending in a short time to
|
||
publish a volume by itself, expressly upon that subject, I refer the
|
||
reader thither; and, in the mean time, proceed to relate my own sad
|
||
catastrophe.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER X.
|
||
|
||
The author’s economy, and happy life among the Houyhnhnms. His great
|
||
improvement in virtue by conversing with them. Their conversations. The
|
||
author has notice given him by his master, that he must depart from the
|
||
country. He falls into a swoon for grief; but submits. He contrives and
|
||
finishes a canoe by the help of a fellow-servant, and puts to sea at a
|
||
venture.
|
||
|
||
|
||
I had settled my little economy to my own heart’s content. My master
|
||
had ordered a room to be made for me, after their manner, about six
|
||
yards from the house: the sides and floors of which I plastered with
|
||
clay, and covered with rush-mats of my own contriving. I had beaten
|
||
hemp, which there grows wild, and made of it a sort of ticking; this I
|
||
filled with the feathers of several birds I had taken with springes
|
||
made of _Yahoos’_ hairs, and were excellent food. I had worked two
|
||
chairs with my knife, the sorrel nag helping me in the grosser and more
|
||
laborious part. When my clothes were worn to rags, I made myself others
|
||
with the skins of rabbits, and of a certain beautiful animal, about the
|
||
same size, called _nnuhnoh_, the skin of which is covered with a fine
|
||
down. Of these I also made very tolerable stockings. I soled my shoes
|
||
with wood, which I cut from a tree, and fitted to the upper-leather;
|
||
and when this was worn out, I supplied it with the skins of _Yahoos_
|
||
dried in the sun. I often got honey out of hollow trees, which I
|
||
mingled with water, or ate with my bread. No man could more verify the
|
||
truth of these two maxims, “That nature is very easily satisfied;” and,
|
||
“That necessity is the mother of invention.” I enjoyed perfect health
|
||
of body, and tranquillity of mind; I did not feel the treachery or
|
||
inconstancy of a friend, nor the injuries of a secret or open enemy. I
|
||
had no occasion of bribing, flattering, or pimping, to procure the
|
||
favour of any great man, or of his minion; I wanted no fence against
|
||
fraud or oppression: here was neither physician to destroy my body, nor
|
||
lawyer to ruin my fortune; no informer to watch my words and actions,
|
||
or forge accusations against me for hire: here were no gibers,
|
||
censurers, backbiters, pickpockets, highwaymen, housebreakers,
|
||
attorneys, bawds, buffoons, gamesters, politicians, wits, splenetics,
|
||
tedious talkers, controvertists, ravishers, murderers, robbers,
|
||
virtuosos; no leaders, or followers, of party and faction; no
|
||
encouragers to vice, by seducement or examples; no dungeon, axes,
|
||
gibbets, whipping-posts, or pillories; no cheating shopkeepers or
|
||
mechanics; no pride, vanity, or affectation; no fops, bullies,
|
||
drunkards, strolling whores, or poxes; no ranting, lewd, expensive
|
||
wives; no stupid, proud pedants; no importunate, overbearing,
|
||
quarrelsome, noisy, roaring, empty, conceited, swearing companions; no
|
||
scoundrels raised from the dust upon the merit of their vices, or
|
||
nobility thrown into it on account of their virtues; no lords,
|
||
fiddlers, judges, or dancing-masters.
|
||
|
||
I had the favour of being admitted to several _Houyhnhnms_, who came to
|
||
visit or dine with my master; where his honour graciously suffered me
|
||
to wait in the room, and listen to their discourse. Both he and his
|
||
company would often descend to ask me questions, and receive my
|
||
answers. I had also sometimes the honour of attending my master in his
|
||
visits to others. I never presumed to speak, except in answer to a
|
||
question; and then I did it with inward regret, because it was a loss
|
||
of so much time for improving myself; but I was infinitely delighted
|
||
with the station of an humble auditor in such conversations, where
|
||
nothing passed but what was useful, expressed in the fewest and most
|
||
significant words; where, as I have already said, the greatest decency
|
||
was observed, without the least degree of ceremony; where no person
|
||
spoke without being pleased himself, and pleasing his companions; where
|
||
there was no interruption, tediousness, heat, or difference of
|
||
sentiments. They have a notion, that when people are met together, a
|
||
short silence does much improve conversation: this I found to be true;
|
||
for during those little intermissions of talk, new ideas would arise in
|
||
their minds, which very much enlivened the discourse. Their subjects
|
||
are, generally on friendship and benevolence, on order and economy;
|
||
sometimes upon the visible operations of nature, or ancient traditions;
|
||
upon the bounds and limits of virtue; upon the unerring rules of
|
||
reason, or upon some determinations to be taken at the next great
|
||
assembly: and often upon the various excellences of poetry. I may add,
|
||
without vanity, that my presence often gave them sufficient matter for
|
||
discourse, because it afforded my master an occasion of letting his
|
||
friends into the history of me and my country, upon which they were all
|
||
pleased to descant, in a manner not very advantageous to humankind: and
|
||
for that reason I shall not repeat what they said; only I may be
|
||
allowed to observe, that his honour, to my great admiration, appeared
|
||
to understand the nature of _Yahoos_ much better than myself. He went
|
||
through all our vices and follies, and discovered many, which I had
|
||
never mentioned to him, by only supposing what qualities a _Yahoo_ of
|
||
their country, with a small proportion of reason, might be capable of
|
||
exerting; and concluded, with too much probability, “how vile, as well
|
||
as miserable, such a creature must be.”
|
||
|
||
I freely confess, that all the little knowledge I have of any value,
|
||
was acquired by the lectures I received from my master, and from
|
||
hearing the discourses of him and his friends; to which I should be
|
||
prouder to listen, than to dictate to the greatest and wisest assembly
|
||
in Europe. I admired the strength, comeliness, and speed of the
|
||
inhabitants; and such a constellation of virtues, in such amiable
|
||
persons, produced in me the highest veneration. At first, indeed, I did
|
||
not feel that natural awe, which the _Yahoos_ and all other animals
|
||
bear toward them; but it grew upon me by degrees, much sooner than I
|
||
imagined, and was mingled with a respectful love and gratitude, that
|
||
they would condescend to distinguish me from the rest of my species.
|
||
|
||
When I thought of my family, my friends, my countrymen, or the human
|
||
race in general, I considered them, as they really were, _Yahoos_ in
|
||
shape and disposition, perhaps a little more civilized, and qualified
|
||
with the gift of speech; but making no other use of reason, than to
|
||
improve and multiply those vices whereof their brethren in this country
|
||
had only the share that nature allotted them. When I happened to behold
|
||
the reflection of my own form in a lake or fountain, I turned away my
|
||
face in horror and detestation of myself, and could better endure the
|
||
sight of a common _Yahoo_ than of my own person. By conversing with the
|
||
_Houyhnhnms_, and looking upon them with delight, I fell to imitate
|
||
their gait and gesture, which is now grown into a habit; and my friends
|
||
often tell me, in a blunt way, “that I trot like a horse;” which,
|
||
however, I take for a great compliment. Neither shall I disown, that in
|
||
speaking I am apt to fall into the voice and manner of the
|
||
_Houyhnhnms_, and hear myself ridiculed on that account, without the
|
||
least mortification.
|
||
|
||
In the midst of all this happiness, and when I looked upon myself to be
|
||
fully settled for life, my master sent for me one morning a little
|
||
earlier than his usual hour. I observed by his countenance that he was
|
||
in some perplexity, and at a loss how to begin what he had to speak.
|
||
After a short silence, he told me, “he did not know how I would take
|
||
what he was going to say: that in the last general assembly, when the
|
||
affair of the _Yahoos_ was entered upon, the representatives had taken
|
||
offence at his keeping a _Yahoo_ (meaning myself) in his family, more
|
||
like a _Houyhnhnm_ than a brute animal; that he was known frequently to
|
||
converse with me, as if he could receive some advantage or pleasure in
|
||
my company; that such a practice was not agreeable to reason or nature,
|
||
or a thing ever heard of before among them; the assembly did therefore
|
||
exhort him either to employ me like the rest of my species, or command
|
||
me to swim back to the place whence I came: that the first of these
|
||
expedients was utterly rejected by all the _Houyhnhnms_ who had ever
|
||
seen me at his house or their own; for they alleged, that because I had
|
||
some rudiments of reason, added to the natural pravity of those
|
||
animals, it was to be feared I might be able to seduce them into the
|
||
woody and mountainous parts of the country, and bring them in troops by
|
||
night to destroy the _Houyhnhnms’_ cattle, as being naturally of the
|
||
ravenous kind, and averse from labour.”
|
||
|
||
My master added, “that he was daily pressed by the _Houyhnhnms_ of the
|
||
neighbourhood to have the assembly’s exhortation executed, which he
|
||
could not put off much longer. He doubted it would be impossible for me
|
||
to swim to another country; and therefore wished I would contrive some
|
||
sort of vehicle, resembling those I had described to him, that might
|
||
carry me on the sea; in which work I should have the assistance of his
|
||
own servants, as well as those of his neighbours.” He concluded, “that
|
||
for his own part, he could have been content to keep me in his service
|
||
as long as I lived; because he found I had cured myself of some bad
|
||
habits and dispositions, by endeavouring, as far as my inferior nature
|
||
was capable, to imitate the _Houyhnhnms_.”
|
||
|
||
I should here observe to the reader, that a decree of the general
|
||
assembly in this country is expressed by the word _hnhloayn_, which
|
||
signifies an exhortation, as near as I can render it; for they have no
|
||
conception how a rational creature can be compelled, but only advised,
|
||
or exhorted; because no person can disobey reason, without giving up
|
||
his claim to be a rational creature.
|
||
|
||
I was struck with the utmost grief and despair at my master’s
|
||
discourse; and being unable to support the agonies I was under, I fell
|
||
into a swoon at his feet. When I came to myself, he told me “that he
|
||
concluded I had been dead;” for these people are subject to no such
|
||
imbecilities of nature. I answered in a faint voice, “that death would
|
||
have been too great a happiness; that although I could not blame the
|
||
assembly’s exhortation, or the urgency of his friends; yet, in my weak
|
||
and corrupt judgment, I thought it might consist with reason to have
|
||
been less rigorous; that I could not swim a league, and probably the
|
||
nearest land to theirs might be distant above a hundred: that many
|
||
materials, necessary for making a small vessel to carry me off, were
|
||
wholly wanting in this country; which, however, I would attempt, in
|
||
obedience and gratitude to his honour, although I concluded the thing
|
||
to be impossible, and therefore looked on myself as already devoted to
|
||
destruction; that the certain prospect of an unnatural death was the
|
||
least of my evils; for, supposing I should escape with life by some
|
||
strange adventure, how could I think with temper of passing my days
|
||
among _Yahoos_, and relapsing into my old corruptions, for want of
|
||
examples to lead and keep me within the paths of virtue? That I knew
|
||
too well upon what solid reasons all the determinations of the wise
|
||
_Houyhnhnms_ were founded, not to be shaken by arguments of mine, a
|
||
miserable _Yahoo_; and therefore, after presenting him with my humble
|
||
thanks for the offer of his servants’ assistance in making a vessel,
|
||
and desiring a reasonable time for so difficult a work, I told him I
|
||
would endeavour to preserve a wretched being; and if ever I returned to
|
||
England, was not without hopes of being useful to my own species, by
|
||
celebrating the praises of the renowned _Houyhnhnms_, and proposing
|
||
their virtues to the imitation of mankind.”
|
||
|
||
My master, in a few words, made me a very gracious reply; allowed me
|
||
the space of two months to finish my boat; and ordered the sorrel nag,
|
||
my fellow-servant (for so, at this distance, I may presume to call
|
||
him), to follow my instruction; because I told my master, “that his
|
||
help would be sufficient, and I knew he had a tenderness for me.”
|
||
|
||
In his company, my first business was to go to that part of the coast
|
||
where my rebellious crew had ordered me to be set on shore. I got upon
|
||
a height, and looking on every side into the sea; fancied I saw a small
|
||
island toward the north-east. I took out my pocket glass, and could
|
||
then clearly distinguish it above five leagues off, as I computed; but
|
||
it appeared to the sorrel nag to be only a blue cloud: for as he had no
|
||
conception of any country beside his own, so he could not be as expert
|
||
in distinguishing remote objects at sea, as we who so much converse in
|
||
that element.
|
||
|
||
After I had discovered this island, I considered no further; but
|
||
resolved it should, if possible, be the first place of my banishment,
|
||
leaving the consequence to fortune.
|
||
|
||
I returned home, and consulting with the sorrel nag, we went into a
|
||
copse at some distance, where I with my knife, and he with a sharp
|
||
flint, fastened very artificially after their manner, to a wooden
|
||
handle, cut down several oak wattles, about the thickness of a
|
||
walking-staff, and some larger pieces. But I shall not trouble the
|
||
reader with a particular description of my own mechanics; let it
|
||
suffice to say, that in six weeks time with the help of the sorrel nag,
|
||
who performed the parts that required most labour, I finished a sort of
|
||
Indian canoe, but much larger, covering it with the skins of _Yahoos_,
|
||
well stitched together with hempen threads of my own making. My sail
|
||
was likewise composed of the skins of the same animal; but I made use
|
||
of the youngest I could get, the older being too tough and thick; and I
|
||
likewise provided myself with four paddles. I laid in a stock of boiled
|
||
flesh, of rabbits and fowls, and took with me two vessels, one filled
|
||
with milk and the other with water.
|
||
|
||
I tried my canoe in a large pond, near my master’s house, and then
|
||
corrected in it what was amiss; stopping all the chinks with _Yahoos’_
|
||
tallow, till I found it staunch, and able to bear me and my freight;
|
||
and, when it was as complete as I could possibly make it, I had it
|
||
drawn on a carriage very gently by _Yahoos_ to the sea-side, under the
|
||
conduct of the sorrel nag and another servant.
|
||
|
||
When all was ready, and the day came for my departure, I took leave of
|
||
my master and lady and the whole family, my eyes flowing with tears,
|
||
and my heart quite sunk with grief. But his honour, out of curiosity,
|
||
and, perhaps, (if I may speak without vanity,) partly out of kindness,
|
||
was determined to see me in my canoe, and got several of his
|
||
neighbouring friends to accompany him. I was forced to wait above an
|
||
hour for the tide; and then observing the wind very fortunately bearing
|
||
toward the island to which I intended to steer my course, I took a
|
||
second leave of my master; but as I was going to prostrate myself to
|
||
kiss his hoof, he did me the honour to raise it gently to my mouth. I
|
||
am not ignorant how much I have been censured for mentioning this last
|
||
particular. Detractors are pleased to think it improbable, that so
|
||
illustrious a person should descend to give so great a mark of
|
||
distinction to a creature so inferior as I. Neither have I forgotten
|
||
how apt some travellers are to boast of extraordinary favours they have
|
||
received. But, if these censurers were better acquainted with the noble
|
||
and courteous disposition of the _Houyhnhnms_, they would soon change
|
||
their opinion.
|
||
|
||
I paid my respects to the rest of the _Houyhnhnms_ in his honour’s
|
||
company; then getting into my canoe, I pushed off from shore.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER XI.
|
||
|
||
The author’s dangerous voyage. He arrives at New Holland, hoping to
|
||
settle there. Is wounded with an arrow by one of the natives. Is seized
|
||
and carried by force into a Portuguese ship. The great civilities of
|
||
the captain. The author arrives at England.
|
||
|
||
|
||
I began this desperate voyage on February 15, 1714–15, at nine o’clock
|
||
in the morning. The wind was very favourable; however, I made use at
|
||
first only of my paddles; but considering I should soon be weary, and
|
||
that the wind might chop about, I ventured to set up my little sail;
|
||
and thus, with the help of the tide, I went at the rate of a league and
|
||
a half an hour, as near as I could guess. My master and his friends
|
||
continued on the shore till I was almost out of sight; and I often
|
||
heard the sorrel nag (who always loved me) crying out, “_Hnuy illa
|
||
nyha_, _majah Yahoo_;” “Take care of thyself, gentle _Yahoo_.”
|
||
|
||
My design was, if possible, to discover some small island uninhabited,
|
||
yet sufficient, by my labour, to furnish me with the necessaries of
|
||
life, which I would have thought a greater happiness, than to be first
|
||
minister in the politest court of Europe; so horrible was the idea I
|
||
conceived of returning to live in the society, and under the government
|
||
of _Yahoos_. For in such a solitude as I desired, I could at least
|
||
enjoy my own thoughts, and reflect with delight on the virtues of those
|
||
inimitable _Houyhnhnms_, without an opportunity of degenerating into
|
||
the vices and corruptions of my own species.
|
||
|
||
The reader may remember what I related, when my crew conspired against
|
||
me, and confined me to my cabin; how I continued there several weeks
|
||
without knowing what course we took; and when I was put ashore in the
|
||
long-boat, how the sailors told me, with oaths, whether true or false,
|
||
“that they knew not in what part of the world we were.” However, I did
|
||
then believe us to be about 10 degrees southward of the Cape of Good
|
||
Hope, or about 45 degrees southern latitude, as I gathered from some
|
||
general words I overheard among them, being I supposed to the
|
||
south-east in their intended voyage to Madagascar. And although this
|
||
were little better than conjecture, yet I resolved to steer my course
|
||
eastward, hoping to reach the south-west coast of New Holland, and
|
||
perhaps some such island as I desired lying westward of it. The wind
|
||
was full west, and by six in the evening I computed I had gone eastward
|
||
at least eighteen leagues; when I spied a very small island about half
|
||
a league off, which I soon reached. It was nothing but a rock, with one
|
||
creek naturally arched by the force of tempests. Here I put in my
|
||
canoe, and climbing a part of the rock, I could plainly discover land
|
||
to the east, extending from south to north. I lay all night in my
|
||
canoe; and repeating my voyage early in the morning, I arrived in seven
|
||
hours to the south-east point of New Holland. This confirmed me in the
|
||
opinion I have long entertained, that the maps and charts place this
|
||
country at least three degrees more to the east than it really is;
|
||
which thought I communicated many years ago to my worthy friend, Mr.
|
||
Herman Moll, and gave him my reasons for it, although he has rather
|
||
chosen to follow other authors.
|
||
|
||
I saw no inhabitants in the place where I landed, and being unarmed, I
|
||
was afraid of venturing far into the country. I found some shellfish on
|
||
the shore, and ate them raw, not daring to kindle a fire, for fear of
|
||
being discovered by the natives. I continued three days feeding on
|
||
oysters and limpets, to save my own provisions; and I fortunately found
|
||
a brook of excellent water, which gave me great relief.
|
||
|
||
On the fourth day, venturing out early a little too far, I saw twenty
|
||
or thirty natives upon a height not above five hundred yards from me.
|
||
They were stark naked, men, women, and children, round a fire, as I
|
||
could discover by the smoke. One of them spied me, and gave notice to
|
||
the rest; five of them advanced toward me, leaving the women and
|
||
children at the fire. I made what haste I could to the shore, and,
|
||
getting into my canoe, shoved off: the savages, observing me retreat,
|
||
ran after me; and before I could get far enough into the sea,
|
||
discharged an arrow which wounded me deeply on the inside of my left
|
||
knee: I shall carry the mark to my grave. I apprehended the arrow might
|
||
be poisoned, and paddling out of the reach of their darts (being a calm
|
||
day), I made a shift to suck the wound, and dress it as well as I
|
||
could.
|
||
|
||
I was at a loss what to do, for I durst not return to the same
|
||
landing-place, but stood to the north, and was forced to paddle, for
|
||
the wind, though very gentle, was against me, blowing north-west. As I
|
||
was looking about for a secure landing-place, I saw a sail to the
|
||
north-north-east, which appearing every minute more visible, I was in
|
||
some doubt whether I should wait for them or not; but at last my
|
||
detestation of the _Yahoo_ race prevailed: and turning my canoe, I
|
||
sailed and paddled together to the south, and got into the same creek
|
||
whence I set out in the morning, choosing rather to trust myself among
|
||
these barbarians, than live with European _Yahoos_. I drew up my canoe
|
||
as close as I could to the shore, and hid myself behind a stone by the
|
||
little brook, which, as I have already said, was excellent water.
|
||
|
||
The ship came within half a league of this creek, and sent her
|
||
long-boat with vessels to take in fresh water (for the place, it seems,
|
||
was very well known); but I did not observe it, till the boat was
|
||
almost on shore; and it was too late to seek another hiding-place. The
|
||
seamen at their landing observed my canoe, and rummaging it all over,
|
||
easily conjectured that the owner could not be far off. Four of them,
|
||
well armed, searched every cranny and lurking-hole, till at last they
|
||
found me flat on my face behind the stone. They gazed awhile in
|
||
admiration at my strange uncouth dress; my coat made of skins, my
|
||
wooden-soled shoes, and my furred stockings; whence, however, they
|
||
concluded, I was not a native of the place, who all go naked. One of
|
||
the seamen, in Portuguese, bid me rise, and asked who I was. I
|
||
understood that language very well, and getting upon my feet, said, “I
|
||
was a poor _Yahoo_ banished from the _Houyhnhnms_, and desired they
|
||
would please to let me depart.” They admired to hear me answer them in
|
||
their own tongue, and saw by my complexion I must be a European; but
|
||
were at a loss to know what I meant by _Yahoos_ and _Houyhnhnms_; and
|
||
at the same time fell a-laughing at my strange tone in speaking, which
|
||
resembled the neighing of a horse. I trembled all the while betwixt
|
||
fear and hatred. I again desired leave to depart, and was gently moving
|
||
to my canoe; but they laid hold of me, desiring to know, “what country
|
||
I was of? whence I came?” with many other questions. I told them “I was
|
||
born in England, whence I came about five years ago, and then their
|
||
country and ours were at peace. I therefore hoped they would not treat
|
||
me as an enemy, since I meant them no harm, but was a poor _Yahoo_
|
||
seeking some desolate place where to pass the remainder of his
|
||
unfortunate life.”
|
||
|
||
When they began to talk, I thought I never heard or saw any thing more
|
||
unnatural; for it appeared to me as monstrous as if a dog or a cow
|
||
should speak in England, or a _Yahoo_ in _Houyhnhnmland_. The honest
|
||
Portuguese were equally amazed at my strange dress, and the odd manner
|
||
of delivering my words, which, however, they understood very well. They
|
||
spoke to me with great humanity, and said, “they were sure the captain
|
||
would carry me _gratis_ to Lisbon, whence I might return to my own
|
||
country; that two of the seamen would go back to the ship, inform the
|
||
captain of what they had seen, and receive his orders; in the mean
|
||
time, unless I would give my solemn oath not to fly, they would secure
|
||
me by force. I thought it best to comply with their proposal. They were
|
||
very curious to know my story, but I gave them very little
|
||
satisfaction, and they all conjectured that my misfortunes had impaired
|
||
my reason. In two hours the boat, which went laden with vessels of
|
||
water, returned, with the captain’s command to fetch me on board. I
|
||
fell on my knees to preserve my liberty; but all was in vain; and the
|
||
men, having tied me with cords, heaved me into the boat, whence I was
|
||
taken into the ship, and thence into the captain’s cabin.
|
||
|
||
His name was Pedro de Mendez; he was a very courteous and generous
|
||
person. He entreated me to give some account of myself, and desired to
|
||
know what I would eat or drink; said, “I should be used as well as
|
||
himself;” and spoke so many obliging things, that I wondered to find
|
||
such civilities from a _Yahoo_. However, I remained silent and sullen;
|
||
I was ready to faint at the very smell of him and his men. At last I
|
||
desired something to eat out of my own canoe; but he ordered me a
|
||
chicken, and some excellent wine, and then directed that I should be
|
||
put to bed in a very clean cabin. I would not undress myself, but lay
|
||
on the bed-clothes, and in half an hour stole out, when I thought the
|
||
crew was at dinner, and getting to the side of the ship, was going to
|
||
leap into the sea, and swim for my life, rather than continue among
|
||
_Yahoos_. But one of the seamen prevented me, and having informed the
|
||
captain, I was chained to my cabin.
|
||
|
||
After dinner, Don Pedro came to me, and desired to know my reason for
|
||
so desperate an attempt; assured me, “he only meant to do me all the
|
||
service he was able;” and spoke so very movingly, that at last I
|
||
descended to treat him like an animal which had some little portion of
|
||
reason. I gave him a very short relation of my voyage; of the
|
||
conspiracy against me by my own men; of the country where they set me
|
||
on shore, and of my five years residence there. All which he looked
|
||
upon as if it were a dream or a vision; whereat I took great offence;
|
||
for I had quite forgot the faculty of lying, so peculiar to _Yahoos_,
|
||
in all countries where they preside, and, consequently, their
|
||
disposition of suspecting truth in others of their own species. I asked
|
||
him, “whether it were the custom in his country to say the thing which
|
||
was not?” I assured him, “I had almost forgot what he meant by
|
||
falsehood, and if I had lived a thousand years in _Houyhnhnmland_, I
|
||
should never have heard a lie from the meanest servant; that I was
|
||
altogether indifferent whether he believed me or not; but, however, in
|
||
return for his favours, I would give so much allowance to the
|
||
corruption of his nature, as to answer any objection he would please to
|
||
make, and then he might easily discover the truth.”
|
||
|
||
The captain, a wise man, after many endeavours to catch me tripping in
|
||
some part of my story, at last began to have a better opinion of my
|
||
veracity. But he added, “that since I professed so inviolable an
|
||
attachment to truth, I must give him my word and honour to bear him
|
||
company in this voyage, without attempting any thing against my life;
|
||
or else he would continue me a prisoner till we arrived at Lisbon.” I
|
||
gave him the promise he required; but at the same time protested, “that
|
||
I would suffer the greatest hardships, rather than return to live among
|
||
_Yahoos_.”
|
||
|
||
Our voyage passed without any considerable accident. In gratitude to
|
||
the captain, I sometimes sat with him, at his earnest request, and
|
||
strove to conceal my antipathy against humankind, although it often
|
||
broke out; which he suffered to pass without observation. But the
|
||
greatest part of the day I confined myself to my cabin, to avoid seeing
|
||
any of the crew. The captain had often entreated me to strip myself of
|
||
my savage dress, and offered to lend me the best suit of clothes he
|
||
had. This I would not be prevailed on to accept, abhorring to cover
|
||
myself with any thing that had been on the back of a _Yahoo_. I only
|
||
desired he would lend me two clean shirts, which, having been washed
|
||
since he wore them, I believed would not so much defile me. These I
|
||
changed every second day, and washed them myself.
|
||
|
||
We arrived at Lisbon, Nov. 5, 1715. At our landing, the captain forced
|
||
me to cover myself with his cloak, to prevent the rabble from crowding
|
||
about me. I was conveyed to his own house; and at my earnest request he
|
||
led me up to the highest room backwards. I conjured him “to conceal
|
||
from all persons what I had told him of the _Houyhnhnms_; because the
|
||
least hint of such a story would not only draw numbers of people to see
|
||
me, but probably put me in danger of being imprisoned, or burnt by the
|
||
Inquisition.” The captain persuaded me to accept a suit of clothes
|
||
newly made; but I would not suffer the tailor to take my measure;
|
||
however, Don Pedro being almost of my size, they fitted me well enough.
|
||
He accoutred me with other necessaries, all new, which I aired for
|
||
twenty-four hours before I would use them.
|
||
|
||
The captain had no wife, nor above three servants, none of which were
|
||
suffered to attend at meals; and his whole deportment was so obliging,
|
||
added to very good human understanding, that I really began to tolerate
|
||
his company. He gained so far upon me, that I ventured to look out of
|
||
the back window. By degrees I was brought into another room, whence I
|
||
peeped into the street, but drew my head back in a fright. In a week’s
|
||
time he seduced me down to the door. I found my terror gradually
|
||
lessened, but my hatred and contempt seemed to increase. I was at last
|
||
bold enough to walk the street in his company, but kept my nose well
|
||
stopped with rue, or sometimes with tobacco.
|
||
|
||
In ten days, Don Pedro, to whom I had given some account of my domestic
|
||
affairs, put it upon me, as a matter of honour and conscience, “that I
|
||
ought to return to my native country, and live at home with my wife and
|
||
children.” He told me, “there was an English ship in the port just
|
||
ready to sail, and he would furnish me with all things necessary.” It
|
||
would be tedious to repeat his arguments, and my contradictions. He
|
||
said, “it was altogether impossible to find such a solitary island as I
|
||
desired to live in; but I might command in my own house, and pass my
|
||
time in a manner as recluse as I pleased.”
|
||
|
||
I complied at last, finding I could not do better. I left Lisbon the
|
||
24th day of November, in an English merchantman, but who was the master
|
||
I never inquired. Don Pedro accompanied me to the ship, and lent me
|
||
twenty pounds. He took kind leave of me, and embraced me at parting,
|
||
which I bore as well as I could. During this last voyage I had no
|
||
commerce with the master or any of his men; but, pretending I was sick,
|
||
kept close in my cabin. On the fifth of December, 1715, we cast anchor
|
||
in the Downs, about nine in the morning, and at three in the afternoon
|
||
I got safe to my house at Rotherhith. [546]
|
||
|
||
My wife and family received me with great surprise and joy, because
|
||
they concluded me certainly dead; but I must freely confess the sight
|
||
of them filled me only with hatred, disgust, and contempt; and the
|
||
more, by reflecting on the near alliance I had to them. For although,
|
||
since my unfortunate exile from the _Houyhnhnm_ country, I had
|
||
compelled myself to tolerate the sight of _Yahoos_, and to converse
|
||
with Don Pedro de Mendez, yet my memory and imagination were
|
||
perpetually filled with the virtues and ideas of those exalted
|
||
_Houyhnhnms_. And when I began to consider that, by copulating with one
|
||
of the _Yahoo_ species I had become a parent of more, it struck me with
|
||
the utmost shame, confusion, and horror.
|
||
|
||
As soon as I entered the house, my wife took me in her arms, and kissed
|
||
me; at which, having not been used to the touch of that odious animal
|
||
for so many years, I fell into a swoon for almost an hour. At the time
|
||
I am writing, it is five years since my last return to England. During
|
||
the first year, I could not endure my wife or children in my presence;
|
||
the very smell of them was intolerable; much less could I suffer them
|
||
to eat in the same room. To this hour they dare not presume to touch my
|
||
bread, or drink out of the same cup, neither was I ever able to let one
|
||
of them take me by the hand. The first money I laid out was to buy two
|
||
young stone-horses, which I keep in a good stable; and next to them,
|
||
the groom is my greatest favourite, for I feel my spirits revived by
|
||
the smell he contracts in the stable. My horses understand me tolerably
|
||
well; I converse with them at least four hours every day. They are
|
||
strangers to bridle or saddle; they live in great amity with me and
|
||
friendship to each other.
|
||
|
||
|
||
CHAPTER XII.
|
||
|
||
The author’s veracity. His design in publishing this work. His censure
|
||
of those travellers who swerve from the truth. The author clears
|
||
himself from any sinister ends in writing. An objection answered. The
|
||
method of planting colonies. His native country commended. The right of
|
||
the crown to those countries described by the author is justified. The
|
||
difficulty of conquering them. The author takes his last leave of the
|
||
reader; proposes his manner of living for the future; gives good
|
||
advice, and concludes.
|
||
|
||
|
||
Thus, gentle reader, I have given thee a faithful history of my travels
|
||
for sixteen years and above seven months: wherein I have not been so
|
||
studious of ornament as of truth. I could, perhaps, like others, have
|
||
astonished thee with strange improbable tales; but I rather chose to
|
||
relate plain matter of fact, in the simplest manner and style; because
|
||
my principal design was to inform, and not to amuse thee.
|
||
|
||
It is easy for us who travel into remote countries, which are seldom
|
||
visited by Englishmen or other Europeans, to form descriptions of
|
||
wonderful animals both at sea and land. Whereas a traveller’s chief aim
|
||
should be to make men wiser and better, and to improve their minds by
|
||
the bad, as well as good, example of what they deliver concerning
|
||
foreign places.
|
||
|
||
I could heartily wish a law was enacted, that every traveller, before
|
||
he were permitted to publish his voyages, should be obliged to make
|
||
oath before the Lord High Chancellor, that all he intended to print was
|
||
absolutely true to the best of his knowledge; for then the world would
|
||
no longer be deceived, as it usually is, while some writers, to make
|
||
their works pass the better upon the public, impose the grossest
|
||
falsities on the unwary reader. I have perused several books of travels
|
||
with great delight in my younger days; but having since gone over most
|
||
parts of the globe, and been able to contradict many fabulous accounts
|
||
from my own observation, it has given me a great disgust against this
|
||
part of reading, and some indignation to see the credulity of mankind
|
||
so impudently abused. Therefore, since my acquaintance were pleased to
|
||
think my poor endeavours might not be unacceptable to my country, I
|
||
imposed on myself, as a maxim never to be swerved from, that I would
|
||
strictly adhere to truth; neither indeed can I be ever under the least
|
||
temptation to vary from it, while I retain in my mind the lectures and
|
||
example of my noble master and the other illustrious _Houyhnhnms_ of
|
||
whom I had so long the honour to be an humble hearer.
|
||
|
||
|
||
_—Nec si miserum Fortuna Sinonem_
|
||
|
||
_Finxit_, _vanum etiam_, _mendacemque improba finget_.
|
||
|
||
I know very well, how little reputation is to be got by writings which
|
||
require neither genius nor learning, nor indeed any other talent,
|
||
except a good memory, or an exact journal. I know likewise, that
|
||
writers of travels, like dictionary-makers, are sunk into oblivion by
|
||
the weight and bulk of those who come last, and therefore lie
|
||
uppermost. And it is highly probable, that such travellers, who shall
|
||
hereafter visit the countries described in this work of mine, may, by
|
||
detecting my errors (if there be any), and adding many new discoveries
|
||
of their own, jostle me out of vogue, and stand in my place, making the
|
||
world forget that ever I was an author. This indeed would be too great
|
||
a mortification, if I wrote for fame: but as my sole intention was the
|
||
public good, I cannot be altogether disappointed. For who can read of
|
||
the virtues I have mentioned in the glorious _Houyhnhnms_, without
|
||
being ashamed of his own vices, when he considers himself as the
|
||
reasoning, governing animal of his country? I shall say nothing of
|
||
those remote nations where _Yahoos_ preside; among which the least
|
||
corrupted are the _Brobdingnagians_; whose wise maxims in morality and
|
||
government it would be our happiness to observe. But I forbear
|
||
descanting further, and rather leave the judicious reader to his own
|
||
remarks and application.
|
||
|
||
I am not a little pleased that this work of mine can possibly meet with
|
||
no censurers: for what objections can be made against a writer, who
|
||
relates only plain facts, that happened in such distant countries,
|
||
where we have not the least interest, with respect either to trade or
|
||
negotiations? I have carefully avoided every fault with which common
|
||
writers of travels are often too justly charged. Besides, I meddle not
|
||
the least with any party, but write without passion, prejudice, or
|
||
ill-will against any man, or number of men, whatsoever. I write for the
|
||
noblest end, to inform and instruct mankind; over whom I may, without
|
||
breach of modesty, pretend to some superiority, from the advantages I
|
||
received by conversing so long among the most accomplished
|
||
_Houyhnhnms_. I write without any view to profit or praise. I never
|
||
suffer a word to pass that may look like reflection, or possibly give
|
||
the least offence, even to those who are most ready to take it. So that
|
||
I hope I may with justice pronounce myself an author perfectly
|
||
blameless; against whom the tribes of Answerers, Considerers,
|
||
Observers, Reflectors, Detectors, Remarkers, will never be able to find
|
||
matter for exercising their talents.
|
||
|
||
I confess, it was whispered to me, “that I was bound in duty, as a
|
||
subject of England, to have given in a memorial to a secretary of state
|
||
at my first coming over; because, whatever lands are discovered by a
|
||
subject belong to the crown.” But I doubt whether our conquests in the
|
||
countries I treat of would be as easy as those of Ferdinando Cortez
|
||
over the naked Americans. The _Lilliputians_, I think, are hardly worth
|
||
the charge of a fleet and army to reduce them; and I question whether
|
||
it might be prudent or safe to attempt the _Brobdingnagians_; or
|
||
whether an English army would be much at their ease with the Flying
|
||
Island over their heads. The _Houyhnhnms_ indeed appear not to be so
|
||
well prepared for war, a science to which they are perfect strangers,
|
||
and especially against missive weapons. However, supposing myself to be
|
||
a minister of state, I could never give my advice for invading them.
|
||
Their prudence, unanimity, unacquaintedness with fear, and their love
|
||
of their country, would amply supply all defects in the military art.
|
||
Imagine twenty thousand of them breaking into the midst of an European
|
||
army, confounding the ranks, overturning the carriages, battering the
|
||
warriors’ faces into mummy by terrible yerks from their hinder hoofs.
|
||
For they would well deserve the character given to Augustus,
|
||
_Recalcitrat undique tutus_. But, instead of proposals for conquering
|
||
that magnanimous nation, I rather wish they were in a capacity, or
|
||
disposition, to send a sufficient number of their inhabitants for
|
||
civilizing Europe, by teaching us the first principles of honour,
|
||
justice, truth, temperance, public spirit, fortitude, chastity,
|
||
friendship, benevolence, and fidelity. The names of all which virtues
|
||
are still retained among us in most languages, and are to be met with
|
||
in modern, as well as ancient authors; which I am able to assert from
|
||
my own small reading.
|
||
|
||
But I had another reason, which made me less forward to enlarge his
|
||
majesty’s dominions by my discoveries. To say the truth, I had
|
||
conceived a few scruples with relation to the distributive justice of
|
||
princes upon those occasions. For instance, a crew of pirates are
|
||
driven by a storm they know not whither; at length a boy discovers land
|
||
from the topmast; they go on shore to rob and plunder, they see a
|
||
harmless people, are entertained with kindness; they give the country a
|
||
new name; they take formal possession of it for their king; they set up
|
||
a rotten plank, or a stone, for a memorial; they murder two or three
|
||
dozen of the natives, bring away a couple more, by force, for a sample;
|
||
return home, and get their pardon. Here commences a new dominion
|
||
acquired with a title by divine right. Ships are sent with the first
|
||
opportunity; the natives driven out or destroyed; their princes
|
||
tortured to discover their gold; a free license given to all acts of
|
||
inhumanity and lust, the earth reeking with the blood of its
|
||
inhabitants: and this execrable crew of butchers, employed in so pious
|
||
an expedition, is a modern colony, sent to convert and civilize an
|
||
idolatrous and barbarous people!
|
||
|
||
But this description, I confess, does by no means affect the British
|
||
nation, who may be an example to the whole world for their wisdom,
|
||
care, and justice in planting colonies; their liberal endowments for
|
||
the advancement of religion and learning; their choice of devout and
|
||
able pastors to propagate Christianity; their caution in stocking their
|
||
provinces with people of sober lives and conversations from this the
|
||
mother kingdom; their strict regard to the distribution of justice, in
|
||
supplying the civil administration through all their colonies with
|
||
officers of the greatest abilities, utter strangers to corruption; and,
|
||
to crown all, by sending the most vigilant and virtuous governors, who
|
||
have no other views than the happiness of the people over whom they
|
||
preside, and the honour of the king their master.
|
||
|
||
But as those countries which I have described do not appear to have any
|
||
desire of being conquered and enslaved, murdered or driven out by
|
||
colonies, nor abound either in gold, silver, sugar, or tobacco, I did
|
||
humbly conceive, they were by no means proper objects of our zeal, our
|
||
valour, or our interest. However, if those whom it more concerns think
|
||
fit to be of another opinion, I am ready to depose, when I shall be
|
||
lawfully called, that no European did ever visit those countries before
|
||
me. I mean, if the inhabitants ought to be believed, unless a dispute
|
||
may arise concerning the two _Yahoos_, said to have been seen many
|
||
years ago upon a mountain in _Houyhnhnmland_, from whence the opinion
|
||
is, that the race of those brutes hath descended; and these, for
|
||
anything I know, may have been English, which indeed I was apt to
|
||
suspect from the lineaments of their posterity’s countenances, although
|
||
very much defaced. But, how far that will go to make out a title, I
|
||
leave to the learned in colony-law.
|
||
|
||
But, as to the formality of taking possession in my sovereign’s name,
|
||
it never came once into my thoughts; and if it had, yet, as my affairs
|
||
then stood, I should perhaps, in point of prudence and
|
||
self-preservation, have put it off to a better opportunity.
|
||
|
||
Having thus answered the only objection that can ever be raised against
|
||
me as a traveller, I here take a final leave of all my courteous
|
||
readers, and return to enjoy my own speculations in my little garden at
|
||
Redriff; to apply those excellent lessons of virtue which I learned
|
||
among the _Houyhnhnms_; to instruct the _Yahoos_ of my own family, as
|
||
far as I shall find them docible animals; to behold my figure often in
|
||
a glass, and thus, if possible, habituate myself by time to tolerate
|
||
the sight of a human creature; to lament the brutality to _Houyhnhnms_
|
||
in my own country, but always treat their persons with respect, for the
|
||
sake of my noble master, his family, his friends, and the whole
|
||
_Houyhnhnm_ race, whom these of ours have the honour to resemble in all
|
||
their lineaments, however their intellectuals came to degenerate.
|
||
|
||
I began last week to permit my wife to sit at dinner with me, at the
|
||
farthest end of a long table; and to answer (but with the utmost
|
||
brevity) the few questions I asked her. Yet, the smell of a _Yahoo_
|
||
continuing very offensive, I always keep my nose well stopped with rue,
|
||
lavender, or tobacco leaves. And, although it be hard for a man late in
|
||
life to remove old habits, I am not altogether out of hopes, in some
|
||
time, to suffer a neighbour _Yahoo_ in my company, without the
|
||
apprehensions I am yet under of his teeth or his claws.
|
||
|
||
My reconcilement to the _Yahoo_-kind in general might not be so
|
||
difficult, if they would be content with those vices and follies only
|
||
which nature has entitled them to. I am not in the least provoked at
|
||
the sight of a lawyer, a pickpocket, a colonel, a fool, a lord, a
|
||
gamester, a politician, a whoremonger, a physician, an evidence, a
|
||
suborner, an attorney, a traitor, or the like; this is all according to
|
||
the due course of things: but when I behold a lump of deformity and
|
||
diseases, both in body and mind, smitten with pride, it immediately
|
||
breaks all the measures of my patience; neither shall I be ever able to
|
||
comprehend how such an animal, and such a vice, could tally together.
|
||
The wise and virtuous _Houyhnhnms_, who abound in all excellences that
|
||
can adorn a rational creature, have no name for this vice in their
|
||
language, which has no terms to express any thing that is evil, except
|
||
those whereby they describe the detestable qualities of their _Yahoos_,
|
||
among which they were not able to distinguish this of pride, for want
|
||
of thoroughly understanding human nature, as it shows itself in other
|
||
countries where that animal presides. But I, who had more experience,
|
||
could plainly observe some rudiments of it among the wild _Yahoos_.
|
||
|
||
|
||
But the _Houyhnhnms_, who live under the government of reason, are no
|
||
more proud of the good qualities they possess, than I should be for not
|
||
wanting a leg or an arm; which no man in his wits would boast of,
|
||
although he must be miserable without them. I dwell the longer upon
|
||
this subject from the desire I have to make the society of an English
|
||
_Yahoo_ by any means not insupportable; and therefore I here entreat
|
||
those who have any tincture of this absurd vice, that they will not
|
||
presume to come in my sight.
|
||
|
||
|
||
FOOTNOTES:
|
||
|
||
[301] A stang is a pole or perch; sixteen feet and a half.
|
||
|
||
[330] An act of parliament has been since passed by which some breaches
|
||
of trust have been made capital.
|
||
|
||
[454a] Britannia.—_Sir W. Scott_.
|
||
|
||
[454b] London.—_Sir W. Scott_.
|
||
|
||
[455] This is the revised text adopted by Dr. Hawksworth (1766). The
|
||
above paragraph in the original editions (1726) takes another form,
|
||
commencing:—“I told him that should I happen to live in a kingdom where
|
||
lots were in vogue,” &c. The names Tribnia and Langden are not
|
||
mentioned, and the “close stool” and its signification do not occur.
|
||
|
||
[514] This paragraph is not in the original editions.
|
||
|
||
[546] The original editions and Hawksworth’s have Rotherhith here,
|
||
though earlier in the work, Redriff is said to have been Gulliver’s
|
||
home in England.
|